This is a modern-English version of Pawnee Hero Stories and Folk-Tales: With notes on the origin, customs and character of the Pawnee people, originally written by Grinnell, George Bird.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
PAWNEE
Hero Stories and Folktales
WITH NOTES ON
THE ORIGIN, CUSTOMS AND CHARACTER OF
THE PAWNEE PEOPLE
WITH NOTES ON
THE ORIGIN, CUSTOMS, AND CHARACTER OF
THE PAWNEE PEOPLE
BY
BY
GEORGE BIRD GRINNELL
George Bird Grinnell
New York
Forest and Stream Publishing Company
1889
New York
Forest and Stream Publishing Company
1889
Copyright, 1889, by
George Bird Grinnell.
Copyright, 1889, by
George Bird Grinnell.

SIGNAL—“WHO ARE YOU?” ANSWER—“PA´-NI.”
SIGNAL—“WHO ARE YOU?” ANSWER—“PA'NI.”
TO THE MEMORY OF
MAJOR FRANK NORTH
—Pa´-ni Le-shar—
This Record of His People is Inscribed.
In Loving Memory Of
MAJOR FRANK NORTH
—Pa´-ni Le-shar—
This Record of His People is Dedicated.
NOTE.
Last spring I visited the Pawnee Agency in the Indian Territory. On the day after my arrival, I rode over to the house of Eagle Chief, whom, under his warrior name, White Eagle, I had known for many years. Entering the door, I found myself in the presence of the Chief, who, after quickly putting his hand over his mouth in his astonishment, greeted me with a cordial deep-voiced Lau. Then we sat down and filled the pipe and talked. Through all our talk I could see that he was curious to know the object of my visit. At last he said, “My son I am glad that you have come to us once more. My mind is big when I look at you and talk to you. It is good that you are here. Why have you come again to the Pawnee village? What brings you here at this time?”
Last spring, I visited the Pawnee Agency in the Indian Territory. The day after I arrived, I rode over to Eagle Chief's house, who I had known for many years by his warrior name, White Eagle. When I walked in, I found the Chief, who quickly covered his mouth in surprise and greeted me with a warm, deep-voiced Lau. We then sat down, filled the pipe, and talked. Throughout our conversation, I could tell he was eager to know why I was there. Finally, he said, “My son, I’m glad you’ve come to us again. My thoughts are full when I look at you and talk to you. It’s good that you’re here. Why have you returned to the Pawnee village? What brings you here now?”
I answered, “Father, we have come down here to [Pg vi] visit the people and to talk to them; to ask them about how things used to be in the olden times, to hear their stories, to get their history, and then to put all these things down in a book, so that in the years to come, after the tribe have all become like white people, the old things of the Pawnees shall not be forgotten.”
I replied, “Dad, we came down here to [Pgvi] visit the people and talk to them; to ask them about how things were in the past, to hear their stories, to learn their history, and then to write all this down in a book, so that in the future, after the tribe has become like white people, the old ways of the Pawnees won’t be forgotten.”
The Chief meditated for a while and then said, “It is good and it is time. Already the old things are being lost, and those who knew the secrets are many of them dead. If we had known how to write, we would have put all these things down, and they would not have been forgotten, but we could not write, and these stories were handed down from one to another. The old men told their grandchildren, and they told their grandchildren, and so the secrets and the stories and the doings of long ago have been handed down. It may be that they have changed as they passed from father to son, and it is well that they should be put down, so that our children, when they are like the white people, can know what were their fathers’ ways.”
The Chief thought for a moment and then said, “It’s good and it’s time. The old ways are already being forgotten, and many of those who knew the secrets are gone. If we had known how to write, we would have recorded all these things, and they wouldn’t have been lost, but we couldn’t write, and these stories were passed from one person to another. The old men shared them with their grandchildren, and they shared them with theirs, so the secrets, stories, and events from long ago have been passed down. They may have changed as they moved from father to son, and it’s important that they be recorded, so our children, when they are like the white people, can know the ways of their ancestors.”
Most of the material contained in this little book was collected on that visit.
Most of the material in this little book was gathered during that visit.
CONTENTS.
HERO STORIES. | ||
Page | ||
Comanche Chief, the Peace-Maker, | 25 | |
Lone Chief, Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar, | 45 | |
The Prisoners of Court House Rock, | 67 | |
Wolves in the Night, | 70 | |
A Leader of Soldiers, | 74 | |
A Cheyenne Blanket, | 76 | |
Little Warrior’s Counsel, | 79 | |
A Comanche Bundle, | 83 | |
FOLK-TALES. | ||
The Dun Horse, | 87 | |
A Story of Faith, | 98 | |
The Bear Man, | 121 | |
The Ghost Wife, | 129 | |
Ti-ke-wa-kush, the Man who Called the Buffalo, | 132 | |
Pa-hu-ka´-tawa, | 142 | |
The Boy who Was Sacrificed, | 161 | |
The Snake Brother, | 171 | |
O´re-ka-rahr, | 182 | |
The Ghost Bride, | 191 | |
The Boy who Saw A-ti´-us, | 195 | |
How the Deer Lost His Gall, | 204 | |
Yellow Fox, | 206 | |
[Pgviii]NOTES ON THE PAWNEES. | ||
The Pawnees: | ||
I. | Relationships, | 215 |
II. | Origin and Migrations, | 223 |
III. | The Skidi, | 231 |
IV. | Name and Emblem, | 239 |
Pawnee Customs: | ||
I. | Early Days, | 249 |
II. | Every-day Life, | 259 |
III. | A Summer Hunt, | 270 |
The Pawnee in War: | ||
I. | Enemies and Methods of Warfare, | 303 |
II. | Pa´-ni Le-shar and His Scouts, | 323 |
III. | War Parties, | 335 |
Religion: | ||
I. | Beliefs, | 350 |
II. | Ceremonies, | 360 |
III. | Medicine and Mystery, | 374 |
Later History: | ||
I. | Removal to the Indian Territory, | 389 |
II. | Present Condition and Progress, | 397 |
THE PAWNEES AND THEIR STORIES.
ONCE the Pawnees were a great people. They were very numerous. They were undisputed masters of a vast territory. They had everything that heart could wish. Their corn and their buffalo gave them food, clothing and shelter; they had weapons for war and for the chase. They roamed over the country without let or hindrance. In peace they were light-hearted and contented; in war cunning, fierce and successful. Their name was a terror to their enemies. This was in the past. Now they are few in number, poor, a prey to disease, a vanishing race.
ONCE, the Pawnees were a great people. They were numerous and the unrivaled masters of a vast territory. They had everything one could desire. Their corn and buffalo provided them with food, clothing, and shelter; they had weapons for warfare and hunting. They roamed the land freely. In peace, they were cheerful and content; in war, they were clever, fierce, and successful. Their name struck fear into their enemies. That was in the past. Now, they are few in number, poor, plagued by disease, and on the brink of extinction.
My acquaintance with the tribe began in 1870. From that time to the present I have had frequent intercourse with them; have lived in their villages; and been with them on their buffalo hunts. During the weeks and months spent in camp and village, I [Pg x] have listened to many stories of Pawnee heroes and to folk-tales of the miraculous doings of the olden time. In my intercourse with the tribe, extending over a period of nearly twenty years, I have been deeply impressed by the high qualities of the Pawnee character; and the more familiar I have become with this people, the more strongly have I felt that a permanent record should be made of the tales which reflect that character. Unless thus collected now, much of this lore must inevitably be forgotten.
My connection with the tribe started in 1870. Since then, I have interacted with them often, lived in their villages, and joined them on buffalo hunts. During the weeks and months I spent in camp and village, I [Pgx] listened to many stories about Pawnee heroes and folk tales about the miraculous events of the past. My interactions with the tribe have lasted nearly twenty years, and I have been deeply impressed by the Pawnee's great qualities. The more I have gotten to know this people, the more I believe that a lasting record should be made of the stories that showcase their character. If these stories aren’t collected now, much of this wisdom will likely be lost.
For the Pawnees are passing away. When I first joined them on their buffalo hunts from their old home on the Loup Fork in Nebraska, the tribe numbered three thousand; last March in the Indian Territory I found but eight hundred. And more rapidly than the dwindling of the people are their traditions lapsing from memory under the changed conditions of the tribe’s life. The lore, which sprang up as an indigenous growth of the wide-stretching prairie and the wilderness where the wild Pawnee warrior hunted free, finds scanty nurture in the uncongenial soil of fields tilled by Pawnee followers of the plow. With the new modes of living come new views of life, new motives, new sympathies—in a word, civilization. To earn a living by toil, to wrest [Pg xi] subsistence from the earth, this is the problem confronting the Pawnees to-day, the task which is engaging the sinew and purpose of the tribe. In the transition stage, the memory of the old days, of old manners and rites and ceremonies and of old heroes, is with the elders of the race, those ancient braves whose lives bridge the past and the present. When I visited the Agency last March, it was to write down from the lips of these old men such material as I could collect. When they shall die much of the unwritten lore will perish too, for with them will cease that sympathetic and perfect credence, which alone gives to folk-lore vitality and lastingness. What is written in this volume then belongs distinctly to the wild Indian.
For the Pawnees are fading away. When I first joined them on their buffalo hunts from their old home on the Loup Fork in Nebraska, the tribe numbered three thousand; last March in the Indian Territory, I found only eight hundred. And more quickly than the decline of the people, their traditions are vanishing from memory under the changed conditions of the tribe's life. The knowledge, which developed as a natural part of the vast prairie and wilderness where the wild Pawnee warrior hunted freely, receives limited support in the unwelcoming environment of fields cultivated by Pawnee farmers. With the new ways of living come new perspectives on life, new motivations, new sympathies—in short, civilization. Earning a living through hard work, extracting sustenance from the earth, this is the challenge facing the Pawnees today, the task that occupies the energy and purpose of the tribe. In this transition phase, the memory of the old days, of traditions and ceremonies, and of past heroes, lives on in the elders of the tribe, those ancient warriors whose lives connect the past and the present. When I visited the Agency last March, it was to gather information from these old men. When they pass away, much of the unwritten stories will disappear too, for with them will end the deep and genuine belief that gives folklore its vitality and endurance. What is recorded in this volume, then, distinctly belongs to the wild Indian.
The task that I have set for myself is that of a recorder. No attempt has been made to give a literary color to the hero stories and folk-tales here written out. I have scrupulously avoided putting into them anything of my own. The stories are told to the reader as they were told to me. They are not elaborated. I have tried to show how Indians think and speak, rather than to make their stories more entertaining by dressing them up to suit the civilized taste. My object in giving these narratives in their [Pg xii] present shape is to make a book which shall be true to life, and shall faithfully reflect the Pawnee character, as the story tellers have themselves painted it. In a very few cases I have added some words explaining matters so well understood by those familiar with the Indians as to need no explanation. If these tales have any ethnological value, it will be enhanced by their being given in the precise form in which they were told by those to whom they have been handed down from generation to generation; but quite apart from this is another point which is entitled to consideration.
The task I've set for myself is to be a recorder. I haven’t tried to add any literary flair to the hero stories and folk tales I've written down. I’ve made sure not to include anything of my own. The stories are shared with you just as they were told to me. They aren't elaborated on. I've aimed to show how Indians think and speak, rather than make their stories more entertaining by altering them to fit modern tastes. My goal in presenting these narratives in their current form is to create a book that is true to life and accurately reflects the Pawnee character, as the storytellers have depicted it. In a few cases, I've added some words to clarify matters that are already well understood by those familiar with the Indians and don’t need explanation. If these tales hold any ethnological value, it will be highlighted by being presented in the exact form they were passed down by those to whom they have been handed down over generations; but aside from this, there’s another point that deserves consideration.
The entire ignorance concerning Indians, which prevails among the general public, can be dispelled only by letting that public understand something of the ways of life of the wild Indian, something of the subjects about which he thinks and talks, as well as of how he looks at these subjects, and what he has to say about them.
The widespread misunderstanding about Native Americans that exists among the general public can only be cleared up by helping that public learn about the lifestyles of Indigenous people, the topics that occupy their thoughts and conversations, how they perceive these topics, and what they have to say about them.
The late Mrs. Jackson’s charming story, “Ramona,” did much to bring the more intelligent class of readers in touch with the Indians, and to awaken sympathy for them by pointing out the unnumbered wrongs perpetrated on this race by the Government. Mrs. Jackson’s book was a story, a novel; wonderfully [Pg xiii] well told and full of truth and feeling; but while it may have been a relation of facts, it did not profess to treat of actual persons. It is looked upon by many readers as a mere romance. It is a book about which I was once asked, skeptically, “Did you ever see any Indians like those?” In the Pawnee stories here set down there is no romance nor coloring. The Indians themselves are talking, and whatever the faults and weak points of these tales—and some of them are sufficiently obvious—they at least give the reader a true conception of Indians as they have actually lived. They are stories of Indians by Indians. There is about them nothing of the white man; and the intelligent person, who is sufficiently interested in the subject to read this book through, will gain from it a new insight into Indian character.
The late Mrs. Jackson’s delightful story, “Ramona,” helped connect more thoughtful readers with Native Americans and sparked sympathy for them by highlighting the countless injustices inflicted on this group by the Government. Mrs. Jackson’s book is a narrative, a novel; beautifully written and filled with truth and emotion; but while it may recount real events, it does not claim to be about actual people. Many readers regard it simply as a romance. I once encountered someone who skeptically asked, “Have you ever seen any Native Americans like those?” In the Pawnee stories presented here, there's no romanticizing or embellishment. The Native Americans are speaking for themselves, and despite any flaws or weaknesses in the tales—and some are quite evident—they provide an authentic understanding of how Native Americans have actually lived. These are stories by Native Americans for Native Americans. There’s nothing of the white perspective in them; and any reader who is genuinely interested in the topic will gain a fresh understanding of Native American character.
The Indian of Cooper—with his bravery, his endurance, his acuteness, his high qualities of honesty, generosity, courtesy and hospitality—has been laughed at for half a century. Yet every man who has mingled much with the Indians in their homes has known individuals who might have sat for the portraits which Cooper drew of some of his aboriginal heroes. There are good men among Indians, [Pg xiv] just as among the whites. The prevalent notion of the Indian has been formed from the worst class of this people, the lazy, filthy beggars who haunt the settlements of the West, who to their own vices have added new ones picked up from their surroundings, and who are hopelessly degraded. These are not typical Indians, and it is unjust to judge a whole race from such degenerate specimens. There is still another notion of the Indian fondly cherished by many worthy people, whose sympathies have been wrought upon by the cruelty and injustice with which we have treated this race. These good people look upon all Indians as simple children of nature, who would do no wrong if they had not been contaminated by contact with vicious whites. It is unnecessary to say that this notion of the Indian is also incorrect.
The Indian in Cooper's work—with his bravery, endurance, sharpness, and strong traits of honesty, generosity, courtesy, and hospitality—has been made fun of for over fifty years. Yet, anyone who has spent significant time with Indians in their homes has met individuals who could easily represent the characters Cooper created of his native heroes. There are good people among Indians, [Pgxiv] just like among whites. The common perception of Indians has largely been shaped by the worst among them, the lazy, dirty beggars who linger in western settlements, who have added new vices to their own, and who are hopelessly degraded. These are not representative of all Indians, and it's unfair to judge an entire race based on such degenerate individuals. There’s also another view of Indians that many kind-hearted people hold, influenced by the cruelty and injustice we’ve shown this race. These well-meaning individuals see all Indians as innocent children of nature who wouldn't do any wrong if they hadn't been corrupted by bad whites. It goes without saying that this perception of the Indian is also wrong.
The Indian is neither a fiend nor a saint. There are good ones and bad ones. As a rule, perhaps they try to act up to their ideas of what is right, but the standard of a race of barbarians cannot be the same as that of a civilized people, and in judging of their character we must make allowances for this difference. The standard of right and wrong among civilized people is a growth, the product of the [Pg xv] experience of thousands of years. The Indian races have not been through a like experience. They have regarded as virtues some things which seem to us the worst of crimes. The Indian differs from the white man in education and manner of life, and so, of course, in his modes of thought. He has not been taught the lesson of self-control, which his surroundings oblige each civilized man to begin to learn as a child. He has known until recent times no law save that of strength. He has been taught that war is the noblest of pursuits—the only one worthy of man. And that war has consisted in making forays upon his enemies, taking their possessions, and, if possible, their lives and their scalps. His warfare consisted in surprises rather than open combat. A scalp taken was a trophy of victory, and the scalp of a woman was almost as eagerly sought as that of a brave or of a chief. It was an evidence of injury inflicted on the enemy. To steal horses from the enemy was an achievement creditable and also profitable.
The Indian is neither a monster nor a saint. There are good ones and bad ones. Generally, they try to live according to their beliefs about what is right, but the standards of a group of people considered uncivilized can't be the same as those of a civilized society, and in evaluating their character, we must take this difference into account. The standards of right and wrong among civilized people have developed from thousands of years of experience. The Indian cultures have not gone through a similar experience. They consider certain behaviors as virtues that we might see as serious crimes. The Indian differs from the white man in education and lifestyle, and therefore, naturally, in his way of thinking. He hasn't learned the lesson of self-control that his environment forces every civilized person to start learning as a child. Until recently, he knew no law except the law of strength. He was taught that war is the highest pursuit—the only one worthy of a man. His concept of war involved raiding his enemies, taking their belongings, and if possible, their lives and scalps. His combat style involved ambushes rather than open battles. A scalp taken was a trophy of victory, and the scalp of a woman was sought after almost as eagerly as that of a warrior or a chief. It was a sign of damage done to the enemy. Stealing horses from the enemy was seen as both an honorable and profitable achievement.
We commonly speak of the raids of war parties as horse stealing expeditions, but this is wholly misleading, because to the civilized understanding the phrase horse stealing carries with it an idea of [Pg xvi] dishonesty. No such meaning attaches to the Indian equivalent of this phrase. They take horses by stratagem or secretly, by the usual, and to them legitimate, methods of warfare. To speak of their stealing horses, using that verb in the sense which we commonly give it, would be like saying that an army stole the cannon which it captured in an engagement with the enemy. Captured horses were the legitimate spoils of war. The wealth of the Indians was in their horses. They had no fortified places, no ships of war, no cannon, no works of art. Their only valuable possessions were their horses. These were the only property that could be carried off. Therefore, when an expedition was made against a hostile tribe, scalps and horses were naturally its object. Horses, being their only valuable possessions, constituted their medium of exchange, so far as they had any. Did a man wish to purchase an ornament, or an article of dress which took his fancy, he gave a horse for it. If he bought a wife he paid for her in horses. The most valuable present that could be made was a good horse; and horses were often given by the well-to-do to their friends and relations who had been sick or unfortunate. On the other hand, when, as was [Pg xvii] sometimes the case, a conquered tribe was condemned to pay a war indemnity, they paid it in horses. It is related that when the Skidi broke their treaty with the other bands, and were afterward conquered by them, they were obliged to pay such a fine.
We often talk about the raids by war parties as horse-stealing missions, but that's really misleading because, to a civilized perspective, the term horse stealing implies dishonesty. The Indian version of this phrase doesn't carry that meaning. They take horses through clever tactics or secretly, using the usual methods of warfare that they view as legitimate. Saying they steal horses, with the typical connotation we have, would be like claiming that an army stole the cannons it captured in a battle with the enemy. Captured horses were viewed as the rightful spoils of war. For the Indians, their wealth was in their horses. They didn't have fortified towns, war ships, cannons, or works of art. Their only valuable assets were their horses. These were the only possessions that could be taken away. So, when a campaign targeted a hostile tribe, scalps and horses were naturally the objectives. Horses, as their only valuable possessions, served as their form of currency, as far as they had one. If a man wanted to buy an ornament or a piece of clothing he liked, he would trade a horse for it. When marrying, he would pay in horses. The best gift one could give was a good horse; and horses were often gifted by well-off individuals to friends and relatives who had been sick or unfortunate. Conversely, when a conquered tribe was required to pay a war indemnity, they paid with horses. It's said that when the Skidi broke their treaty with other bands and were later defeated by them, they were forced to pay such a penalty.
This view of Indian warfare being understood, the motive of the hero stories here given, and of many of the folk-tales, becomes plain.
This understanding of Indian warfare makes the motives behind the hero stories presented here, as well as many of the folk tales, clear.
The Pawnees are essentially a religious people. They worship Ti-ra´-wa, who is in and of everything. Unlike many of the Indian tribes of the West, they do not adore any material thing. They regard certain places as sacred, but these are so only because blessed by the Divine presence. The Pawnee Deity is not personified. He is intangible, quite as much so as the God of the Christians. The sacred character of Ti-ra´-wa extends to animal nature. The fishes which swim in the rivers, the birds of the air and the beasts which roam over the prairie, have sometimes intelligence, knowledge and power far beyond those of man. But they are not gods. Their miraculous attributes are given them by the Ruler, whose servants they are, and who often makes them the medium of his communications to man. They are his messengers—his angels—and their powers are [Pg xviii] always used for good. Prayers are made to them; sometimes for direct help in time of need, but more often for intercession. Often in the folk-tales it will be seen that when the blessing asked for is some small thing, a prayer is made to the animals (Nahu´rac), but if the petitioners are asking for some great thing, something which is very difficult to grant, then the prayer is made to “One Above,” to “The Ruler,” that is, to the Supreme Being.
The Pawnees are fundamentally a spiritual people. They worship Ti-ra´-wa, who exists in everything. Unlike many other Native American tribes in the West, they don’t worship any physical objects. They see certain locations as sacred, but only because they are blessed by the Divine presence. The Pawnee Deity isn't personified. He is intangible, just like the God of Christians. The sacred nature of Ti-ra´-wa also extends to animals. The fish that swim in the rivers, the birds in the sky, and the animals that roam the plains sometimes possess intelligence, knowledge, and abilities that far exceed those of humans. However, they are not gods. Their miraculous qualities are given to them by the Ruler, whose servants they are, and who often uses them as a means of communication with humans. They are his messengers—his angels—and their powers are [Pgxviii] always used for good. Prayers are addressed to them; sometimes for direct assistance in tough times, but more often for intercession. In folk tales, it will frequently be seen that when the blessing requested is something small, a prayer is made to the animals (Nahu´rac), but if the requesters are asking for something significant, something really challenging to grant, then the prayer is directed to “One Above,” to “The Ruler,” meaning the Supreme Being.
Nothing of importance was ever undertaken without a prayer for help, for success. All the serious undertakings of the year, whose success would affect the general welfare, were preceded by religious ceremonies, when all the tribe took part, and prayers were made and sacrifices offered to Ti-ra´-wa; and in all lesser enterprises, the individuals who were interested humbled themselves and implored the Divine assistance. A party starting off on the warpath prayed for success and made a burnt offering. Prayer and sacrifice always marked the beginning of the feast, and often its end. Success in their undertakings was acknowledged by grateful offerings to the Ruler. The victorious warrior sometimes sacrificed the scalp torn from the head of his enemy, and this was burned with elaborate ceremonies by the [Pg xix] High Priest. He who brought back from a foray many horses, gave one to the priest as a thank-offering to the Ruler. One of the well-known Seven Brothers said to me, “It is our aim, after we have been helped, to give thanks.”
Nothing important was ever done without a prayer for help and success. All the major activities of the year that impacted everyone were preceded by religious ceremonies, where the whole tribe participated, offering prayers and sacrifices to Ti-ra´-wa; in smaller endeavors, individuals involved would humble themselves and seek Divine assistance. A group setting out for war would pray for success and make a burnt offering. Prayer and sacrifice always started the feast and often marked its conclusion. They acknowledged success in their efforts with grateful offerings to the Ruler. The victorious warrior sometimes sacrificed the scalp taken from his enemy, which was burned with elaborate ceremonies by the [Pgxix] High Priest. Anyone who returned from a raid with many horses would give one to the priest as a thank-offering to the Ruler. One of the well-known Seven Brothers said to me, “Our goal, after receiving help, is to give thanks.”
The feeling of these Indians toward their God is one of humility and reverence. They do not love him, but they look to him for help at all times. The young are exhorted to humble themselves before him, to pray to him, to look to One Above, to ask help from the Ruler. In the stories which are included in this book the allusions constantly made to Ti-ra´-wa—the Supreme Power—the prayers offered and the humility and self-abnegation so often expressed, show faith, profound religious feelings, and great elevation of thought.
The way these Indigenous people view their God is filled with humility and respect. They don’t love him, but they always turn to him for support. The young ones are encouraged to be humble before him, to pray to him, to look to the One Above, and to seek help from the Ruler. In the stories included in this book, the frequent references to Ti-ra´-wa—the Supreme Power—along with the prayers and the humility and selflessness often expressed, illustrate their faith, deep religious feelings, and high level of thought.
Among tribal names of North American Indians, none is more familiar to us than Pawnee; yet of no tribe is less known. Frequent allusions to them occur in the writings of early travelers in the West; but only one satisfactory attempt has been made to write a connected history of this family. In the Magazine of American History for 1880 Mr. John B. Dunbar published a most interesting account of [Pg xx] this tribe, but his sketch is mainly historical, and does not profess to treat exhaustively of the lives and modes of thought of this people. It is, however, a history of very great importance and value, and in preparing the historical matter which is included in this volume, I have not hesitated to draw on Mr. Dunbar’s papers, which must form the basis of any subsequent account of the Pawnees, and which should be read by all who are interested in this people.
Among the tribal names of North American Indigenous peoples, none is more well-known to us than Pawnee; yet we know very little about this tribe. They are frequently mentioned in the writings of early travelers in the West, but only one comprehensive attempt has been made to write a cohesive history of this group. In the Magazine of American History from 1880, Mr. John B. Dunbar published a fascinating account of [Pgxx] this tribe, but his piece is mostly historical and doesn’t aim to fully cover the lives and mindsets of these people. However, it is a history of great significance and value, and in preparing the historical content included in this volume, I have not hesitated to utilize Mr. Dunbar’s work, which should serve as the foundation for any future accounts of the Pawnees and should be read by anyone interested in this tribe.
I owe much of my interest in and knowledge of the Pawnees to my long intimacy with the late Major Frank North, who from his extended intercourse and close connection with this people—a connection which lasted more than thirty years—was unquestionably better informed about them than any other white man has ever been; and with Capt. L. H. North, his brother, who was for many years associated with Major North in command of the Pawnee Scouts.
I owe a lot of my interest in and knowledge of the Pawnees to my long friendship with the late Major Frank North. His deep connection with this community lasted over thirty years, making him undoubtedly more knowledgeable about them than any other white man ever was. I also learned from Capt. L. H. North, his brother, who spent many years working alongside Major North in leading the Pawnee Scouts.
In gathering the material here presented I have been assisted also by James R. Murie, a nephew of Comanche Chief; by Ralph J. Weeks, a half-brother of Lone Chief; by Harry Kuhns, by Eagle Chief and Bear Chief, Skidis; by Good Chief and Curly [Pg xxi] Chief, Kit-ke-hahk´-is; by Secret Pipe Chief and Frank White, Chau-is, and by many others of my Pawnee friends, to all of whom my acknowledgments are due.
In putting together the material presented here, I've also received help from James R. Murie, a nephew of Comanche Chief; Ralph J. Weeks, a half-brother of Lone Chief; Harry Kuhns; Eagle Chief and Bear Chief, Skidis; Good Chief and Curly Chief, Kit-ke-hahk´-is; Secret Pipe Chief and Frank White, Chau-is, and many other Pawnee friends, to whom I owe my gratitude. [Pgxxi]
In the pronunciation of the few Pawnee words used in these stories, the vowel sounds, as nearly as I can give them, are as follows: a as in father, e as the a in ale, i as e in cede, ū long as oo in pool, ŭ short as in us, au as ou in house. These sounds depend somewhat on the letters which follow the vowels, and the spelling does not always conform to the rule laid down. The last two syllables in the word Pita-hau-erat, for example, are pronounced ērăt or idot. The sounds of d, l, n and r are difficult to express by English letters; r sometimes has its own sound quite distinctly, at others more the sound of d; n often has a d sound, and l a sound of n. It will be noted that throughout this volume I have used the familiar English word Pawnee instead of the evidently more correct Pa´-ni.
In the pronunciation of the few Pawnee words used in these stories, the vowel sounds, as closely as I can represent them, are as follows: a as in father, e as in the a in ale, i as e in cede, ū long as oo in pool, ŭ short as in us, au as ou in house. These sounds can vary a bit depending on the letters that come after the vowels, and the spelling doesn't always match the rules given. The last two syllables in the word Pita-hau-erat, for example, are pronounced ērăt or idot. The sounds of d, l, n, and r are tricky to convey using English letters; r sometimes has its distinct sound, while at other times it sounds more like d; n often has a d sound, and l can sound like an n. You’ll notice that throughout this book, I have used the familiar English word Pawnee instead of the more accurate Pa´-ni.
Finally I have refrained from commenting on the stories, though there is abundant opportunity for comment.
Finally, I have held back from commenting on the stories, although there is plenty of opportunity for it.
G. B. G.
G.B.G.
July, 1889.
July 1889.
Hero Stories.
COMANCHE CHIEF.
The Peace-Maker.
The Peacemaker.
I.
MANY years ago there lived in the Ski´-di village a young man, about sixteen years old. His name was Kut-a´wi-kutz (the hawk). At this time the Pawnees wore their hair in the ancient fashion, cut as the Osages wear theirs; the whole head was shaved except a roach running back from the forehead beyond the scalp lock.
Many years ago, there lived in the Ski´-di village a young man, around sixteen years old. His name was Kut-a´wi-kutz (the hawk). At that time, the Pawnees wore their hair in the traditional style, shaved all over except for a roach that ran back from the forehead past the scalp lock.
A war party went off to the south and he joined them as a servant. They went a long way and a long way, traveling far, but they got no horses and came back. Afterward another party started off on the warpath, and he went with it. They traveled many days, going to the southwest, and at length they came to a camp, and hid themselves to wait until it was dark. It was a camp of the Comanches.
A war party set off to the south, and he joined them as a servant. They traveled a long way, covering a lot of ground, but they didn't find any horses and returned. Later, another group headed out on the warpath, and he went along with them. They traveled for many days, moving southwest, and eventually they reached a camp, where they hid to wait until it got dark. It was a camp of the Comanches.
[Pg 26] When night had come they all went into the camp to steal horses. This young man went to a lodge near which stood three horses, two spotted horses and one gray. They were tied near the door of the lodge, and from this he thought they must be fast, for the Indians usually tie up their best horses close to the lodge door, where they will be under their eyes as much as possible. He went to the lodge to cut the ropes, and just as he was about to do so he thought he heard some one inside. He stepped up close to the lodge, and looked in through a little opening between the door and the lodge, and saw a small fire burning, and on the other side of the fire was sitting a young girl, combing her long hair. The young man looked around the lodge to see who else was there, and saw only an old man and an old woman, and the fire-maker. He cut the ropes of the two spotted horses standing outside, led the horses out of the camp, and met his companion. To him he said, “Now, brother, you take these horses and go to the hill where we were hiding to-day, and wait for me there. I have seen another fine spotted horse that I want to get; I will go back for it and will meet you before morning at that place.”
[Pg26] When night fell, they all entered the camp to steal horses. This young man approached a lodge near which three horses were tied—two spotted ones and one gray. They were tied close to the lodge door, which led him to believe they must be secure, since the Indians typically keep their best horses near the entrance where they can keep an eye on them. He went to the lodge to cut the ropes, and just as he was about to do that, he thought he heard someone inside. He moved closer to the lodge and peered in through a small gap between the door and the lodge, noticing a small fire burning inside. On the other side of the fire sat a young girl, brushing her long hair. The young man scanned the lodge to see who else was there and found only an old man, an old woman, and the one tending the fire. He cut the ropes of the two spotted horses outside, led them away from the camp, and met his companion. To him, he said, “Now, brother, you take these horses and go to the hill where we were hiding today, and wait for me there. I want to get another fine spotted horse I saw; I’ll go back for it and will meet you before morning at that spot.”
He went back, as if to get the spotted horse, but [Pg 27] returned to the lodge where the girl was. He went all around it, and looked at it carefully. He saw that there were feathers on the lodge, and rows of animals hoofs hanging down the sides, which rattled in the wind, and to one of the lodge-poles was tied a buffalo tail, which hung down. Then he went back to the door and looked in at the girl again. She had braided her hair and was sitting there by the fire. He stayed there a long time that night looking at her. Toward morning he went to look for his companion. When he met him he told him that some one had taken the spotted horse before he got to it; he could not find it. When the party all met next morning, they found that they had taken a lot of horses, and they started north to go home. They reached the Pawnee village, and every one was glad of their success.
He went back, as if to get the spotted horse, but [Pg27] returned to the lodge where the girl was. He walked around it and examined it closely. He noticed that there were feathers on the lodge and rows of animal hooves hanging from the sides, which rattled in the wind, and tied to one of the lodge poles was a buffalo tail that hung down. Then he went back to the door and looked in at the girl again. She had braided her hair and was sitting by the fire. He stayed there a long time that night, watching her. Toward morning, he went to look for his companion. When he found him, he told him that someone had taken the spotted horse before he could reach it; he couldn't find it. When the whole group gathered the next morning, they discovered that they had captured a lot of horses, and they started north to go home. They arrived at the Pawnee village, and everyone was happy about their success.
After this, whenever this young man saw anything that was nice or pretty, such as medals, ear-rings, finger rings for women, beadwork leggings, bracelets, necklaces, wampum, beads—things that the Comanches did not have—he would give a pony for it. For one year he went on like this, gathering together these pretty things. When the year had gone by he had no horses left; he had given them [Pg 28] all away to get these presents. He packed all these things up in a bundle, and then spoke one night to his friend, saying, “I intend to go off on the warpath again, and I would like to have you go with me; we two will go alone.” His friend agreed to go.
After this, whenever the young man saw anything nice or pretty, like medals, earrings, women's rings, beaded leggings, bracelets, necklaces, wampum, or beads—things the Comanches didn’t have—he would trade a pony for it. For a year, he kept doing this, collecting all these beautiful items. By the end of the year, he had no horses left; he had given them all away to get these gifts. He packed everything into a bundle and one night told his friend, “I’m planning to go on the warpath again, and I’d like you to come with me; we’ll go just the two of us.” His friend agreed to join him.
II.
Before the time came to start, other young men heard of it, and several joined them. There were eight of them in all. Kut-a´wi-kutz was the leader. He told his young men that they were going to a certain place where he knew there were lots of spotted horses to steal. They started out on foot. After traveling many days, they came to the place where the camp had been at the time he saw the girl. There was now no camp there.
Before it was time to begin, other young men heard about it and several joined in. In total, there were eight of them. Kut-a´wi-kutz was the leader. He told the young men that they were heading to a specific place where he knew there were a lot of spotted horses to steal. They set out on foot. After traveling for many days, they arrived at the spot where the camp had been when he saw the girl. There was no camp there now.
They went on further, and at length came to a camp and hid themselves. When night came the leader told his men to remain where they were hiding, and he would go into the camp and see if there were any horses to take. He went through all the camp looking for the lodge in which he had seen the girl, but he did not find it. Then he went back to where the young men were hiding, and told them that this was not the camp they were looking for; [Pg 29] that they did not have here the spotted horses that they wanted. In the camp of the year before there had been many spotted horses.
They continued on and eventually reached a camp where they hid. When night fell, the leader told his men to stay put while he went into the camp to check for any horses to take. He searched through the entire camp looking for the tent where he had seen the girl, but he couldn’t find it. Then he returned to the place where the young men were hiding and informed them that this was not the camp they were after; [Pg29] they didn’t have the spotted horses they wanted here. The previous camp had many spotted horses.
The young men did not understand this, and some of them did not like to leave this camp without taking any horses, but he was the leader and they did as he said. They left that camp and went on further.
The young men didn’t get it, and some of them weren’t happy about leaving the camp without taking any horses, but he was the leader, so they followed his orders. They left the camp and moved on.
After traveling some days they came to another camp, and hid themselves near it. When night came on Kut-a´wi-kutz said to his young men, “You stay here where you are hiding, and I will go into this camp and see if it is the one we are looking for.” He went through the camp but did not find the lodge he sought. He returned to the hiding place, and told the party there that this was not the camp they were looking for, that the spotted horses were not there. They left the camp and went on.
After traveling for several days, they arrived at another camp and concealed themselves nearby. When night fell, Kut-a´wi-kutz told his young men, “Stay here where you’re hiding, and I’ll go into this camp to see if it’s the one we’re looking for.” He went through the camp but didn’t find the lodge he was searching for. He returned to the hiding spot and informed the group that this wasn’t the camp they wanted, as the spotted horses weren’t there. They left the camp and continued on.
When they had come close to the mountains they saw another camp. Kut-a´wi-kutz went into this camp alone, and when he had been through it, he went back to his party and told them that this was the camp they had been looking for. Then he sent the young men into the camp to steal horses, and he put on his fine leggings and moccasins that he had [Pg 30] in his bundle, and painted himself and went with them. He took a horse and his friend took one. They met outside the village. He told his friend to get on his own horse and lead the other, and with the rest of the party to go off east from the camp to a certain place, and there to wait for him. “I have seen,” he said, “another fine horse that I like, and I wish to go back and get it.”
When they got close to the mountains, they spotted another camp. Kut-a´wi-kutz entered this camp alone, and after checking it out, he returned to his group and informed them that this was the camp they had been searching for. Then he sent the young men into the camp to steal horses, and he put on his nice leggings and moccasins that he had [Pg30] in his bundle, painted himself, and accompanied them. He took one horse, and his friend took another. They met outside the village. He told his friend to get on his own horse and lead the other one, and to join the rest of the group heading east from the camp to a specific spot, where they should wait for him. “I have seen,” he said, “another nice horse that I like, and I want to go back and get it.”
His friend looked sorrowfully at him and said, “Why are you all dressed up like this, and why is your face painted? What are you doing or what is in your mind? Perhaps you intend to do some great thing to-night that you do not want me, your friend, to know about. I have seen for a long time that you are hiding something from me.”
His friend looked at him with sadness and said, “Why are you all dressed up like this, and why is your face painted? What are you planning, or what are you thinking? Maybe you’re planning something big tonight that you don’t want me to know about. I’ve noticed for a while that you’re keeping something from me.”
Kut-a´wi-kutz caught his friend in his arms and hugged him and kissed him and said, “You are my friend; who is so near to me as you are? Go on as I have said, and if it turns out well I will tell you all. I will catch up with you before very long.”
Kut-a´wi-kutz caught his friend in his arms, hugged him, and kissed him, saying, “You are my friend; who is as close to me as you are? Keep going as I’ve said, and if it works out well, I’ll tell you everything. I’ll catch up with you soon.”
His friend said, “No, I will stay with you. I will not go on. I love you as a brother, and I will stay with you, and if you are going to do some great thing I will die with you.”
His friend said, “No, I’ll stick with you. I’m not going anywhere. I care about you like a brother, and I’ll stay by your side. If you’re going to do something significant, I’ll face it with you.”
When Kut-a´wi-kutz found that his friend was [Pg 31] resolved to remain with him, he yielded and told him his secret. He said to him, “My brother, when we were on the warpath a year ago, and I took those two spotted horses, I heard a little noise in the lodge by which they were tied. I looked in and I saw there a girl sitting by the fire combing her hair. She was very pretty. When I took the spotted horses away, I could not put that girl out of my mind. I remembered her. Brother, when we went back home that girl was constantly in my mind. I could not forget her. I came this time on purpose to get her, even if it shall cost me my life. She is in this camp, and I have found the lodge where she lives.”
When Kut-a´wi-kutz realized his friend was [Pg31] determined to stay with him, he gave in and shared his secret. He said, “My brother, a year ago when we were going to war and I took those two spotted horses, I heard a little noise in the lodge where they were tied. I looked in and saw a girl sitting by the fire, combing her hair. She was really pretty. After I took the spotted horses away, I couldn't stop thinking about that girl. Brother, when we returned home, she was always on my mind. I couldn't forget her. I came this time specifically to find her, even if it costs me my life. She is in this camp, and I've found the lodge where she lives.”
His friend said, “My brother, whatever you say shall be done. I stay with you. You go into the camp. I will take the horses and go to that high rocky hill east of the camp, and will hide the horses there. When you are in the village I will be up in one of the trees on the top of the hill, looking down on the camp. If I hear shooting and see lots of people running to the lodge I will know that you are killed, and I will kill myself. I will not go home alone. If I do not see you by noon, I will kill myself.”
His friend said, “My brother, whatever you need will be taken care of. I'm staying with you. You go into the camp. I'll take the horses and head to that high, rocky hill to the east of the camp and hide the horses there. While you're in the village, I'll be up in one of the trees at the top of the hill, watching the camp. If I hear gunfire and see a lot of people running to the lodge, I’ll know you’ve been killed, and I’ll take my own life. I won’t go home alone. If I don’t see you by noon, I’ll end my life.”
Kut-a´wi-kutz said, “It is good. If I am successful [Pg 32] I will go up there after you, and take you down into the camp.”
Kut-a´wi-kutz said, “It’s good. If I’m successful [Pg32] I will go up there after you and bring you down to the camp.”
They parted. The friend hid the horses and went up on the hill. Kut-a´wi-kutz went into the camp.
They went their separate ways. The friend concealed the horses and climbed up the hill. Kut-a´wi-kutz entered the camp.
III.
It was now the middle of the night. When he came to the lodge, he saw there was a fire in it. He did not go in at once; he wanted the fire to go out. He stayed around the lodge, and gradually the fire died down. It was dark. He went into the lodge. He was painted and finely dressed, and had his bundle with him. He took his moccasins off and his leggings, and hung them up over the girl’s bed; then strings of beads, then five or six medals, bracelets, ear-bobs, beaded leggings, everything he had—his shirt. He took his blanket, and spread it over the bed where the girl was lying, stepped over the bed, and crept under his own blanket, and lay down by her side.
It was now the middle of the night. When he arrived at the lodge, he saw there was a fire burning inside. He didn’t go in right away; he wanted the fire to die down first. He stayed outside the lodge, and gradually the fire flickered out. It was dark. He entered the lodge. He was painted and dressed nicely, and he had his bundle with him. He took off his moccasins and leggings, hanging them over the girl’s bed; then he placed strings of beads, followed by five or six medals, bracelets, earrings, beaded leggings, everything he had—his shirt. He took his blanket and spread it over the bed where the girl was lying, stepped over the bed, and crawled under his own blanket, lying down beside her.
When he lay down she woke up, and found that there was some one lying by her, and she spoke to him, but he did not answer. He could not understand her, for he did not know Comanche. She talked for a long time, but he did not speak. Then [Pg 33] she began to feel of him, and when she put her hands on his head—Pi-ta´-da—Pawnee—an enemy! Then she raised herself up, took a handful of grass from under the bed, spread the fire and put the grass on it. The fire blazed up and she saw him. Then she sprang up and took the top blanket, which was his, off the bed, and put it about her, and sat by the fire. She called her father and said, “Father get up; there is a man here.”
When she lay down, she woke up and realized there was someone lying next to her. She spoke to him, but he didn’t respond. He couldn’t understand her because he didn’t know Comanche. She talked for a long time, but he remained silent. Then [Pg33] she started to feel him, and when she placed her hands on his head—Pi-ta´-da—Pawnee—an enemy! She then sat up, grabbed a handful of grass from under the bed, started the fire, and threw the grass on it. The fire flared up, and she saw him clearly. In that moment, she jumped up, took the top blanket, which belonged to him, off the bed, wrapped it around herself, and sat by the fire. She called for her father and said, “Father, get up; there’s a man here.”
The old man got up, and got his pipe and began smoking. This old man was the Head Chief of the Comanches. He called the servant, and told him to make a fire. The girl got up and went over to where her mother was lying and called her. The mother got up; and they all sat by the fire.
The old man stood up, grabbed his pipe, and started smoking. This old man was the Head Chief of the Comanches. He called for the servant and asked him to make a fire. The girl got up and went to where her mother was lying down and called her. The mother stood up, and they all sat by the fire.
The old man smoked for a long time. Every now and then he would look at the bed to see who it could be that was lying there, and then he would look at all the things hanging up over the bed—at the medals and other things. He did not know what they were for, and he wondered. At length the old man told the servant to go and call the chiefs of the tribe, and tell them to come to his lodge.
The old man smoked for a long time. Every now and then, he would glance at the bed to see who was lying there, then look at all the items hanging above the bed—medals and other things. He didn't know what they were for, and he wondered about it. Eventually, the old man asked the servant to go and call the chiefs of the tribe and tell them to come to his lodge.
Presently the chiefs came in one by one and sat down. When they had come there was still one [Pg 34] brave who ought to have come that was not there. His name was Skin Shirt; the father wanted him. He sent for him three times. He sent word back to the chief to go on with the council, and that he would agree to whatever they decided. The fourth time he was sent for he came, and took a seat by the chief, the girl’s father. This brave spoke to Kut-a´wi-kutz, and told him to get up, and take a seat among them. He did so. The girl was sitting on the other side of the fire. When he got up, he had to take the blanket that was left, which was the girl’s. He put it around him, and sat down among them.
Right now, the chiefs came in one by one and sat down. Once they were all there, there was still one brave who should have been present but wasn’t. His name was Skin Shirt; the father wanted him there. He sent for him three times. Skin Shirt replied that the chief should carry on with the council and that he would accept whatever they decided. The fourth time he was called, he finally came and took a seat next to the chief, the girl’s father. This brave spoke to Kut-a´wi-kutz, telling him to get up and join them. He did so. The girl was sitting on the opposite side of the fire. When he got up, he had to take the only blanket left, which belonged to the girl. He wrapped it around himself and sat down with them.
When the chiefs came in, there was among them a Pawnee who had been captured long ago and adopted by the Comanches, and was now himself a chief; he talked with Kut-a´wi-kutz and interpreted for him, telling him everything that was said as each one spoke.
When the chiefs arrived, there was a Pawnee among them who had been captured long ago and adopted by the Comanches, and he was now a chief himself; he talked with Kut-a´wi-kutz and interpreted for him, relaying everything that was said as each person spoke.
After the young man had seated himself, the chief filled his pipe, and gave the pipe to his brave to decide what should be done with this enemy. The brave took the pipe, but he did not wish to decide, so he did not light it, but passed it on to another chief to decide. He passed it on to another, and he to another, and so it went until the pipe came back [Pg 35] to the Head Chief. When he got it again, he asked Kut-a´wi-kutz, “Why have you come here this night and lain down in my lodge, you who are an enemy to my people? And why have you hung up in the lodge all these strange things which we see here? I do not understand it, and I wish to know your reasons.”
After the young man sat down, the chief filled his pipe and handed it to his warrior to decide what to do with this enemy. The warrior took the pipe but didn’t want to make a decision, so he didn’t light it and passed it to another chief to decide. He passed it to another, and then to another, and it continued like that until the pipe came back [Pg35] to the Head Chief. When he got it back, he asked Kut-a´wi-kutz, “Why have you come here tonight and laid down in my lodge, you who are an enemy to my people? And why have you hung up all these strange things we see here? I don’t understand, and I want to know your reasons.”
The boy said to him, “A long time ago I came south on the warpath to steal horses. I traveled until I came to your camp. I saw three horses tied outside a lodge, two spotted horses and a gray. While I was cutting one of the ropes, I heard a little noise inside the lodge, and pushing aside the door I looked in, and saw that girl combing her hair. I stole the two spotted horses, and took them out of the camp, and gave them to a friend of mine, and came back to your lodge, and kept looking at the girl. I stayed there until she went to bed. For a long year I have been buying presents; beads and many other things, for I had made up my mind that I would go after this girl. I came down here to find her. I have been to where you were camped last year, and to two other camps that I discovered. She was not in these and I left them, and came on until I found the right camp. This is the fourth place. Now I am here. I made up my mind to do this thing, and [Pg 36] if her relations do not like it they can do as they please. I would be happy to die on her account.”
The boy said to him, “A long time ago, I came south with the intention of stealing horses. I traveled until I reached your camp. I saw three horses tied outside a lodge—two spotted ones and a gray one. While I was cutting one of the ropes, I heard a little noise inside the lodge. I pushed the door aside and looked in, and there was that girl combing her hair. I stole the two spotted horses, took them out of the camp, gave them to a friend, and came back to your lodge, just to keep looking at the girl. I stayed there until she went to bed. For a whole year, I've been buying gifts—beads and many other things—because I made up my mind to go after this girl. I came down here to find her. I went to where you were camped last year and to two other camps I discovered. She wasn’t in any of those places, so I left and kept going until I found the right camp. This is the fourth place. Now I’m here. I decided to do this, and if her family doesn’t like it, they can do what they want. I would be happy to die for her.”
When he had spoken the old chief laughed. He said: “Those two spotted horses that you stole I did not care much about. The gray horse was the best one of the three, and you left him. I was glad that you did not take him. He was the best of all.” Then for a little while there was silence in the lodge.
When he finished speaking, the old chief laughed. He said, “I didn’t really care about those two spotted horses you stole. The gray horse was the best of the three, and you left him behind. I was happy you didn’t take him. He was the best of all.” Then there was silence in the lodge for a little while.
Then the chief, the girl’s father, began to talk again; he said, “If I wanted to decide what should be done with this man, I would decide right now, but here is my brave, Skin Shirt, I want him to decide. If I were to decide, it would be against this man, but he has my daughter’s blanket on, and she has his, and I do not want to decide. I pass the pipe to my brave, and want him to light it.”
Then the chief, the girl’s father, started talking again; he said, “If I wanted to decide what should happen to this man, I would do it right now, but here’s my brave one, Skin Shirt, I want him to decide. If it were up to me, I’d be against this man, but he’s wearing my daughter’s blanket, and she has his, and I don’t want to make that decision. I’m passing the pipe to my brave one and want him to light it.”
The brave said, “I want this chief next to me to decide,” and he passed him the pipe, and so it went on around the circle until it came to the Head Chief again. He was just about to take it and decide the question, when they heard outside the lodge the noise made by some one coming, shouting and laughing; then the door was pushed aside and an old man came in, and as he passed the door he stumbled [Pg 37] and fell on his knees. It was the girl’s grandfather. He had been outside the lodge, listening.
The brave said, “I want this chief next to me to decide,” and he handed him the pipe. Then it went around the circle until it got back to the Head Chief. He was just about to pick it up and make a decision when they heard someone outside the lodge, shouting and laughing. The door swung open, and an old man walked in; as he entered, he stumbled and fell to his knees. It was the girl’s grandfather. He had been outside the lodge, listening. [Pg37]
The pipe was passed to the chief, and he gave it again to his brave to decide. While the brave was sitting there, holding the pipe, the old grandfather said, “Give me the pipe, if you men cannot decide, let me do it. In my time we did not do things this way. I never passed the pipe; I could always decide for myself.”
The pipe was handed to the chief, who then handed it back to his warrior to make the decision. While the warrior was sitting there, holding the pipe, the old grandfather said, “Give me the pipe. If you all can’t decide, let me take care of it. In my day, we didn’t do things like this. I never passed the pipe; I always made my own decisions.”
Then Skin Shirt passed him the pipe, and he lit it and smoked. Then he said, “I do not wish to condemn to death a man who is wearing my granddaughter’s blanket.” The interpreter began to tell Kut-a´wi-kutz that the old man was going to decide in his favor, and that when he got through speaking he must get up and pass his hands over him, and thank him for taking pity on him, and so to all the others. The old man continued, “Now, chiefs, do not think hardly of what I am going to say, nor be dissatisfied with my decision. I am old. I have heard in my time that there is a tribe up north that is raising from the ground something that is long and white, and something that is round; and that these things are good to eat. Now, chiefs, before I die, I want to eat of these things, and I want my [Pg 38] granddaughter to go and take her seat by this man, and for them to be man and wife. Since I was young we have been enemies, but now I want the two tribes to come together, join hands and be friends.” And so it was decided.
Then Skin Shirt passed him the pipe, and he lit it and smoked. Then he said, “I don’t want to condemn to death a man who is wearing my granddaughter’s blanket.” The interpreter began to tell Kut-a´wi-kutz that the old man was going to decide in his favor, and that when he finished speaking he must get up, pass his hands over him, and thank him for showing kindness, and do the same for everyone else. The old man continued, “Now, chiefs, don’t take offense at what I’m about to say, nor be unhappy with my decision. I am old. In my time, I’ve heard that there is a tribe up north that is pulling from the ground something long and white, and something round; and that these things are good to eat. Now, chiefs, before I die, I want to eat these things, and I want my [Pg38] granddaughter to go and sit next to this man, and for them to be married. Since I was young we have been enemies, but now I want the two tribes to come together, shake hands, and be friends.” And so it was decided.
The young man got up and passed his hands over the old man, and over the brave, and passed around the circle and blessed them all. The Pawnee, who was interpreter, now told him to get up, and get a medal and put it on the brave, and then another and put it on the chief, and so on until all the presents were gone. And he did so, and put on them the medals, and ear-rings, and strings of beads, and breast-plates of wampum, until each had something. And these things were new to them, and they felt proud to be wearing them, and thought how nice they looked.
The young man stood up and waved his hands over the old man and the brave warrior, then moved around the circle, blessing everyone. The Pawnee, who was the interpreter, instructed him to rise, take a medal, and place it on the brave warrior, then another one for the chief, and so on until all the gifts were distributed. He followed through, adorning them with medals, earrings, strings of beads, and breastplates made of wampum, making sure everyone received something. These items were new to them, and they felt proud to wear them, admiring how nice they looked.
IV.
By this time it was daylight, and it had got noised abroad through the camp that there was a Pawnee at the Head Chief’s lodge, and all the people gathered there. They called out, “Bring him out; we want him out here.” They crowded about the lodge, all the people, the old men and the women and the young men, so many that at last they pushed [Pg 39] the lodge down. They shouted: “Let us have the Pawnee. Last night they stole many horses from us.” The chiefs and braves got around the Pawnee, and kept the Comanches off from him, and protected him from the people. The Cheyennes were camped close by, near the hill southeast of the Comanches, and they, too, had heard that the Comanches had a Pawnee in the camp. They came over, and rode about in the crowd to try and get the Pawnee, and they rode over a Comanche or two, and knocked them down. So Skin Shirt got his bow and arrows, and jumped on his horse, and rode out and drove the Cheyennes away back to their camp again.
By now it was light out, and word had spread through the camp that there was a Pawnee at the Head Chief’s lodge, so everyone gathered there. They called out, “Bring him out; we want him out here.” People crowded around the lodge—old men, women, and young men—so many that they eventually pushed [Pg39] the lodge down. They shouted: “Let us have the Pawnee. Last night they stole many horses from us.” The chiefs and warriors surrounded the Pawnee to protect him from the angry crowd. The Cheyennes, camped nearby on a hill southeast of the Comanches, had also heard that there was a Pawnee in the camp. They rode over, weaving through the crowd to try to grab the Pawnee, and bumped into a few Comanches, knocking them down. So Skin Shirt grabbed his bow and arrows, hopped on his horse, and rode out to drive the Cheyennes back to their camp.
The Cheyennes saw that the Comanches did not want the Pawnee killed, so they sent a message inviting him over to a feast with them, intending to kill him, but Skin Shirt told them that he was married into the tribe. While the Cheyennes were parading round the Comanche camp, they were shooting off their guns in the air, just to make a noise. Now, the young Pawnee on the hill, who was watching the camp to see what would happen to his friend, saw the crowd and heard the shooting, and made up his mind that Kut-a´wi-kutz had been killed. So he took his knife, and put the handle against a tree and the [Pg 40] point against his breast, and put his arms around the tree and hugged it, and the knife blade passed through his heart and he fell down and died.
The Cheyennes noticed that the Comanches didn’t want the Pawnee dead, so they sent a message inviting him to a feast, planning to kill him. However, Skin Shirt told them he was married into the tribe. While the Cheyennes were circling the Comanche camp, they fired their guns into the air just to create noise. Meanwhile, the young Pawnee on the hill, watching the camp to see what would happen to his friend, saw the crowd and heard the gunfire, and assumed that Kut-a´wi-kutz had been killed. So he took his knife, placed the handle against a tree with the blade against his chest, wrapped his arms around the tree and hugged it tightly; the knife blade went through his heart, and he fell down and died.
In the afternoon when all the excitement had quieted down, the Cheyennes came over again to the Comanche camp, and invited the Pawnee and his wife to go to their village, and visit with them. Then Skin Shirt said, “All right, we will go.” Three chiefs of the Comanches went ahead, the Pawnee followed with his wife, and Skin Shirt went behind. They went to the Cheyenne camp. The Cheyennes received them and made a great feast for them, and gave the Pawnee many horses. Then they went back to the Comanche camp. Kut-a´wi-kutz never went up to the hill until the next morning. Then he went, singing the song he had told his friend he would sing. He called to him, but there was no reply. He called again. It was all silent. He looked for his friend, and at last he found him there dead at the foot of the tree.
In the afternoon, after all the excitement had settled down, the Cheyennes came back to the Comanche camp and invited the Pawnee and his wife to visit their village. Skin Shirt said, “All right, we’ll go.” Three chief members of the Comanches went ahead, followed by the Pawnee and his wife, with Skin Shirt coming last. They reached the Cheyenne camp, where they were warmly welcomed, and the Cheyennes prepared a big feast for them, giving the Pawnee many horses. Afterward, they returned to the Comanche camp. Kut-a´wi-kutz didn't go up the hill until the next morning. When he did, he sang the song he had promised his friend. He called out to him, but there was no answer. He called again, but it was silent. He searched for his friend and finally found him dead at the foot of the tree.
V.
Kut-a´wi-kutz then stayed with the Comanches. The Cheyennes came north and east, and the Comanches went on west, nearer to the mountains. While the Pawnee was with the Comanches, they had [Pg 41] several wars with the Utes, Lipans and Tonkaways. Kut-a´wi-kutz proved himself a brave man, and, as the son-in-law of the chief, he soon gained great influence, and was himself made a chief.
Kut-a´wi-kutz then stayed with the Comanches. The Cheyennes moved north and east, while the Comanches went west, closer to the mountains. While the Pawnee was with the Comanches, they had [Pg41] several conflicts with the Utes, Lipans, and Tonkaways. Kut-a´wi-kutz proved to be a brave man, and as the chief's son-in-law, he quickly gained significant influence and was made a chief himself.
After some years the old man, his wife’s grandfather, told the Pawnee that he thought it was time that he should eat some of those things that he had long wanted to eat that grew up north; that he was getting pretty old now. Kut-a´wi-kutz said, “It is time. We will go.” So he had his horses packed, and with his immediate family and the old man, started north toward the Pawnee country. At this time he was called Kut-a´wi-kutz-u si-ti´-da-rit, which means “See! The Hawk.” When going into battle he would ride straight out to strike his enemy, and the Comanches who were looking at him would say, “See! The Hawk.” So that became his name.
After a few years, the old man, his wife's grandfather, told the Pawnee that he thought it was time for him to eat some of the things he had long wanted to eat that grew up north because he was getting pretty old now. Kut-a´wi-kutz replied, “It is time. We will go.” So he had his horses packed, and with his immediate family and the old man, he started north toward the Pawnee country. At that time, he was called Kut-a´wi-kutz-u si-ti´-da-rit, which means “See! The Hawk.” When going into battle, he would ride straight out to strike his enemy, and the Comanches who watched him would say, “See! The Hawk.” That's how he got his name.
They traveled a long time until they came to the Pawnee ground. As they were traveling along, they came to a field where were growing corn, beans and squashes. The Pawnee said to the old man, “Grandfather, look at that field. There are the things that you have desired to eat.” He got off his horse and went into the field, and pulled some corn, some beans and some squashes, and took them to the old man, [Pg 42] and gave them to him. The old man supposed they were to be eaten just as they were, and he tried to bite the squashes. This made the Pawnee laugh. When they came to the village, the Pawnees were very glad to see him who had been lost long ago. He told the people that he had brought these Indians to eat of the corn and other things; that they were his kinsfolk. He told them, too, about the young man who had killed himself. His relations went out into the fields, and gathered corn and beans and squashes, and cooked them for the Comanches.
They traveled for a long time until they reached Pawnee land. While they were on their way, they passed a field where corn, beans, and squashes were growing. The Pawnee said to the old man, “Grandfather, look at that field. Those are the things you wanted to eat.” He got off his horse, went into the field, picked some corn, beans, and squashes, and brought them to the old man, [Pg42] and gave them to him. The old man thought they were meant to be eaten as they were, and he tried to bite into the squashes. This made the Pawnee laugh. When they arrived at the village, the Pawnees were very happy to see someone who had been lost a long time ago. He told the people that he had brought these Indians to eat the corn and other foods; that they were his family. He also told them about the young man who had taken his own life. His relatives went out to the fields to gather corn, beans, and squashes, and cooked them for the Comanches.
They stayed there a long time at the Pawnee village. When they were getting ready to return, the Pawnees dried their corn, and gave a great deal of it to the Comanches, packing many horses with it for the Indians at home. Then the Comanches started south again, and some of the Pawnee young men, relations of Kut-a´wi-kutz, joined him, and went back with them. After they had returned to the Comanche camp, the old grandfather died, happy because he had eaten the things he wanted to eat.
They stayed for a long time at the Pawnee village. When they were about to head back, the Pawnees dried their corn and gave a lot of it to the Comanches, loading many horses with it for the Indians back home. Then the Comanches headed south again, and some of the young Pawnee men, relatives of Kut-a´wi-kutz, joined them and went back with them. After they got back to the Comanche camp, the old grandfather died happy because he had eaten the foods he wanted.
Soon after this, Kut-a´wi-kutz started back to the Pawnee village, and some young men of the Comanches joined him. Some time after reaching the [Pg 43] village he went south again, accompanied by some young Pawnees, but leaving most of the Comanches behind. He had arranged with the chiefs of the Pawnees that they should journey south, meet the Comanches on the plains and make peace. When he reached the Comanches, the whole village started north to visit the Pawnees, and met them on their way south. When they met, the two tribes made friends, smoked together, ate together, became friends.
Soon after this, Kut-a´wi-kutz started his journey back to the Pawnee village, and a few young men from the Comanches joined him. After reaching the [Pg43] village, he headed south again, accompanied by some young Pawnees, but left most of the Comanches behind. He had made arrangements with the Pawnee chiefs for them to travel south, meet the Comanches on the plains, and establish peace. When he arrived with the Comanches, the entire village set off north to visit the Pawnees and met them on their way south. When they encountered each other, the two tribes became friends, shared a smoke, and ate together, bonding as allies.
After they had camped together for some time, some Comanches stayed in the Pawnee camp, and some Pawnees in the Comanche camp. Kut-a´wi-kutz was called by the Pawnees Comanche Chief. He would have remained with the Comanches, but when he went back with them his wife fell sick. The Comanche doctors could not help her, and he wanted to take her north to see the Pawnee doctors, but the Comanches would not let him. They kept him there, and his wife died. Then he was angry, for he thought if he had taken her north her life might have been saved.
After they had camped together for a while, some Comanches stayed in the Pawnee camp, and some Pawnees in the Comanche camp. Kut-a´wi-kutz was called the Comanche Chief by the Pawnees. He wanted to stay with the Comanches, but when he returned with them, his wife became ill. The Comanche doctors couldn't help her, and he wanted to take her north to see the Pawnee doctors, but the Comanches wouldn't allow it. They kept him there, and his wife passed away. Then he was angry because he believed that if he had taken her north, her life might have been saved.
So he left the Comanches, and went and lived with the Pawnees, and was known among them always as Comanche Chief, the Peace-Maker, because he made [Pg 44] peace between the Pawnees and Comanches. He was chief of the Ski´-di band, and a progressive man of modern times. He sent his children East to school at Carlisle, Pa.
So he left the Comanches and went to live with the Pawnees, where he was always known as Comanche Chief, the Peace-Maker, because he created peace between the Pawnees and Comanches. He was the chief of the Ski´-di band and a forward-thinking person of his time. He sent his children to school in the East at Carlisle, Pa.
Comanche Chief died September 9th, 1888.
Comanche Chief died on September 9, 1888.

PAWNEE PIPE.
Pawnee Pipe.
LONE CHIEF.
Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar.
Skurrara Le-shar.
I.
LONE CHIEF was the son of the chief of the Kit-ke-hahk´-i band. His father died when the boy was very young, less than a year old. Until he was old enough to go to war, his mother had supported him by farming—raising corn, beans and pumpkins. She taught the boy many things, and advised him how to live and how to act so that he might be successful. She used to say to him, “You must trust always in Ti-ra´-wa. He made us, and through him we live. When you grow up, you must be a man. Be brave, and face whatever danger may meet you. Do not forget, when you look back to your young days, that I have raised you, and always supported you. You had no father to do it. Your father was [Pg 46] a chief, but you must not think of that. Because he was a chief, it does not follow that you will be one. It is not the man who stays in the lodge that becomes great; it is the man who works, who sweats, who is always tired from going on the warpath.”
LONE CHIEF was the son of the chief of the Kit-ke-hahk'i band. His father passed away when he was very young, less than a year old. Until he was old enough to fight, his mother supported him by farming—growing corn, beans, and pumpkins. She taught him many things and advised him on how to live and act to be successful. She would say to him, “You must always trust in Ti-ra´-wa. He created us, and through him we live. When you grow up, you need to be a man. Be brave, and face any danger that comes your way. Don’t forget, when you look back on your childhood, that I raised you and always supported you. You didn’t have a father to do it. Your father was a chief, but you shouldn’t think about that. Just because he was a chief doesn’t mean you will be one. It’s not the man who stays in the lodge who becomes great; it’s the man who works hard, who sweats, and who is always tired from going on the warpath.”
Much good advice his mother gave him. She said, “When you get to be a man, remember that it is his ambition that makes the man. If you go on the warpath, do not turn around when you have gone part way, but go on as far as you were going, and then come back. If I should live to see you become a man, I want you to become a great man. I want you to think about the hard times we have been through. Take pity on people who are poor, because we have been poor, and people have taken pity on us. If I live to see you a man, and to go off on the warpath, I would not cry if I were to hear that you had been killed in battle. That is what makes a man: to fight and to be brave. I should be sorry to see you die from sickness. If you are killed, I would rather have you die in the open air, so that the birds of the air will eat your flesh, and the wind will breathe on you and blow over your bones. It is better to be killed in the open air than to be smothered in the earth. Love your friend and [Pg 47] never desert him. If you see him surrounded by the enemy, do not run away. Go to him, and if you cannot save him, be killed together, and let your bones lie side by side. Be killed on a hill; high up. Your grandfather said it is not manly to be killed in a hollow. It is not a man who is talking to you, advising you. Heed my words, even if I am a woman.”
Much good advice his mother gave him. She said, “When you grow up, remember that ambition is what makes a man. If you decide to go to war, don’t turn back halfway; keep going until you’ve completed your mission, and then come back. If I live to see you become a man, I want you to be a great one. Think about the tough times we’ve faced. Have compassion for those who are poor, because we’ve been poor, and others have shown us kindness. If I live to see you as a man going off to war, I wouldn’t cry if I heard you were killed in battle. That’s what makes a man: to fight and be brave. I would be sad to see you die from illness. If you must die, I’d prefer you die in the open air, so the birds can feast on you and the wind can blow over your bones. It’s better to die outside than to be buried underground. Love your friend and never abandon him. If you see him surrounded by the enemy, don’t run away. Go to him, and if you can’t save him, then die together, and let your bones rest side by side. Be killed on a hill; up high. Your grandfather said it’s not heroic to die in a hollow. It’s not just anyone talking to you; heed my words, even if I’m a woman.”
The boy listened to these words, and he did not forget them.
The boy heard these words, and he didn't forget them.
II.
In the year 1867 he enlisted in the Pawnee Scouts under Major Frank North, and served in L. H. North’s company. He was always a good soldier, ready, willing and brave. At a fight near the Cheyenne Pass in 1867, he counted coup on a woman and a man, Arapahoes who had stolen some horses at Fort Laramie.
In 1867, he joined the Pawnee Scouts under Major Frank North and served in L. H. North’s company. He was always a great soldier—ready, willing, and brave. During a fight near Cheyenne Pass in 1867, he counted coup on a woman and a man, Arapahoes who had stolen horses from Fort Laramie.
At this time the boy’s name was Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, Running Chief. After he came back from this scout, he went on a war party of which Left Hand was the leader, and they went to the Osage country. He was no longer a servant, but a scout, a leading man in the party, one of those who went ahead as spies. He had good judgment and understood his [Pg 48] duties. When they came to the Osage country, he was selected as one of the leaders of a small branch party to steal horses. His party took thirty head of horses. In the Osage country the young men were not allowed to take all the horses they could. On account of the few fords where they could cross the streams, they could not take a big herd, but only what they could ride and lead, and at the same time go fast. Across one river there was only one rocky ford, and over another stream with deep banks there was only one rocky ford where they could cross. Because they did not know this, in former times many Pawnees had been caught and killed in the Osage country. So now they took but few horses at a time, because these rivers were very deep and no one could cross them except at these rock fords. Out of the horses taken at this time Running Chief obtained one of the best and fastest ever known among the Pawnees—a cream-colored horse, long famous in the tribe. For his skillful leadership of this party he was given much credit.
At this time, the boy's name was Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, Running Chief. After he returned from this reconnaissance, he joined a war party led by Left Hand, and they headed into Osage territory. He was no longer just a servant; he was now a scout, a key member of the group, one of those who went ahead as spies. He had good judgment and understood his responsibilities. When they arrived in Osage country, he was chosen as one of the leaders of a small team to steal horses. His team managed to take thirty horses. In the Osage area, young men weren't allowed to take as many horses as they wanted. Due to the limited fords where they could cross the streams, they couldn't take a large herd, only what they could ride and lead quickly. There was only one rocky ford across one river, and over another stream with steep banks, there was also just one rocky crossing available. Because they were unaware of this, many Pawnees had previously been caught and killed in Osage territory. So now, they only took a few horses at a time since those rivers were very deep and could only be crossed at these rocky fords. Among the horses taken this time, Running Chief got one of the best and fastest ever known among the Pawnees—a cream-colored horse, long celebrated in the tribe. For his skilled leadership of this party, he received a lot of recognition.
After returning home—the same year—he led a party to go off on the warpath to the Cheyennes. He found a camp on the headwaters of the North Canadian, and his party took seven horses, but these [Pg 49] horses looked thin and rough, and he was not satisfied with them; he was ashamed to go home with only these. He told his party to take them home, but that he was going off by himself to get some better ones. He had with him a friend, with whom he had grown up, and whom he loved. This young man was like a brother to Running Chief. These two went off together, and went to the Osage camp, and staid about it for three nights, and then took five horses, the best in the camp. They took them back to the village. It was customary for the leading man in a party to make a sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa. Running Chief did this, giving one horse to the chief priest. This sacrifice promoted him to be a warrior.
After coming back home that same year, he led a group to go after the Cheyennes. They found a camp by the headwaters of the North Canadian River, and his group captured seven horses, but these [Pg49] horses looked weak and scruffy, and he wasn’t happy with them; he felt embarrassed to return home with just these. He told his group to take them back, but he was going off by himself to find better ones. He had a friend with him, a guy he grew up with and cared for deeply. This young man was like a brother to Running Chief. The two of them went off together to the Osage camp, staying there for three nights, and they managed to take five horses, the best in the camp. They brought them back to the village. It was a tradition for the leader of a group to make a sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa. Running Chief did this by giving one horse to the chief priest. This sacrifice elevated him to the status of a warrior.
III.
The next year he led a party again to the Osage country. He took some horses and brought them home. This same year (1868) a party started south. He was not the leader, but he went with them. They went to the Wichita, Comanche and Kiowa villages—they were all camped together—stole some horses and started back with them. Before they had gone very far Running Chief stopped and said he was going back. His friend was with the party, and [Pg 50] when he found that Running Chief had resolved to go back he said, “I will stop here with you.”
The next year, he led a group back to the Osage territory. He brought some horses home with him. That same year (1868), another group headed south. He wasn’t the leader, but he went along with them. They visited the Wichita, Comanche, and Kiowa villages—all camping together—took some horses, and started their way back. Before long, Running Chief stopped and said he was heading back. His friend was with the group, and [Pg50] when he learned that Running Chief had decided to return, he said, “I will stay here with you.”
The two went back toward the village that they had just left, and climbed a hill that stood near it, and hid themselves there. They waited, watching, for they had not decided what they would do. The next day in the afternoon they began to get hungry, and they began to talk together. Running Chief said to his friend, “My brother, are you poor in your mind?[1] Do you feel like doing some great thing—something that is very dangerous?”
The two made their way back to the village they had just left and climbed a nearby hill to hide. They waited and watched, uncertain about their next move. The following afternoon, hunger set in, and they started talking. Running Chief asked his friend, “My brother, are you feeling lost?[1] Do you want to do something significant—something really risky?”
[1] Poor in mind; i. e., despondent, unhappy, miserable.
Feeling down; i.e., depressed, unhappy, miserable.
His friend answered at once, “Yes, I am poor. I am ready. Why do you ask me?”
His friend replied immediately, “Yes, I’m broke. I’m ready. Why do you ask me?”
Running Chief thought a little while before he answered, and as he thought, all the pain and suffering of his life seemed to rise up before him, so that he could see it. He remembered how he had been a poor boy, supported by his mother, and all that they two had suffered together while he was yet a child. He remembered how his sister had been killed when he was a boy only ten years old, and how he had mourned for her, when her husband, who was jealous of her, had shot her through the body with an arrow and killed her. She was the only sister he [Pg 51] had, and he had loved her. He felt that he was poor now, and that there was no hope of anything better for him, and he did not want to live any longer. After he had thought of all these things he said to his friend, “My life is not worth anything to me;” and then he told him of his bad feelings. Finally he said, “Now you go off and leave me here alone. I am tired of living, but you go home. You have relations who would mourn for you. I do not want you to lose your life on my account.”
Running Chief thought for a moment before he replied, and as he did, all the pain and suffering from his life seemed to come back to him, making it feel real again. He remembered how he had been a poor boy, supported by his mother, and all the hardships they endured together while he was still a child. He recalled how his sister had been killed when he was just ten, and how deeply he grieved for her after her husband, who was jealous, shot her with an arrow and took her life. She was his only sister, and he had loved her. He felt poor now, and saw no hope for a better future, and he didn't want to live any longer. After remembering all these things, he told his friend, “My life means nothing to me,” and then shared his feelings of despair. Finally, he said, “Now you should go and leave me here alone. I'm tired of living, but you should go home. You have family who would mourn for you. I don’t want you to lose your life because of me.”
His friend answered him, “I will not go away from you. We have grown up together, and I will stick to you. Wherever you go I will go, and whatever you do I will do.”
His friend replied, “I’m not leaving you. We grew up together, and I’m here to stay. Wherever you go, I’ll go, and whatever you do, I’ll do.”
Then Running Chief meditated for a long time. He had not made up his mind what to do. He thought to himself, “This, my friend, will stay with me. I do not want to be the cause of his death.” So he considered. Finally he said to his friend, “If I shall make up my mind to go to some place where there is great danger, I shall go.”
Then Running Chief thought deeply for a long time. He hadn’t decided what to do. He said to himself, “This, my friend, will stay with me. I don’t want to be the reason for his death.” So he pondered. Finally, he said to his friend, “If I decide to go somewhere that's really dangerous, I will go.”
His friend said, “I will go with you.”
His friend said, “I'll go with you.”
Running Chief thought again, and at last he said, “On account of my feelings I have decided to go into the camp of my enemies, and be eaten by their dogs.”
Running Chief thought again, and finally he said, “Because of my feelings, I've decided to go into the camp of my enemies and be eaten by their dogs.”
[Pg 52] The other man said, “Whatever you have determined on I also will do.”
[Pg52] The other man said, “Whatever you decide, I'll do too.”
IV.
Then they jumped up out of the hole they were hiding in, and tied up their waists, and prepared to start. They were not very far from a trail which connected two villages, along which persons kept passing, and the Indians of these villages were all about them. When they jumped up to go toward the trail, they saw four or five persons passing at a little distance. When they saw these people, Running Chief called out to them, “High—eigh,” and made motions for them to come to him. He wanted to show his strong will, and that on account of his bad feelings he wished to have his troubles ended right there. He called to them twice, and each time the Indians stopped and looked at the Pawnees, and then went on. They did not know who it was that was calling them; perhaps they thought the Pawnees were two squaws.
Then they jumped out of the hole they were hiding in, tied around their waists, and got ready to leave. They weren't too far from a trail connecting two villages, where people were frequently passing by, and the Indians from these villages were all around them. As they got up to head toward the trail, they noticed four or five people passing by at a little distance. When they spotted these people, Running Chief called out to them, “High—eigh,” and gestured for them to come over. He wanted to demonstrate his strong will, and because of his bad feelings, he hoped to resolve his troubles right there. He called out to them twice, and each time the Indians stopped and looked at the Pawnees, then continued on their way. They didn't know who was calling them; maybe they thought the Pawnees were two women.
The two young men went out to the trail and followed these persons toward the village. They went over a little hill, and as soon as they had come to the top and looked over it, they saw the village. On this [Pg 53] side of it, and nearest to them were three lodges. At the foot of the hill was a river, which they must cross to come to these three lodges. When they came to the river, the friend asked; “Shall we take off our moccasins and leggings to cross?” Running Chief replied, “Why should I take off my moccasins and leggings when I know that my life is just going over a precipice? Let us go in as we are.” So they crossed with moccasins and leggings on. The river was only half-leg deep.
The two young men headed out to the trail and followed these people toward the village. They climbed a small hill, and as soon as they reached the top and looked over, they spotted the village. On this [Pg53] side, closest to them, were three lodges. At the bottom of the hill was a river they needed to cross to reach these three lodges. When they got to the river, the friend asked, “Should we take off our moccasins and leggings to cross?” Running Chief replied, “Why should I take off my moccasins and leggings when I know that my life is just about to go over a cliff? Let’s go in as we are.” So they crossed with their moccasins and leggings on. The river was only knee-deep.
Just as they reached the further bank, all on a sudden, it came over Running Chief what they were doing—that they were going to certain death. All his courage seemed to leave him, and he felt as if he had no bones in his body. Then for a moment he faltered; but he could not give up now. He felt that if he was a man he must go forward; he could not turn back. He stopped for an instant; and his friend looked at him, and said, “Come, let us hurry on. We are near the lodges.” He stepped forward then, but his feet seemed to be heavy and to drag on the ground. He walked as if he were asleep.
Just as they reached the other side, it suddenly hit Running Chief what they were doing—that they were heading towards certain death. All his courage seemed to fade away, and he felt like he had no strength left in his body. For a moment, he hesitated; but he couldn't give up now. He knew that if he was a man, he had to move forward; he couldn't turn back. He paused for a moment, and his friend looked at him and said, “Come on, let’s hurry. We’re close to the lodges.” He stepped forward then, but his feet felt heavy and dragged on the ground. He walked as if he were in a daze.
There was no one about near at hand, and as they went forward Running Chief prayed with all his mind to Ti-ra´-wa that no one might come until they [Pg 54] had reached the lodge, and had got inside. When they had got to within about one hundred yards of the lodge, a little boy came out, and began to play around the door, and when they were about fifty yards from him he saw them. As soon as he looked at them, he knew that they did not belong to the camp, and he gave a kind of a scream and darted into the lodge, but no one came out. The people within paid no attention to the boy. As they walked toward the lodges Running Chief seemed not to know where he was, but to be walking in a dream. He thought of nothing except his longing to get to this lodge.
There was no one around, and as they moved forward, Running Chief prayed with all his heart to Ti-ra´-wa that no one would show up until they had reached the lodge and gotten inside. When they were about a hundred yards from the lodge, a little boy came out and started to play near the door. When they were about fifty yards away, he saw them. As soon as he looked at them, he realized they didn’t belong to the camp, and he gave a scream and ran into the lodge, but no one came out. The people inside ignored the boy. As they approached the lodges, Running Chief seemed lost, as if he were walking in a dream. He thought of nothing except his desire to reach this lodge.
They went to the largest of the three lodges. Running Chief raised the door and put his head in, and as he did so, it seemed as if his breath stopped. He went in and sat down far back in the lodge, opposite the entrance, and though his breath was stopped, his heart was beating like a drum. His friend had followed him in, and sat down beside him. Both had their bows in their hands, strung, and a sheaf of arrows.
They went to the biggest of the three lodges. Running Chief lifted the door and peeked inside, and it felt like his breath was caught in his throat. He stepped in and settled all the way in the back of the lodge, across from the entrance, and even though he was breathless, his heart was pounding like a drum. His friend followed him inside and sat down next to him. Both held their bows, strung, along with a bundle of arrows.
When they entered the lodge, the man who was lying down at the back of the lodge uttered a loud exclamation, “Woof,” and then seemed struck dumb. [Pg 55] A plate of corn mush had just been handed him, but he did not take it, and it sat there on the ground by him. One woman was just raising a buffalo horn spoon of mush to her mouth, but her hand stopped before reaching it, and she stared at them, holding the mush before her face. Another woman was ladling some mush into a plate, and she held the plate in one hand and the ladle above it, and looked at them without moving. They all seemed turned into stone.
When they walked into the lodge, the man lying at the back let out a loud, surprised “Woof,” and then appeared speechless. [Pg55] A plate of corn mush had just been given to him, but he didn’t take it, and it sat on the ground next to him. One woman had just brought a buffalo horn spoon of mush to her mouth, but her hand froze before reaching it, and she stared at them, holding the mush up to her face. Another woman was scooping some mush into a plate, and she held the plate in one hand while the ladle hovered above it, looking at them without moving. They all seemed frozen in place.
As the two Pawnees sat there, Running Chief’s breath suddenly came back to him. Before it had all been dark about him, as if he had been asleep; but now the clouds had cleared away, and he could see the road ahead of him. Now he felt a man, and brave. As he looked around him, and saw the man lying motionless, and one woman just ready to take a mouthful, and the other woman with the ladle held over the dish, he perceived that they could not move, they were so astonished.
As the two Pawnees sat there, Running Chief suddenly regained his breath. Everything had felt dark around him, as if he had been asleep; but now the clouds had lifted, and he could see the path ahead. He felt like a man, and felt brave. As he looked around and saw the man lying still, one woman just about to take a bite, and another woman with the ladle hovering over the dish, he realized they were frozen in place, completely astonished.
At length the Wichita had come to his senses. He drew a long breath, and sat up, and for a while looked at the two Pawnees. Then he made some sign to them which they did not understand, but they guessed that he was trying to ask who they [Pg 56] were. Running Chief struck his breast, and said, “Pi-ta´-da” (Pawnee). As soon as the Wichita heard that he caught his breath, and heaved a long sigh. He did not know what to think of two Pawnees coming into his lodge. He could not think what it meant. He drew a long breath. He did not touch his plate of food, but motioned a woman to take it away. Presently he called to some one in the neighboring lodge. He was answered, and in a moment a man came in. He called again, and another entered, and the three looked for a long time at the two Pawnees. These were sitting motionless, but watching like two wildcats to see what was going to happen. Each had his bow and arrows by his side, and his knife inside his robe. At length the owner of the lodge spoke, and one of the men went out, and after a little they heard the sound of horses’ hoofs coming, and they supposed some one was riding up. Every now and then Running Chief would touch his friend’s knee with his own, as if to say, “Watch.”
At last, the Wichita had come to his senses. He took a deep breath, sat up, and stared at the two Pawnees for a while. Then he made some kind of gesture that they didn’t understand, but they figured he was trying to ask who they were. Running Chief tapped his chest and said, “Pi-ta´-da” (Pawnee). As soon as the Wichita heard that, he gasped and let out a long sigh. He was confused about what it meant for two Pawnees to be in his lodge. He couldn’t wrap his head around it. He took another deep breath. He didn’t touch his plate of food and signaled for a woman to take it away. After a moment, he called out to someone in the neighboring lodge. He got a response, and shortly after, a man walked in. He called again, and another man entered, and the three of them stared for a long time at the two Pawnees, who sat still but were watching like two wildcats, waiting to see what would happen next. Each had a bow and arrows by their side and a knife tucked in their robe. Finally, the owner of the lodge spoke, and one of the men stepped outside. After a little while, they heard the sound of horses' hooves approaching, leading them to believe someone was riding up. Every now and then, Running Chief would nudge his friend’s knee with his own, as if to say, “Watch.”
The owner of the lodge made a sign and pointed to the east and said “Capitan.”[2] At the same time he was dressing himself up, putting on a pair of [Pg 57] officer’s trousers and a uniform coat. Meantime the Pawnees heard the rattle of one saddle, and then of another. The Wichita chief put on his blanket, and his pistol belt around it, and then made signs for them to go out. He led the way, and the Pawnees followed. As they went, Running Chief touched his friend, as if to say, “Watch. They may shoot us as we go out.” But when they looked out of the lodge, the Wichita was walking toward the horses, so there was no danger. He mounted a horse, and signed to Running Chief to get up behind him. Another man mounted the other horse, and the friend got up behind him.
The owner of the lodge made a sign, pointed to the east, and said, “Capitan.”[2] At the same time, he was getting dressed, putting on a pair of officer’s pants and a uniform jacket. Meanwhile, the Pawnees heard the sound of one saddle, and then another. The Wichita chief put on his blanket and his pistol belt over it, then gestured for them to go outside. He led the way, and the Pawnees followed. As they walked, Running Chief nudged his friend, as if to say, “Be careful. They might shoot us as we leave.” But when they looked out of the lodge, the Wichita was walking toward the horses, so there was no danger. He got on a horse and signaled for Running Chief to get on behind him. Another man got on the other horse, and his friend climbed up behind him.
As they rode toward the main village, it came into the mind of Running Chief to kill the man he was riding behind, and to ride away. There was where he had to fight his hardest battle. He was tempted to kill this man in front of him, but he was not overpowered by this temptation. He overcame it. He thought that perhaps he might be mounted on a poor horse, and even if he did kill this man and his friend the other, they might be on slow horses and be caught at once. Every little while he would look at his friend and roll his eyes, as if to say, “Watch on your side and I will watch on mine.”
As they rode toward the main village, Running Chief suddenly thought about killing the man in front of him and just riding away. That was where he faced his toughest challenge. He felt the urge to kill this man, but he didn't give in to that temptation. He pushed it aside, considering that he might be on a slow horse, and even if he killed this guy and his friend, they could easily be caught if their horses were sluggish. Every so often, he would glance at his friend and roll his eyes, as if to signal, “You keep an eye out on your side, and I’ll keep watch on mine.”
[Pg 58] As he came near to the village, the Wichita warrior called out, and began to sing a song, and all at once the village was in an uproar. The men, women and children seemed to start up out of the ground, and the lodges poured forth their inmates. Running Chief felt that he was in danger, but he knew that he was not in as much danger as the man before him. He could take the pistol out of the belt that he had hold of and kill him, or he could use his own knife. The Wichita knew that he was in danger. He knew that he was in the power of the enemy.
[Pg58] As he approached the village, the Wichita warrior shouted and started to sing, causing an immediate uproar. The men, women, and children seemed to spring up from the ground, and the lodges emptied out their inhabitants. Running Chief sensed he was in danger, but he realized he was not as threatened as the man in front of him. He could grab the pistol from the belt he was holding and shoot him, or he could use his own knife. The Wichita understood that he was in danger. He knew he was at the mercy of the enemy.
After the Wichita had called out to the people that they had enemies with them, he kept on talking, saying, “Keep quiet. Do not do anything. Wait. Keep away from me and be still. I am in danger.” They would not have listened to him, if it had not been that he was a leading man, and a brave warrior. The riders came to the largest lodge, which stood in the middle of the village. Here they stopped. When Running Chief got off the horse, he held tightly the belt of the Wichita, who dismounted; and they went together into the lodge of the Head Chief, and the others followed and went in, and all sat down opposite the door. All this time there was a hubbub outside. People were flying from their lodges to [Pg 59] that of the Head Chief, and lifting up the edge of the lodge, and peeping under it at the Pawnees. They chattered to each other, and called out to those who were coming; all was noise and confusion.
After the Wichita shouted to the people that they had enemies nearby, he kept talking, saying, “Be quiet. Don’t do anything. Wait. Stay away from me and be still. I’m in danger.” They wouldn’t have listened to him if he hadn’t been a respected leader and a brave warrior. The riders arrived at the largest lodge, which was in the center of the village. Here they stopped. When Running Chief got off the horse, he held tightly to the belt of the Wichita, who also got off; and they went together into the lodge of the Head Chief, with everyone else following them inside, and they all sat down opposite the door. Meanwhile, there was a commotion outside. People were rushing from their lodges to [Pg59] that of the Head Chief, lifting the edge of the lodge and peeking underneath at the Pawnees. They chatted among themselves and called out to those who were coming; it was all noise and chaos.
V.
The under chiefs came in one by one, until all were present. Then one of them made a speech, saying that it would be best to leave everything to the Head Chief, and that he should decide what ought to be done with these enemies. Then it was silent for a time, while the Chief was making up his mind what should be done; and during this silence Running Chief felt a touch on his shoulder, and looked behind him, and there was handed to him under the edge of the lodge a dish of meat. He took it and began to eat, and his companion also ate with him. After he had eaten a few mouthfuls, he took his arrows, which he had held in his hand, and put them in his quiver, and unstrung his bow and laid it aside, and his friend did the same.
The under chiefs entered one by one until everyone was there. Then one of them spoke up, saying it would be best to leave everything to the Head Chief, who should decide what to do about the enemies. After that, there was a moment of silence as the Chief considered what action to take. During this quiet time, Running Chief felt a tap on his shoulder and looked back to see a dish of meat being handed to him from under the edge of the lodge. He took it and started to eat, and his friend joined him. After he had eaten a few bites, he took his arrows, which he had been holding, put them in his quiver, unstrung his bow, and set it aside, and his friend did the same.
Then the Chief stood up and spoke to those sitting there and said, “What can I do? They have eaten of my food. I cannot make war on people who have been eating with me.” While he was saying [Pg 60] this, Running Chief was again touched on the shoulder, and some one handed him a cup of water, and he drank; and the Chief, as he saw this, added, “and have also drunk of my water.” He then turned and called to a certain man, who could speak Pawnee, and told him to ask these men if they were on the warpath. He asked them, “Are you on the warpath?” and they replied, “Yes, we are on the warpath.”
Then the Chief stood up and spoke to everyone there, saying, “What can I do? They have shared my food. I can’t go to war against people who have eaten with me.” While he was saying this, Running Chief was touched on the shoulder again, and someone handed him a cup of water, which he drank; seeing this, the Chief added, “and have also drunk my water.” He then turned and called to a man who spoke Pawnee and told him to ask these men if they were preparing for war. He asked them, “Are you on the warpath?” and they replied, “Yes, we are on the warpath.”
Then said he, “What are you here for?”
Then he said, “What are you here for?”
Running Chief answered, “You have plenty of dogs. I am here that my body may be eaten by them.”
Running Chief replied, “You have plenty of dogs. I’m here so that they can eat my body.”
When the Wichitas heard this they all made a sound, Ah-h-h-h! for they were surprised at his bravery. The Chief asked him, “Do you know anything about the horses that were missed last night?”
When the Wichitas heard this, they all gasped, Ah-h-h-h! because they were surprised by his bravery. The Chief asked him, “Do you know anything about the horses that went missing last night?”
He said, “Yes.”
He said, “Yeah.”
“Where are they?” said the Head Chief.
“Where are they?” asked the Head Chief.
Running Chief replied, “The party have gone off with them—Pawnees.”
Running Chief replied, “The group has left with them—Pawnees.”
“Were you with them?”
"Were you with them?"
“Yes, I was with them, and I stopped behind on purpose to come into your village.”
“Yes, I was with them, and I intentionally stayed back to come to your village.”
[Pg 61] The Head Chief then turned to the others and talked for a little while. He said, “See what a brave man this is. He had resolved to die. But he shall not die, because he has eaten our food and drunk of our water. Although we are enemies of this man’s tribe, yet we are the same people with them, who have been apart for a long time. I cannot help it; my heart is touched by his talk and by their bravery. By their bravery they are safe.” And all the Wichitas said “Waugh.”
[Page61] The Head Chief then turned to the others and spoke for a little while. He said, “Look at how brave this man is. He was prepared to die. But he won't die, because he has eaten our food and drunk our water. Even though we are enemies of this man's tribe, we are still the same people, just separated for a long time. I can't help it; my heart is moved by his words and by their courage. Because of their courage, they are safe.” And all the Wichitas said “Waugh.”
Then the Head Chief through the interpreter talked to Running Chief. He said, “Are you a chief?”
Then the Head Chief, through the interpreter, spoke to Running Chief. He said, “Are you a chief?”
Running Chief replied, “No, I am not a chief; I am like a dog; I am poor.”
Running Chief replied, “No, I’m not a chief; I’m like a dog; I’m poor.”
The Head Chief said to him, “By your bravery you have saved yourselves. You shall have the road to your home made white before you. Let there not be one blood spot on it.” Then he turned to those who were sitting about the lodge and said, “Now, my young men, do something for them.”
The Head Chief said to him, “Because of your bravery, you have saved yourselves. The path home will be cleared for you. Make sure there isn’t a single drop of blood on it.” Then he turned to those sitting around the lodge and said, “Now, my young men, do something for them.”
A young man named Crazy Wolf stood up and spoke; and when he had finished, the interpreter said, “That man has given you a black horse, the best that he has.”
A young man named Crazy Wolf stood up and spoke; and when he was done, the interpreter said, “That man has given you a black horse, the best one he has.”
[Pg 62] Another young man on the other side of the lodge spoke, and the interpreter said, “He has given you a roan horse, the best that he has.” Then all the Wichitas began to speak at once, and before they knew it, the Pawnees had ten head of horses, and robes and blankets, saddles, bridles, shields, spears and moccasins—many beautiful presents. So they were well provided.
[Pg62] Another young man on the other side of the lodge spoke, and the interpreter said, “He has given you a reddish-brown horse, the best he has.” Then all the Wichitas began to talk at once, and before they realized it, the Pawnees had ten horses, along with robes and blankets, saddles, bridles, shields, spears, and moccasins—lots of beautiful gifts. So they were well equipped.
The Head Chief again stood up and talked to the assembly, praising these Pawnees; and he stepped over to Running Chief and shook hands with him, and when he did so, Running Chief stood up and put his arms around the Chief and pressed him to his breast, and the Chief did the same to him, and when Running Chief had his arms around the Chief, the Chief trembled, and came near to crying. The Chief embraced the other Pawnee, and looked him in the face and said, “What brave men you are!”
The Head Chief stood up again and spoke to the group, praising the Pawnees. He walked over to Running Chief, shook his hand, and when he did, Running Chief stood up, wrapped his arms around the Chief, and held him close. The Chief returned the embrace, and as Running Chief held him, the Chief trembled and nearly cried. The Chief hugged the other Pawnee, looked him in the eye, and said, “You are all so brave!”
The friend said, “What my friend stepped, that I stepped; I trod in his footprints; I had one mind with him.”
The friend said, “Where my friend walked, I walked; I followed in his footsteps; I was on the same page as him.”
As the Chief stepped back to his place he spoke through the interpreter, “Now you have eaten of my food and drunk of my water. Everything that I have is yours. My women and my children are [Pg 63] yours. You are not a chief, but you are a chief.”[3] Then he spoke to the crowd and they all went away, leaving only the principal men in the lodge.
As the Chief stepped back into position, he communicated through the interpreter, “Now you’ve eaten my food and drunk my water. Everything I have is yours. My women and my children are yours. You may not be a chief, but you are a chief.”[Pg63] Then he addressed the crowd, and they all departed, leaving only the main men in the lodge.
That afternoon the Pawnees were feasted everywhere, and had to eat till they were almost dead; and as they went about, all of their former sadness seemed to be swept away, and Running Chief felt like crying for joy.
That afternoon, the Pawnees were treated to feasts everywhere and had to eat until they were nearly bursting. As they moved around, all their previous sadness seemed to vanish, and Running Chief felt like crying from happiness.
While they were feasting, the man who had given the black horse went out, and caught it up, and painted it handsomely, and rode into the village, and put on it a silver bridle, and eagle feathers in its mane and tail, and when Running Chief was going from one lodge to another he met him, and jumped off the horse and said, “Brother, ride this.” He gave him also a shield and a spear.
While they were having their feast, the man who had given the black horse went out, caught it, painted it beautifully, and rode into the village. He put a silver bridle on it and added eagle feathers to its mane and tail. When Running Chief was walking from one lodge to another, he came across him, jumped off the horse, and said, “Brother, ride this.” He also gave him a shield and a spear.
These Pawnees staid two months with the Wichitas, and all their troubles seemed at an end. At length Running Chief called a council of the chiefs, and told them that now he wished to make ready to go home to his village. He thanked them for all that they had done for him, and said that now he would go. The chiefs said, “It is well. We are glad that [Pg 64] you have been with us and visited us. Take the good news back to your tribe. Tell them that we are one people, though long separated. Let the road between our villages be made white. Let it no more show any spots of blood.”
These Pawnees stayed two months with the Wichitas, and all their troubles seemed to be over. Finally, Running Chief called a meeting of the chiefs and told them he wanted to get ready to go home to his village. He thanked them for everything they had done for him and said that he would be leaving now. The chiefs replied, “That’s great. We’re happy that you have been here and visited us. Share the good news with your tribe. Tell them that we are one people, even though we’ve been apart for a long time. Let the road between our villages be clear. Let it no longer show any signs of blood.”
Running Chief thanked them and said, “I will go and take the good news to my people. I shall show them the presents you have made us, and tell them how well we have been treated. It may be that some of the chiefs of my tribe will wish to come down to visit you, as I have done.” The Head Chief said, “Can I rely on your words, that I shall be visited?” Running Chief replied, “You can rely on them if I have to come alone to visit you again.” The Chief got up and put his arms about him, and said, “I want to be visited. Let there be no more war between us. We are brothers; let us always be brothers.” Then they gave him many more presents, and packed his horses, and six braves offered to go with him through the Cheyenne country. They went through in the night. Running Chief said afterward, “I could have stolen a lot of horses from the Cheyennes, but I thought, I will be coming back through this country and it is better not.”
Running Chief thanked them and said, “I will go and share the good news with my people. I’ll show them the gifts you’ve given us and tell them how well we’ve been treated. Some of the chiefs from my tribe might want to come down to visit you, just like I have.” The Head Chief asked, “Can I trust your word that I’ll be visited?” Running Chief replied, “You can trust me, even if I have to come back alone to visit you again.” The Chief stood up, hugged him, and said, “I want to be visited. Let’s have no more war between us. We’re brothers; let’s always be brothers.” Then they gave him many more gifts, loaded his horses, and six warriors offered to go with him through Cheyenne territory. They traveled at night. Running Chief later said, “I could have stolen a lot of horses from the Cheyennes, but I thought, I will be coming back through this area, and it’s better not to.”
At the Pawnee village these two young men had [Pg 65] been mourned by their relations as lost or dead. It was in the spring (March, 1869) when they reached home, and there was joy in the tribe when they came in with the presents. Running Chief was praised, and so was his friend. Both had been brave and had done great things.
At the Pawnee village, these two young men had [Pg65] been mourned by their family as lost or dead. They arrived home in the spring (March, 1869), and the tribe rejoiced when they came back with gifts. Running Chief was celebrated, as was his friend. Both had shown bravery and accomplished remarkable deeds.
Now Running Chief’s name was changed from Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi to Skŭr´-ar-a le-shar (Lone Chief).
Now Running Chief’s name was changed from Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi to Skŭr´-ar-a le-shar (Lone Chief).
VI.
The following summer in August, at the close of the summer hunt, three hundred Pawnees, old men and young, under the leadership of Lone Chief, visited the Wichitas, who received them well, and gave them many horses. Lone Chief was not satisfied with the peace that he had made with the Wichitas. He also visited the Kiowas, and made peace, and was given by them eight fine horses. He also led his party to the Comanches, and visited them, and got many presents. In the fall the Pawnees returned to their village. Many of them fell sick on the way, and some died.
The following summer in August, at the end of the summer hunt, three hundred Pawnees, both old and young, led by Lone Chief, visited the Wichitas, who welcomed them warmly and gave them many horses. Lone Chief wasn't satisfied with the peace he had made with the Wichitas. He also went to see the Kiowas, made peace there, and received eight beautiful horses from them. He then took his group to visit the Comanches, where they received many gifts. In the fall, the Pawnees returned to their village. Many of them became sick on the way, and some died.
In the winter of 1869-70 Lone Chief and his friend led a war party against the Cheyennes. They took six hundred head of horses. The Cheyennes now [Pg 66] tell us that in the seventy-five lodges of that camp there was not left a hoof. All night and all next day they ran the herd. Then Lone Chief said, “Let us not run the horses any longer, they will not come after us; they are afoot.” When the party got on the north side of the Republican, on the table lands, a terrible storm of snow and wind came upon them, and they were nearly lost. For three days and three nights they lay in the storm. All were frozen, some losing toes and fingers. They survived, however, and brought in all their horses. Again Lone Chief sacrificed to Ti-ra´-wa. A second sacrifice is very unusual and a notable event.
In the winter of 1869-70, Lone Chief and his friend led a war party against the Cheyennes. They captured six hundred horses. The Cheyennes now [Pg66] tell us that in the seventy-five lodges of that camp, there wasn’t a hoof left. All night and throughout the next day, they chased the herd. Then Lone Chief said, “Let’s stop chasing the horses; they won’t follow us; they’re on foot.” When the group reached the north side of the Republican, a terrible snow and windstorm hit them, and they were nearly lost. They spent three days and three nights in the storm. Everyone was frozen, with some losing toes and fingers. However, they survived and brought back all their horses. Again, Lone Chief made a sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa. A second sacrifice is quite rare and a significant event.

OLD-FASHIONED “T. GRAY” AX.
VINTAGE “T. GRAY” AX.
THE PRISONERS OF COURT HOUSE ROCK.
COURT HOUSE ROCK is a high, square-shaped bluff, or butte, on the North Platte River. It is composed of a hard, yellowish clay, which is but slowly eroded by the weather, though soft enough to be cut readily with a knife. On all sides except one, this rock or butte is nearly or quite vertical, and its sides, smoothed and polished by the wind and the rain, offer no projecting points, to serve as foot or hand holds for one who might wish to climb up or down. On one side there is a way by which an active man may reach the summit, where he finds a flat tableland of moderate extent.
COURT HOUSE ROCK is a tall, square bluff on the North Platte River. It's made of a tough, yellowish clay, which erodes slowly due to weathering, yet it's soft enough to be easily cut with a knife. On all sides except one, this rock or bluff is nearly vertical, and its surfaces, smoothed and polished by the wind and rain, have no protrusions to serve as footholds or handholds for anyone attempting to climb up or down. There's one side where an active person can reach the top, where they find a flat tableland of moderate size.
A number of years ago a war party of Skidi, who were camped near Court House Rock, were surprised by a party of Sioux. There were many of them, and they drove the Skidi back, and at length these were [Pg 68] obliged to climb the steep side of Court House Rock. The Sioux dared not follow them up on to the rock, but guarded the only place where it was possible to come down, and camped all around the rock below to starve the Skidi out. The Skidi had nothing to eat nor to drink, and suffered terribly from hunger and still more from thirst. The leader of the party suffered most of any, for he thought that he would surely lose all his men. He felt that this was the worst of all. He must not only die, but must also be disgraced, because under his leadership the young men of his party had been lost. He used to go off at night, apart from the others, and pray to Ti-ra´-wa for help; for some way to save his party.
A few years ago, a group of Skidi camping near Court House Rock was caught off guard by a band of Sioux. There were a lot of Sioux, and they pushed the Skidi back until they had no choice but to climb the steep face of Court House Rock. The Sioux didn’t dare to follow them up the rock but positioned themselves at the only spot where they could come down, camping around the rock below to starve the Skidi out. The Skidi had no food or water and suffered immensely from hunger and even more from thirst. The leader of the group was in the worst condition, fearing he would lose all his men. This was a heavy burden for him. Not only would he have to die, but he would also face disgrace because the young men in his charge had perished under his leadership. He would often sneak away at night, away from the others, and pray to Ti-ra´-wa for help; for a way to save his party.
One night while he was praying, something spoke to him, and said, “Look hard for a place where you may get down from this rock, and so save both your men and yourself.” He kept on praying that night, and when day came, he looked all along the edge of the rock for a place where it might be possible to get down. At last he found near the edge of the cliff a point of the soft clay rock sticking up above the level of the rest. The side of the rock below it was straight up and down, and smooth. At night he took his knife, and began to cut about the base of this point [Pg 69] of rock, and night after night he kept at this until he had cut away the base of the point, so that it was no larger around than a man’s body. Then he secretly took all the lariats that the party had, and tied them together, and let them down, and found that his rope was long enough to reach the ground. He put the rope around the point, and made a loop in it for his feet, and slowly let himself down to the ground. He got there safely, and then climbed back again. The next night he called his men about him, and told them how it was, and that they might all be saved. Then he ordered the youngest and least important man of the party to let himself down, and after him the next youngest, and so on, up to the more important men, and last of all the leader’s turn came. He let himself down, and they all crept through the Sioux camp and escaped.
One night while he was praying, something spoke to him and said, “Look hard for a way to get down from this rock, and save both your men and yourself.” He kept on praying that night, and when day came, he searched along the edge of the rock for a spot where he could possibly descend. Finally, he found a point of soft clay rock jutting out above the surrounding area near the cliff's edge. The side of the rock below it was straight up and down and smooth. At night, he took his knife and began to cut around the base of this point of rock, and night after night he worked on it until he had carved away enough at the base so that it was no thicker than a man's body. Then, he secretly took all the lariats the group had, tied them together, and lowered them down, discovering that the rope was long enough to reach the ground. He wrapped the rope around the point, made a loop for his feet, and carefully let himself down to the ground. He got there safely and then climbed back up. The next night, he gathered his men and told them what he had done, explaining that they could all be saved. He then instructed the youngest and least important member of the group to lower himself down first, followed by the next youngest, and so forth, until it was the more important men's turn, and finally it was the leader's turn. He let himself down, and they all crept through the Sioux camp and escaped.
They never knew how long the Sioux stayed there watching the rock. Probably until they thought that the Skidi had all starved to death.
They never knew how long the Sioux stayed there watching the rock. Probably until they figured the Skidi had all starved to death.
WOLVES IN THE NIGHT.
IN the year 1879 Little Warrior, with a Chaui boy and a soldier, was off scouting on the plains east of the mountains. They saw a long way off—perhaps twenty miles—some objects that seemed to be moving. It was one of those hot dry days in summer, when all the air is quivering and all things are distorted by the mirage. They watched these objects through their glasses for a long time. They seemed to move and quiver, and they could not tell what they were, but Little Warrior thought they were mounted men. They seemed to be traveling in the same direction with this scouting party. At length they could see that they were mounted men, and were driving some loose animals.
IN the year 1879, Little Warrior was out scouting on the plains east of the mountains with a Chaui boy and a soldier. In the distance—maybe about twenty miles away—they spotted some objects that looked like they were moving. It was one of those hot, dry summer days when the air shimmers and everything appears distorted by the heat. They watched the objects through their binoculars for quite some time. They seemed to shift and waver, and they couldn't figure out what they were, but Little Warrior believed they were mounted men. It looked like they were heading in the same direction as this scouting party. Eventually, they realized that they were indeed mounted men and were herding some loose animals.
When night came, the two Pawnees left their horses with the soldier and started on foot to look for the camp of the strangers, and to find out who [Pg 71] they were. They formed the plan to make themselves look like coyotes, so that they could go close to the camp. Each took from under his saddle a white sheet, which, when the time came, they would tie around their bodies, having their guns inside, held under their arms, and their pistols in their belts about their waists. It was a bright moonlight night, the moon being so bright that it made it hard to see far on the prairie.
When night fell, the two Pawnees left their horses with the soldier and headed out on foot to find the camp of the strangers and discover who they were. They came up with a plan to disguise themselves as coyotes so they could get close to the camp. Each took a white sheet from under his saddle, which they would tie around their bodies when the time came, keeping their guns tucked under their arms and their pistols in their belts around their waists. It was a bright moonlit night, with the moon shining so brightly that it was difficult to see far across the prairie.
The camp was found in a little hollow, and was occupied by seven Ute Indians. They had a dog with them. The Pawnees could hear them talking and laughing, as they sat about the big fire they had built. They could see the horses too.
The camp was located in a small hollow and was occupied by seven Ute Indians. They had a dog with them. The Pawnees could hear them chatting and laughing as they gathered around the big fire they had made. They could also see the horses.
The men put on their white sheets, and getting down on all fours, prowled about like wolves, gradually drawing nearer and nearer to the camp. Two or three times the dog smelt them and barked, but they paid no attention to it, but trotted hither and thither, smelling the ground and sometimes sitting up on their haunches like wolves, and then going on again. After a little while they came so close to the camp that they could see that the horses were staked out, and that there were some mules feeding about, hobbled. One of the Utes, who noticed the wolves [Pg 72] prowling near the camp, got his gun and shot at the Chaui boy, but he did not hit him. The boy loped off and joined Little Warrior behind a hill, and there the two waited.
The men put on their white sheets and got down on all fours, creeping around like wolves, slowly getting closer to the camp. A couple of times, the dog caught their scent and barked, but they ignored it and trotted around, sniffing the ground and occasionally sitting back on their haunches like wolves before moving on again. After a little while, they got so close to the camp that they could see the horses staked out and some hobbled mules grazing nearby. One of the Utes, who spotted the wolves lurking near the camp, grabbed his gun and shot at the Chaui boy, but missed. The boy took off and joined Little Warrior behind a hill, and there the two waited.
Little Warrior said to his companion, “These men have come far to-day. They are pretty tired. Wait and they will lie down and go to sleep.” Presently the camp quieted down and the Utes slept.
Little Warrior said to his friend, “These guys have come a long way today. They’re pretty tired. Just wait, and they’ll lie down and fall asleep.” Soon, the camp quieted down, and the Utes slept.
The Pawnees then made themselves wolves again, and went close to the Ute camp. The horses were staked close to where the men were sleeping, but the mules had wandered off a little to one side. Six mules were together, and one was by itself on the other side of the camp. Little Warrior went around the camp to this one, and cut its hobbles, and then drove it slowly toward the others. Then they drove the whole seven quietly away from the camp. If it had not been for the dog, they could very likely have stolen the horses too, and left the Utes afoot, and perhaps they might have been able to kill the Utes.
The Pawnees transformed themselves back into wolves and approached the Ute camp. The horses were tied up near where the men were sleeping, but the mules had strayed a bit to one side. Six mules were together, and one was alone on the other side of the camp. Little Warrior walked around the camp to the lone mule, cut its hobbles, and then slowly guided it toward the others. After that, they quietly led all seven mules away from the camp. If it hadn’t been for the dog, they likely could have stolen the horses too, leaving the Utes on foot, and they might have even been able to kill the Utes.
They drove the mules about two miles, and then went on to where they had left their horses. They found the soldier nearly frightened to death. He said he did not like to be left by himself in such a lonely place; he wanted to go to camp. They told [Pg 73] him they were going to return and get those mules. They did so, and secured them, and drove them in to their own camp, which they reached about six o’clock the next morning.
They drove the mules for about two miles, and then continued on to where they had left their horses. They found the soldier nearly terrified. He said he didn’t like being left alone in such an empty place; he wanted to go back to camp. They told him they were going to return and get the mules. They did that, secured them, and brought them to their camp, which they reached at about six o’clock the next morning.
It was learned afterward that fourteen mules had been stolen from a Government train, and a reward of $200 had been offered for their recovery. These taken by the two Pawnees were seven of the stolen animals, and each of the men received $50 as his proportion of the reward.
It was later discovered that fourteen mules had been stolen from a government train, and a reward of $200 had been offered for their recovery. The two Pawnees took seven of the stolen animals, and each of the men received $50 as their share of the reward.

WHIP.
WHIP.
A LEADER OF SOLDIERS.
IN 1876, when the attack was made by General Mackenzie on the village of the Cheyenne chief, Dull Knife, the Pawnee Scouts charged down on the village on the south side of the creek, while on the north side of the stream, a company of United States cavalry, under Lieut. McKinney, were making a charge. Before the village was reached, Ralph J. Weeks, an educated Pawnee, and some others of the scouts crossed the stream and were riding near the soldiers. As they were crossing the cañon at the mouth of which the village stood, the enemy began to fire at them from the ravine. Lieut. McKinney was killed at the first volley, and immediately afterward his first sergeant fell, leaving the troop without a commander. The soldiers hesitated, stopped, and then turned round, and began to retreat.
IN 1876, when General Mackenzie attacked the village of Cheyenne chief Dull Knife, the Pawnee Scouts charged in from the south side of the creek, while on the north side, a unit of United States cavalry, led by Lt. McKinney, was making their advance. Before reaching the village, Ralph J. Weeks, an educated Pawnee, and some other scouts crossed the stream and rode close to the soldiers. As they approached the canyon at the entrance to the village, the enemy began firing at them from the ravine. Lt. McKinney was killed in the first volley, and shortly after, his first sergeant fell as well, leaving the troop without a leader. The soldiers hesitated, stopped, and then turned back, starting to retreat.
[Pg 75] Ralph rode up behind them, and got off his horse, and called out, “Hold on boys, don’t run. There are only seven Indians there. Come on, and we will kill them all. Get off your horses and come ahead on foot. There are only seven of them. We will kill them all.”
[Pg75] Ralph rode up behind them, got off his horse, and shouted, “Wait up, guys, don’t run. There are only seven Indians over there. Let’s go and take them out. Get off your horses and move ahead on foot. There are just seven of them. We’ll take them all.”
The men stopped in their retreat, dismounted, and under Ralph’s direction and leadership, went forward, and did kill all the Indians in the ravine.
The men halted their retreat, got off their horses, and under Ralph’s guidance, moved ahead and killed all the Indians in the ravine.

KNIFE SCABBARD.
Knife sheath.
A CHEYENNE BLANKET.
THE Cheyennes, like other Indians, do not speak to each other when they are away from the camp. If a man goes away from the village, and sits or stands by himself on the top of a hill, it is a sign that he wants to be alone; perhaps to meditate; perhaps to pray. No one speaks to him or goes near him.
THE Cheyennes, like other Native Americans, don’t talk to each other when they’re away from the camp. If a man leaves the village and sits or stands alone on a hill, it’s a sign that he wants to be by himself; maybe to think or to pray. No one approaches him or speaks to him.
Now, there was once a Pawnee boy, who went off on the warpath to the Cheyenne camp. In some way he had obtained a Cheyenne blanket. This Pawnee came close to the Cheyenne camp, and hid himself there to wait. About the middle of the afternoon, he left his hiding place, and walked to the top of the hill overlooking the village. He had his Cheyenne blanket wrapped about him and over his head, with only a little hole for his eyes. [Pg 77] He stood there for an hour or two, looking over the Cheyenne camp.
Now, there was once a Pawnee boy who set out on the warpath to the Cheyenne camp. Somehow, he had gotten his hands on a Cheyenne blanket. This Pawnee boy approached the Cheyenne camp and hid himself to wait. Around the middle of the afternoon, he left his hiding spot and walked up to the top of the hill overlooking the village. He had the Cheyenne blanket wrapped around him and over his head, leaving just a small hole for his eyes. [Pg77] He stood there for an hour or two, watching the Cheyenne camp.
They were coming in from buffalo hunting, and some were leading in the pack horses loaded down with meat. A man came along, riding a horse packed with meat, and leading another pack horse, and a black spotted horse that was his running horse. These running horses are ridden only on the chase or on war parties, and are well cared for. After being used they are taken down to the river and are washed and cleaned with care. When the boy saw this spotted horse, he thought to himself that this was the horse that he would take. When the man who was leading it reached his lodge, he dismounted and handed the ropes to his women, and went inside.
They were coming back from buffalo hunting, and some of them were leading pack horses loaded with meat. A man rode up on a horse that was also loaded with meat, leading another pack horse and a black spotted horse that was his running horse. These running horses are only used for chases or war parties, and they're well taken care of. After they’re used, they are taken to the river and washed and cleaned carefully. When the boy saw this spotted horse, he thought to himself that this was the horse he wanted to take. When the man who was leading it reached his lodge, he got off and handed the ropes to the women, then went inside.
Then the Pawnee made up his mind what he would do. He started down the hill into the village, and walked straight to this lodge where the women were unloading the meat. He walked up to them, reached out his hand, and took the ropes of the spotted horse and one of the others. As he did so the women fell back. Probably they thought that this was some one of the relations of the owner, who was going to take the running horse down to the [Pg 78] river to wash it. The Pawnee could not talk Cheyenne, but as he turned away he mumbled something—m-m-m-m—as if speaking in a low voice, and then walked down toward the river. As soon as he had gone down over the bank and was out of sight, he jumped on the spotted horse and rode into the brush, and pretty soon was away with two horses, stolen out of the Cheyenne camp in broad daylight.
Then the Pawnee decided what he would do. He went down the hill into the village and walked directly to the lodge where the women were unloading the meat. He approached them, reached out his hand, and grabbed the ropes of the spotted horse and one other. When he did this, the women stepped back. They probably thought he was a relative of the horse's owner who was going to take the running horse down to the [Pg78] river to wash it. The Pawnee couldn't speak Cheyenne, but as he turned away, he mumbled something—m-m-m-m—as if he was speaking in a low voice, and then walked toward the river. Once he was over the bank and out of sight, he jumped on the spotted horse and rode into the brush, soon escaping with two horses stolen from the Cheyenne camp in broad daylight.

A WAR SHIELD.
A battle shield.
LITTLE WARRIOR’S COUNSEL.
MOST of the Pawnee heroes are so regarded because of victories, daring deeds, the coups they have counted and the horses they have stolen. The glory of Comanche Chief and of Lone Chief depends mainly on their bravery, rather than on the fact that they were peace-makers. Yet there should be room among these stories for the account of an educated Pawnee—a brave—who by his wise counsel to an Indian of a hostile tribe saved many lives, both of Indians and of white men. Little Warrior was educated at a Western college, but has shown his bravery on the field of battle, and has sacrificed a scalp to Ti-ra´-wa.
MOST of the Pawnee heroes are celebrated for their victories, daring acts, the coups they've achieved, and the horses they've taken. The reputation of Comanche Chief and Lone Chief is primarily based on their courage, rather than their role as peacekeepers. However, there should also be space in these stories for the tale of an educated Pawnee—a brave—who, through his wise advice to a member of a rival tribe, saved many lives, both Indian and white. Little Warrior was educated at a Western college but has demonstrated his bravery on the battlefield and has sacrificed a scalp to Ti-ra´-wa.
In the year 1879, at the time of the Ute outbreak, after Major Thornburgh’s command had been annihilated, Little Warrior was employed as a scout for [Pg 80] the troops. On the headwaters of the Arkansas River he was one day scouting in advance of the command, in company with four white soldiers and four Indian scouts. One day, the party saw far off on the prairie an Indian, who showed a white flag, and came toward them. When he had come near to them, the soldiers proposed to kill him, and report that he was a Ute, one of the Indians that they were looking for. But Little Warrior said, “No. He has a white flag up, and it may be that he is carrying a dispatch, or, perhaps, he is a white man disguised as an Indian.”
In 1879, during the Ute uprising, after Major Thornburgh’s unit had been wiped out, Little Warrior was assigned as a scout for the troops. One day, while scouting ahead of the command along the headwaters of the Arkansas River, he was with four white soldiers and four Indian scouts. They spotted an Indian in the distance on the prairie holding a white flag and walking toward them. As he got closer, the soldiers suggested shooting him and claiming he was a Ute, one of the Indians they were searching for. But Little Warrior said, “No. He has a white flag, and he might be carrying a message, or maybe he’s a white man disguised as an Indian.”
When the man had come close to them, they saw that he was dressed like a Comanche; he did not have the bristling fringe of hair over the forehead that the Utes wear, and his side locks were unbraided. Little Warrior asked him, by signs, if he was alone, to which he replied in the same language that he was alone. Then Little Warrior inquired who he was. The stranger made the sign for Comanche—a friendly tribe.
When the man got closer to them, they noticed he was dressed like a Comanche; he didn't have the spiky fringe of hair on his forehead like the Utes do, and his sideburns were not braided. Little Warrior asked him, using gestures, if he was alone, to which he responded in the same way that he was alone. Then Little Warrior asked who he was. The stranger made the sign for Comanche—a friendly tribe.
They took him into the camp, and after a while Little Warrior began to talk to him in Comanche. He could not understand a word of it.
They brought him into the camp, and after a bit, Little Warrior started speaking to him in Comanche. He couldn’t understand a single word.
Then the Pawnee said to him, “My friend, you [Pg 81] are a Ute.” The stranger acknowledged that he was.
Then the Pawnee said to him, “My friend, you [Pg81] are a Ute.” The stranger admitted that he was.
Then Little Warrior talked to him, and gave him much good advice. He said, “My friend, you and I have the same skin, and what I tell you now is for your good. I speak to you as a friend, and what I say to you now is so that you may save your women and your children. It is of no use for you to try to fight the white people. I have been among them, and I know how many they are. They are like the grass. Even if you were to kill a hundred it would be nothing. It would be like burning up a few handfuls of prairie grass. There would be just as many left. If you try to fight them they will hunt you like a ghost. Wherever you go they will follow after you, and you will get no rest. The soldiers will be continually on your tracks. Even if you were to go up on top of a high mountain, where there was nothing but rocks, and where no one else could come, the soldiers would follow you, and get around you, and wait, and wait, even for fifty years. They would have plenty to eat, and they could wait until after you were dead. There is one white man who is the chief of all this country, and what he says must be done. It is no use to fight him.
Then Little Warrior spoke to him and offered a lot of solid advice. He said, “My friend, you and I are alike, and what I’m telling you now is for your benefit. I’m speaking to you as a friend, and what I say is to help you save your women and children. It won’t do you any good to try to fight the white people. I’ve been among them, and I know how many there are. They’re like grass. Even if you managed to kill a hundred, it wouldn’t matter. It would be like burning a few clumps of prairie grass—there would still be just as many left. If you take them on, they’ll pursue you relentlessly, like a ghost. No matter where you go, they’ll track you down, and you won’t find any peace. The soldiers will always be on your trail. Even if you climbed to the top of a high mountain, where it’s just rocks and no one else can reach you, the soldiers would come after you, surround you, and wait, and wait, even for fifty years. They’d have plenty of food, and they could wait until you’re gone. There’s one white man who is the leader of this entire land, and whatever he decides must be followed. It’s pointless to fight him.”
[Pg 82] “Now if you are wise you will go out and get all your people, and bring them in, on to the reservation, and give yourself up. It will be better for you in the end. I speak to you as a friend, because we are both the same color, and I hope that you will listen to my words.”
[Pg82] “Now, if you’re smart, you should gather your people and bring them to the reservation, and surrender. It will be better for you in the long run. I’m speaking to you as a friend because we share the same background, and I hope you’ll take my advice to heart.”
The Ute said, “My friend, your words are good, and I thank you for the friendly advice you have given me. I will follow it and will agree to go away and bring in my people.”
The Ute said, “My friend, your words are wise, and I appreciate the friendly advice you've shared with me. I will take it to heart and agree to leave and gather my people.”
Little Warrior said, “How do you make a promise?”
Little Warrior asked, “How do you make a promise?”
The Ute said, “By raising the right hand to one above.”
The Ute said, “By raising the right hand to someone above.”
Little Warrior said, “That is the custom also among my people.”
Little Warrior said, “That’s the custom with my people too.”
The Ute raised his hand and made the promise.
The Ute raised his hand and made the promise.
After he had been detained two or three weeks, he was allowed to go, and about a month afterward, he brought in the band of which he was chief, and surrendered. Through his influence afterward, the whole tribe came in and gave themselves up. He was grateful to Little Warrior for what he had done for him, and told him that if he ever came back into his country he would give him many ponies.
After he had been held for two or three weeks, he was released, and about a month later, he brought in the band he led and surrendered. Because of his influence, the entire tribe eventually came in and turned themselves in. He was thankful to Little Warrior for helping him and told him that if he ever returned to his country, he would give him many ponies.
A COMANCHE BUNDLE.
A PAWNEE boy went to the Comanche village after horses. At night he went into the camp, crept to the door of a lodge, and took a horse that was tied there. It was bright moonlight, and as he was cutting the rope he saw, hanging before the lodge, a handsome shield and a spear, which he took. There was also a bundle hanging there. He took this down, opened it, and found in it a war bonnet, beaded moccasins and leggings, and a breast-plate of long beads. He dressed himself in all these fine things, mounted the horse and rode away.
A PAWNEE boy went to the Comanche village to steal horses. At night, he sneaked into the camp, crept up to the door of a lodge, and took a horse that was tied there. It was a bright moonlit night, and while he was cutting the rope, he noticed a beautiful shield and a spear hanging in front of the lodge, which he took as well. There was also a bundle hanging there. He took it down, opened it, and found a war bonnet, beaded moccasins and leggings, and a breastplate made of long beads. He put on all these fine things, mounted the horse, and rode away.
Folk-Tales.
THE DUN HORSE.
I.
MANY years ago, there lived in the Pawnee tribe an old woman and her grandson, a boy about sixteen years old. These people had no relations and were very poor. They were so poor that they were despised by the rest of the tribe. They had nothing of their own; and always, after the village started to move the camp from one place to another, these two would stay behind the rest, to look over the old camp, and pick up anything that the other Indians had thrown away, as worn out or useless. In this way they would sometimes get pieces of robes, worn out moccasins with holes in them, and bits of meat.
MANY years ago, in the Pawnee tribe, there was an old woman and her grandson, a sixteen-year-old boy. They had no family and were very poor. Their poverty made them look down upon by the other members of the tribe. They owned nothing and would always stay behind after the village moved camp to search through the old site and gather whatever the other Indians discarded as worn out or useless. Through this, they would occasionally find scraps of robes, tattered moccasins with holes, and leftover bits of meat.
Now, it happened one day, after the tribe had moved away from the camp, that this old woman [Pg 88] and her boy were following along the trail behind the rest, when they came to a miserable old worn out dun horse, which they supposed had been abandoned by some Indians. He was thin and exhausted, was blind of one eye, had a bad sore back, and one of his forelegs was very much swollen. In fact, he was so worthless that none of the Pawnees had been willing to take the trouble to try to drive him along with them. But when the old woman and her boy came along, the boy said, “Come now, we will take this old horse, for we can make him carry our pack.” So the old woman put her pack on the horse, and drove him along, but he limped and could only go very slowly.
Now, it happened one day, after the tribe had moved away from the camp, that this old woman [Pg88] and her boy were following along the trail behind everyone else when they came across a sad old worn-out dun horse, which they thought had been left behind by some Indians. He was thin and exhausted, blind in one eye, had a bad sore back, and one of his front legs was really swollen. In fact, he was so useless that none of the Pawnees had wanted to bother trying to drive him along with them. But when the old woman and her boy found him, the boy said, “Come on, let’s take this old horse; we can make him carry our pack.” So the old woman put her pack on the horse and urged him forward, but he limped and could only move very slowly.
II.
The tribe moved up on the North Platte, until they came to Court House Rock. The two poor Indians followed them, and camped with the others. One day while they were here, the young men who had been sent out to look for buffalo, came hurrying into camp and told the chiefs that a large herd of buffalo were near, and that among them was a spotted calf.
The tribe traveled up the North Platte until they reached Court House Rock. The two unfortunate Indians followed along and set up camp with the rest. One day while they were there, the young men who had been sent to search for buffalo rushed into camp and informed the chiefs that a large herd of buffalo was nearby, and among them was a spotted calf.
The Head Chief of the Pawnees had a very beautiful daughter, and when he heard about the spotted [Pg 89] calf, he ordered his old crier to go about through the village, and call out that the man who killed the spotted calf should have his daughter for his wife. For a spotted robe is ti-war´-uks-ti—big medicine.
The Chief of the Pawnees had a beautiful daughter, and when he heard about the spotted calf, he told his old crier to go through the village and announce that the man who killed the spotted calf could have his daughter as his wife. Because a spotted robe is ti-war´-uks-ti—big medicine.
The buffalo were feeding about four miles from the village, and the chiefs decided that the charge should be made from there. In this way, the man who had the fastest horse would be the most likely to kill the calf. Then all the warriors and the young men picked out their best and fastest horses, and made ready to start. Among those who prepared for the charge was the poor boy on the old dun horse. But when they saw him, all the rich young braves on their fast horses pointed at him, and said, “Oh, see; there is the horse that is going to catch the spotted calf;” and they laughed at him, so that the poor boy was ashamed, and rode off to one side of the crowd, where he could not hear their jokes and laughter.
The buffalo were grazing about four miles from the village, and the chiefs decided that the charge should begin from there. This way, the person with the fastest horse would have the best chance of catching the calf. All the warriors and young men picked their best and fastest horses and got ready to take off. Among those preparing for the charge was the poor boy on the old dun horse. But when they saw him, all the wealthy young braves on their speedy horses pointed at him and said, “Oh, look; there’s the horse that’s going to catch the spotted calf,” and they laughed at him, making the poor boy feel ashamed. He rode off to the side of the crowd so he wouldn’t have to hear their jokes and laughter.
When he had ridden off some little way, the horse stopped, and turned his head round, and spoke to the boy. He said, “Take me down to the creek, and plaster me all over with mud. Cover my head and neck and body and legs.” When the boy heard the horse speak, he was afraid; but he did as he was [Pg 90] told. Then the horse said, “Now mount, but do not ride back to the warriors, who laugh at you because you have such a poor horse. Stay right here, until the word is given to charge.” So the boy stayed there.
When he had ridden for a bit, the horse stopped, turned its head, and spoke to the boy. It said, “Take me down to the creek and cover me with mud. Drench my head, neck, body, and legs.” When the boy heard the horse speak, he was scared; but he did what he was told. Then the horse said, “Now get on, but don’t ride back to the warriors, who mock you because you have such a lousy horse. Stay right here until it’s time to charge.” So the boy stayed there.
And presently all the fine horses were drawn up in line and pranced about, and were so eager to go that their riders could hardly hold them in; and at last the old crier gave the word, “Loo-ah”—Go! Then the Pawnees all leaned forward on their horses and yelled, and away they went. Suddenly, away off to the right, was seen the old dun horse. He did not seem to run. He seemed to sail along like a bird. He passed all the fastest horses, and in a moment he was among the buffalo. First he picked out the spotted calf, and charging up alongside of it, U-ra-rish! straight flew the arrow. The calf fell. The boy drew another arrow, and killed a fat cow that was running by. Then he dismounted and began to skin the calf, before any of the other warriors had come up. But when the rider got off the old dun horse, how changed he was! He pranced about and would hardly stand still near the dead buffalo. His back was all right again; his legs were well and fine; and both his eyes were clear and bright.
And soon all the beautiful horses were lined up and prancing around, so eager to go that their riders could barely hold them back; finally, the old crier called out, “Loo-ah”—Go! Then the Pawnees leaned forward on their horses and shouted, and off they sped. Suddenly, way off to the right, they saw the old dun horse. He didn’t seem to run. He seemed to glide along like a bird. He passed all the fastest horses, and in no time he was among the buffalo. First, he spotted a calf, and charging up alongside it, U-ra-rish! the arrow flew straight. The calf fell. The boy readied another arrow and took down a fat cow running by. Then he got off his horse and started to skin the calf before any of the other warriors caught up. But when the rider dismounted from the old dun horse, he had changed so much! The horse pranced around and could barely stand still near the dead buffalo. His back was fine, his legs were strong and healthy, and both his eyes were clear and bright.
[Pg 91] The boy skinned the calf and the cow that he had killed, and then he packed all the meat on the horse, and put the spotted robe on top of the load, and started back to the camp on foot, leading the dun horse. But even with this heavy load the horse pranced all the time, and was scared at everything he saw. On the way to camp, one of the rich young chiefs of the tribe rode up by the boy, and offered him twelve good horses for the spotted robe, so that he could marry the Head Chief’s beautiful daughter; but the boy laughed at him and would not sell the robe.
[Pg91] The boy skinned the calf and the cow he had killed, then packed all the meat onto the horse, placing the spotted robe on top of the load, and started back to the camp on foot, leading the dun horse. But even with this heavy load, the horse kept prancing and was startled by everything he saw. On the way to camp, one of the wealthy young chiefs of the tribe rode up to the boy and offered him twelve good horses for the spotted robe so he could marry the Head Chief’s beautiful daughter; but the boy just laughed at him and refused to sell the robe.
Now, while the boy walked to the camp leading the dun horse, most of the warriors rode back, and one of those that came first to the village, went to the old woman, and said to her, “Your grandson has killed the spotted calf.” And the old woman said, “Why do you come to tell me this? You ought to be ashamed to make fun of my boy, because he is poor.” The warrior said, “What I have told you is true,” and then he rode away. After a little while another brave rode up to the old woman, and said to her, “Your grandson has killed the spotted calf.” Then the old woman began to cry, she felt so badly because every one made fun of her boy, because he was poor.
Now, as the boy walked to the camp with the dun horse, most of the warriors rode back. One of the first to reach the village went to the old woman and said, “Your grandson has killed the spotted calf.” The old woman replied, “Why are you telling me this? You should be ashamed for making fun of my boy because he’s poor.” The warrior said, “What I’m telling you is true,” and then he rode away. Shortly after, another brave approached the old woman and said, “Your grandson has killed the spotted calf.” Then the old woman began to cry; she felt so sad because everyone mocked her boy for being poor.
[Pg 92] Pretty soon the boy came along, leading the horse up to the lodge where he and his grandmother lived. It was a little lodge, just big enough for two, and was made of old pieces of skin that the old woman had picked up, and was tied together with strings of rawhide and sinew. It was the meanest and worst lodge in the village. When the old woman saw her boy leading the dun horse with the load of meat and the robes on it, she was very much surprised. The boy said to her, “Here, I have brought you plenty of meat to eat, and here is a robe, that you may have for yourself. Take the meat off the horse.” Then the old woman laughed, for her heart was glad. But when she went to take the meat from the horse’s back, he snorted and jumped about, and acted like a wild horse. The old woman looked at him in wonder, and could hardly believe that it was the same horse. So the boy had to take off the meat, for the horse would not let the old woman come near him.
[Pg92] Before long, the boy showed up, guiding the horse to the small lodge where he and his grandmother lived. It was a tiny place, just big enough for two, made from old scraps of skin the grandmother had collected, all tied together with rawhide and sinew. It was the most rundown lodge in the village. When the grandmother saw her boy bringing in the dun horse loaded with meat and robes, she was very surprised. The boy said to her, “Look, I’ve brought you a lot of meat to eat, and here’s a robe for you. Take the meat off the horse.” Then the grandmother laughed, feeling happy. But when she tried to take the meat from the horse’s back, it snorted and jumped around like a wild animal. The grandmother looked at him in amazement, hardly believing it was the same horse. So the boy had to unload the meat because the horse wouldn’t let the grandmother get close.
III.
That night the horse spoke again to the boy and said, “Wa-ti-hes Chah´-ra-rat wa-ta. To-morrow the Sioux are coming—a large war party. They will attack the village, and you will have a great battle. [Pg 93] Now, when the Sioux are drawn up in line of battle, and are all ready to fight, you jump on to me, and ride as hard as you can, right into the middle of the Sioux, and up to their Head Chief, their greatest warrior, and count coup on him, and kill him, and then ride back. Do this four times, and count coup on four of the bravest Sioux, and kill them, but don’t go again. If you go the fifth time, may be you will be killed, or else you will lose me. La-ku´-ta-chix—remember.” So the boy promised.
That night, the horse spoke to the boy again and said, “Wa-ti-hes Chah´-ra-rat wa-ta. Tomorrow, the Sioux are coming—a large war party. They will attack the village, and you’re going to have a big battle. [Pg93] Now, when the Sioux are lined up for battle and ready to fight, you need to jump on me and ride as hard as you can right into the middle of the Sioux, up to their Head Chief, their best warrior. Count coup on him, kill him, and then ride back. Do this four times, counting coup on four of the bravest Sioux and killing them, but don’t go again. If you go the fifth time, you might get killed, or you might lose me. La-ku´-ta-chix—remember.” So the boy promised.
The next day it happened as the horse had said, and the Sioux came down and formed a line of battle. Then the boy took his bow and arrows, and jumped on the dun horse, and charged into the midst of them. And when the Sioux saw that he was going to strike their Head Chief, they all shot their arrows at him, and the arrows flew so thickly across each other that the sky became dark, but none of them hit the boy. And he counted coup on the Chief, and killed him, and then rode back. After that he charged again among the Sioux, where they were gathered thickest, and counted coup on their bravest warrior, and killed him. And then twice more, until he had gone four times as the horse had told him.
The next day, just as the horse had said, the Sioux came down and formed a line for battle. The boy took his bow and arrows, jumped on the dun horse, and charged right into the middle of them. When the Sioux saw he was about to attack their Head Chief, they all shot arrows at him, and the arrows flew so densely that the sky turned dark, but none of them hit the boy. He counted coup on the Chief and killed him, then rode back. After that, he charged again into the thickest part of the Sioux, counted coup on their bravest warrior, and killed him. Then he did it two more times, until he had gone four times like the horse had told him.
[Pg 94] But the Sioux and the Pawnees kept on fighting, and the boy stood around and watched the battle. And at last he said to himself, “I have been four times and have killed four Sioux, and I am all right, I am not hurt anywhere; why may I not go again?” So he jumped on the dun horse, and charged again. But when he got among the Sioux, one Sioux warrior drew an arrow and shot. The arrow struck the dun horse behind the forelegs and pierced him through. And the horse fell down dead. But the boy jumped off, and fought his way through the Sioux, and ran away as fast as he could to the Pawnees. Now, as soon as the horse was killed, the Sioux said to each other, “This horse was like a man. He was brave. He was not like a horse.” And they took their knives and hatchets, and hacked the dun horse and gashed his flesh, and cut him into small pieces.
[Pg94] But the Sioux and the Pawnees kept fighting, while the boy stood by and watched the battle. Finally, he thought to himself, “I’ve gone into battle four times and killed four Sioux, and I’m fine; I’m not hurt at all. Why can't I go again?” So he hopped on the dun horse and charged again. But when he got among the Sioux, a Sioux warrior drew an arrow and shot. The arrow hit the dun horse just behind the forelegs and pierced him through. The horse fell dead. But the boy jumped off, fought his way through the Sioux, and ran away as fast as he could to the Pawnees. Once the horse was dead, the Sioux said to each other, “This horse was like a man. He was brave. He wasn’t like a horse.” They took their knives and hatchets, hacked at the dun horse, and cut his flesh into small pieces.
The Pawnees and Sioux fought all day long, but toward night the Sioux broke and fled.
The Pawnees and Sioux battled all day, but by evening the Sioux fell apart and ran away.
IV.
The boy felt very badly that he had lost his horse; and, after the fight was over, he went out from the village to where it had taken place, to mourn for his [Pg 95] horse. He went to the spot where the horse lay, and gathered up all the pieces of flesh, which the Sioux had cut off, and the legs and the hoofs, and put them all together in a pile. Then he went off to the top of a hill near by, and sat down and drew his robe over his head, and began to mourn for his horse.
The boy felt really sad that he had lost his horse; and after the fight was over, he left the village and went to the place where it had happened to grieve for his [Pg95] horse. He reached the spot where the horse lay and picked up all the pieces of flesh that the Sioux had cut off, along with the legs and hooves, and gathered them into a pile. Then he walked up to a nearby hill, sat down, pulled his robe over his head, and started to mourn for his horse.
As he sat there, he heard a great wind storm coming up, and it passed over him with a loud rushing sound, and after the wind came a rain. The boy looked down from where he sat to the pile of flesh and bones, which was all that was left of his horse, and he could just see it through the rain. And the rain passed by, and his heart was very heavy, and he kept on mourning.
As he sat there, he heard a strong windstorm approaching, and it swept over him with a loud whooshing sound, and after the wind came the rain. The boy looked down from where he sat at the pile of flesh and bones, which was all that remained of his horse, and he could just see it through the rain. The rain moved on, and his heart felt very heavy, and he continued to mourn.
And pretty soon, came another rushing wind, and after it a rain; and as he looked through the driving rain toward the spot where the pieces lay, he thought that they seemed to come together and take shape, and that the pile looked like a horse lying down, but he could not see well for the thick rain.
And soon enough, another strong wind blew in, followed by rain; as he looked through the heavy downpour toward the place where the pieces were scattered, he thought they appeared to converge and take form, and that the pile resembled a horse lying down, but he couldn’t see clearly through the downpour.
After this, came a third storm like the others; and now when he looked toward the horse he thought he saw its tail move from side to side two or three times, and that it lifted its head from the ground. The boy was afraid, and wanted to run away, but he stayed.
After this, a third storm arrived just like the others; and now when he looked at the horse, he thought he saw its tail moving from side to side two or three times, and it lifted its head off the ground. The boy was scared and wanted to run away, but he stayed.
[Pg 96] And as he waited, there came another storm. And while the rain fell, looking through the rain, the boy saw the horse raise himself up on his forelegs and look about. Then the dun horse stood up.
[Pg96] As he waited, another storm rolled in. While the rain poured down, the boy peered through the downpour and saw the horse rise up on its front legs and look around. Then the dun horse got to its feet.
V.
The boy left the place where he had been sitting on the hilltop, and went down to him. When the boy had come near to him, the horse spoke and said, “You have seen how it has been this day; and from this you may know how it will be after this. But Ti-ra´-wa has been good, and has let me come back to you. After this, do what I tell you; not any more, not any less.” Then the horse said, “Now lead me off, far away from the camp, behind that big hill, and leave me there to-night, and in the morning come for me;” and the boy did as he was told.
The boy got up from where he had been sitting on the hilltop and went down to him. When the boy got close, the horse spoke and said, “You’ve seen how things have been today, and from this, you can tell how they’ll be going forward. But Ti-ra´-wa has been kind and allowed me to return to you. From now on, do exactly what I say; neither more nor less.” Then the horse said, “Now take me far away from the camp, behind that big hill, and leave me there tonight, and come back for me in the morning;” and the boy did as instructed.
And when he went for the horse in the morning, he found with him a beautiful white gelding, much more handsome than any horse in the tribe. That night the dun horse told the boy to take him again to the place behind the big hill, and to come for him the next morning; and when the boy went for him again, he found with him a beautiful black gelding. [Pg 97] And so for ten nights, he left the horse among the hills, and each morning he found a different colored horse, a bay, a roan, a gray, a blue, a spotted horse, and all of them finer than any horses that the Pawnees had ever had in their tribe before.
And when he went for the horse in the morning, he found a beautiful white gelding that was much more attractive than any horse in the tribe. That night, the dun horse told the boy to take him again to the spot behind the big hill and to come for him the next morning. When the boy went for him again, he discovered a stunning black gelding waiting. [Pg97] So, for ten nights, he left the horse among the hills, and each morning he found a differently colored horse: a bay, a roan, a gray, a blue, a spotted horse, all of them more impressive than any horses the Pawnees had ever owned before.
Now the boy was rich, and he married the beautiful daughter of the Head Chief, and when he became older, he was made Head Chief himself. He had many children by his beautiful wife, and one day when his oldest boy died, he wrapped him in the spotted calf robe and buried him in it. He always took good care of his old grandmother, and kept her in his own lodge until she died. The dun horse was never ridden except at feasts, and when they were going to have a doctors’ dance, but he was always led about with the Chief, wherever he went. The horse lived in the village for many years, until he became very old. And at last he died.
Now the boy was wealthy, and he married the beautiful daughter of the Chief. As he grew older, he became Chief himself. He had many children with his lovely wife, and one day when his eldest son died, he wrapped him in the spotted calf robe and buried him in it. He always took good care of his elderly grandmother, keeping her in his lodge until she passed away. The dun horse was only ridden during feasts and when they had a doctors' dance, but he was always led around by the Chief wherever he went. The horse lived in the village for many years until he grew very old. Eventually, he died.
A STORY OF FAITH.
LONG ago, before they ever had any of these doctors’ dances, there was, in the Kit-ke-hahk´-i tribe, a young boy, small, growing up. He seemed not to go with the other boys nor to play with them, but would keep away from them. He would go off by himself, and lie down, and sometimes they would find him crying, or half crying. He seemed to have peculiar ways. His father and mother did not try to interfere with him, but let him alone. Sometimes they would find him with mud or clay smeared over his face and head. That is the sign of a doctor. When you see a person putting mud on his face or head, it shows that he has faith in the earth. From the earth are taken the roots that they use in medicine.
LONG ago, before the doctors' dances even existed, there was a young boy in the Kit-ke-hahk´-i tribe who was small and growing up. He didn’t seem to fit in with the other boys and rarely played with them; instead, he would keep to himself. He often wandered off, laid down alone, and sometimes they would find him crying or on the verge of tears. He acted a bit differently. His parents didn’t try to change him; they allowed him to be himself. Occasionally, they would discover him with mud or clay smeared across his face and head. That’s a sign of a doctor. When you see someone applying mud to their face or head, it shows they believe in the earth. The roots used in medicine come from the earth.
[Pg 99] When the parents saw this, they did not understand it. How should he know anything about mud being the sign of a doctor? They did not understand, but they just let him do it.
[Page99] When the parents saw this, they didn’t get it. How could he know that mud was a sign of a doctor? They didn’t understand, but they just let him do it.
The boy grew up till he came to have the ways of a young man, but he never went with any of the other boys. After he had grown up, they saw that he had something in his mind. Sometimes he would fast for two days, and sit by himself, smoking and praying to Ti-ra´-wa, and not saying anything to any one. His father was a brave but not a chief, and had plenty of horses. The son was well dressed and comfortably off.
The boy grew up until he developed the demeanor of a young man, but he never hung out with the other boys. As he matured, they noticed that he had something on his mind. Sometimes he would fast for two days, sitting alone, smoking and praying to Ti-ra´-wa, without speaking to anyone. His father was brave but not a chief and had plenty of horses. The son was well-dressed and financially secure.
When any one in the camp was sick, this young man would take pity on him, and of his own accord would go and doctor him, and pretty soon the person would be well again. Through his doing this, the people began to hear about him, and his name became great. He was humble, and did not want to be thought well of. He was not proud, but he was always doing good. At that time, there were many doctors in the tribe, and they wondered how it was that he could cure so many people, when he had never been taught by any of them. They could not understand it, and they began to be jealous of him. [Pg 100] He never wanted to be with the doctors, but liked to stay by himself. He wanted to be alone rather than with any one.
When anyone in the camp was sick, this young man would take pity on them and voluntarily go to help, and soon the person would be well again. Because of this, people started to hear about him, and his name became well-known. He was humble and didn’t want to be admired. He wasn’t proud, but he was always doing good deeds. At that time, there were many doctors in the tribe, and they were puzzled by how he could heal so many people without ever having learned from any of them. They couldn’t understand it, and jealousy began to grow among them. [Pg100] He never wanted to be around the doctors but preferred to stay on his own. He chose solitude over company.
In that time there were bad doctors, and they began to hear about this humble man and to be jealous of him. These bad doctors could curse a man, and he would be cursed, and could poison one. They had great power and influence, for everybody feared them.
In that time, there were corrupt doctors, and they started hearing about this humble man and becoming jealous of him. These corrupt doctors could curse a person, and that person would be cursed, and they could poison someone. They held great power and influence because everyone feared them.
The bands of the Pawnees were not then together, as they are now. As the people talked about this young man, one of the other bands heard about him. In this band was a great doctor, and this doctor thought to himself, “This young man’s influence is growing. If I do not do something, he will soon be ahead of me.”
The Pawnee bands weren't together then like they are now. As people were discussing this young man, another band heard about him. In that band was a skilled healer, and he thought to himself, “This young man’s influence is increasing. If I don’t act, he’ll soon surpass me.”
This great doctor went to the village to visit this young man, to see how he looked, and to find out how he got his knowledge and his power, for he knew he had never been taught. He wanted to eat with him, and talk with him, and find out whence his learning came. He reached the Kit-ke-hahk´-i village. He was welcomed, and the young man treated him with respect, and asked him to come into the lodge, and sit down with him. At night they talked [Pg 101] together. The great doctor said, “I am glad to see you. You can come to me for advice sometimes.” The young man thanked him. They smoked together. It is the custom always when an Indian is visiting another, for the one that is being visited to present all the smokes; but at this time the great doctor said, “We will smoke my tobacco.” So all night they smoked his tobacco. The next morning he went away. He did not again eat with the young man. He said, “I am glad, and I am going.” And he went away to his village. This happened in the winter.
This great doctor went to the village to visit a young man, to see how he was doing, and to find out how he gained his knowledge and skills, since he knew he had never been formally taught. He wanted to share a meal with him, talk with him, and discover the source of his learning. He arrived at the Kit-ke-hahk´-i village. He was warmly welcomed, and the young man showed him respect, inviting him into the lodge to sit down together. They talked through the night. The great doctor said, “I’m glad to see you. You can come to me for advice sometimes.” The young man thanked him. They smoked together. It’s customary for the host to offer all the tobacco during an Indian visit, but this time the great doctor said, “We’ll smoke my tobacco.” So they spent the entire night smoking his tobacco. The next morning, he left. He didn’t share another meal with the young man. He said, “I’m glad, and I’m going,” and then he went back to his village. This took place in the winter.
This young man was not married. His father had asked him to marry, but he would not. He said he had reasons.
This young man was not married. His father had asked him to get married, but he refused. He said he had his reasons.
About summer time, he felt different from what he had. He was drowsy and felt badly. He felt heavy. He seemed to be swelling up with some strange new disease. The great doctor had poisoned him with this result. How it was no one can tell, but it was so. This was a disgrace, and he did not know how to get out of it. There was no way. He would go off and cry, and pray to Ti-ra´-wa, and sometimes would stay for three or four days without anything to eat. He was so miserable that one time he was [Pg 102] going to kill himself. He did not tell his father or any one about this, but kept it to himself. The tribe went off on a hunt and left the old village. Before they started, the man went off on a hill somewhere to meditate and pray, and his father told him that when he was ready to start he should ride such a horse, and he left it in the village for him when he should come in.
About summer, he felt different from before. He was tired and felt terrible. He felt weighed down. It seemed like he was suffering from some strange new illness. The great doctor had left him with this result. How it happened, no one can tell, but it was true. This was a shame, and he didn't know how to escape it. There was no way out. He would go off and cry, pray to Ti-ra´-wa, and sometimes he would go without food for three or four days. He was so miserable that one time he considered killing himself. He didn't tell his father or anyone about this; he kept it to himself. The tribe went off on a hunt and left the old village. Before they set off, the man went up on a hill somewhere to meditate and pray, and his father told him that when he was ready to leave, he should ride a specific horse, which he left in the village for him when he would return.
When he came into the empty village he found the horse tied there, and he saddled it and started; but instead of going in the direction the tribe had taken, he went east. His horse was a fine one. He went away off by himself for some days, and at last he stopped, and got off his horse, and tied it to a tree. Then he called aloud and said, “A-ti-us ta´-kaw-a (My Father, in all places), it is through you that I am living. Perhaps it was through you that this man put me in this condition. You are the ruler. Nothing is impossible to you. If you see fit, take this away from me.” Then he turned round and said, “Now, you, all fish of the rivers, and you, all birds of the air, and all animals that move upon the earth, and you, oh Sun! I present to you this animal.” He said again, “You birds in the air, and you animals upon the earth, we are related, we are alike in this [Pg 103] respect, that one ruler made us all. You see me, how unhappy I am. If you have any power, intercede for me.”
When he entered the empty village, he found a horse tied up there. He saddled it and set off, but instead of following the direction the tribe had taken, he headed east. His horse was a good one. He traveled alone for several days, and eventually he stopped, dismounted, and tied the horse to a tree. Then he called out and said, “A-ti-us ta´-kaw-a (My Father, in all places), it’s because of you that I am alive. Maybe it was through you that this man put me in this situation. You are the ruler. Nothing is impossible for you. If you choose, take this burden away from me.” Then he turned and said, “Now, you all fish of the rivers, you all birds of the air, all animals that roam the earth, and you, oh Sun! I offer you this animal.” He repeated, “You birds in the air, and you animals on the ground, we are connected; we are similar in this way, that one ruler created us all. You see me, how miserable I am. If you have any power, please help me.”
When he had finished his prayer, he went up to the horse, and stabbed it with his knife and killed it, and it fell down dead. He turned it so that its head was toward the east, and raised it on its belly, doubling its knees under it, and cut the hide down the back, and skinned it down on both sides, so that the birds of the air and the animals of the earth might feed on it.
When he finished his prayer, he approached the horse, stabbed it with his knife, and killed it; it collapsed lifeless. He positioned it so its head faced east, rolled it onto its belly, folded its knees under, and sliced open the skin down the back, then skinned it on both sides, so that the birds of the air and the animals of the earth could feed on it.
The tribe at this time was camped on the head of the Republican River. He went on toward the east until he came to the place on the Platte River called Pa-huk´ (hill island). He saw that there were many wild animals on this point, and he liked it, and thought he would stay there, and perhaps dream. He stopped there a while, feeling very badly, and mourning all the time on this point. He was there several days, and one night it happened that he went to sleep [fainted], for he was exhausted with much weeping and praying. Something spoke to him, and said, “What are you doing here?” He woke up, and looked around, but saw no one. It was only a voice. Another night when he was asleep a voice [Pg 104] asked him, “What are you doing here?” He awoke and looked about, but saw no one. A third night the same thing happened, and he was wondering what it meant. Then he answered and said, “Who ever you are who speaks to me, look at me and you will see that I am poor in mind.[4] I am a man, and yet I am in a condition that no man was ever in before. I am here only to suffer and to die. Whoever you are who speaks to me, take pity on me and help me.” He received no answer.
The tribe was camped at the head of the Republican River. He continued east until he reached a spot on the Platte River called Pa-huk´ (hill island). He noticed many wild animals there, which he liked, so he thought he might stay and perhaps dream. He lingered there for a while, feeling very down and mourning constantly. He stayed for several days, and one night he fell asleep from exhaustion after weeping and praying so much. Something spoke to him, asking, “What are you doing here?” He woke up and looked around but saw no one; it was just a voice. Another night, while he was sleeping, the voice asked again, “What are you doing here?” He woke up and looked around again but saw no one. On a third night, the same thing happened, and he began to wonder what it meant. Then he responded, saying, “Whoever you are that speaks to me, look at me and you'll see I'm troubled. I am a man, yet I am in a state no man has ever been in before. I am here just to suffer and to die. Please, whoever you are, have compassion on me and help me.” He received no answer.
The fourth night something touched him. He was half awake when he felt it. Something said, “What are you doing here?” He was lying on his side, his head toward the east and his feet toward the west. Something tapped him on the shoulder, and he looked up and saw a great big animal, big black eyes and a whitish body, Pah´, big elk. When he looked at it, the animal said, “Get up and sit down;” and the elk too sat down. The elk said, “I have heard of you and of your condition, and I am here to tell you that we all know your trouble. Right here where you are, under you, is the home of the Nahu´rac (animals). I know that it is impossible to help you, but I shall let them know—they already know—that [Pg 105] you are here. I can only help you so far as to take you to the places where these animals are. If this animal home cannot help you, I will take you to another place; if that fails, I will take you to another place; if that fails, to another. Then you will see that I have done my part. If it is impossible for the animals to do it, we have still one above that we look to.” As soon as he had said this, he vanished like a wind; disappeared all at once.
The fourth night something touched him. He was half awake when he felt it. Something said, “What are you doing here?” He was lying on his side, his head facing east and his feet pointing west. Something tapped him on the shoulder, and he looked up and saw a large animal, with big black eyes and a whitish body, a big elk. When he looked at it, the animal said, “Get up and sit down;” and the elk also sat down. The elk said, “I’ve heard about you and your situation, and I’m here to tell you that we all know your troubles. Right here where you are, beneath you, is the home of the Nahu’rac (animals). I know it’s impossible to help you, but I’ll let them know—they already know—that you are here. I can only help you to the extent of taking you to where these animals are. If this animal home can't help you, I'll take you to another place; if that fails, I’ll take you to another; and if that fails, I’ll take you to another. Then you’ll see that I’ve done my part. If it’s impossible for the animals to help, we still have one above that we look to.” As soon as he said this, he vanished like the wind; he disappeared all at once.
While the boy sat there, thinking about what the animal had said to him, he fell asleep with his mind full of these things. In his sleep something talked to him. It said, “I know that you feel badly, and that your mind is poor. I have passed you many times, and I have heard you crying. I belong here, but I am one of the servants. I have informed my leaders, those who command me, about you, and that you are so poor in your mind, and they have said to me, ‘If you take pity on him, do as you please, because you are our servant.’”
While the boy sat there, thinking about what the animal had said to him, he dozed off with his mind full of those thoughts. In his sleep, something spoke to him. It said, “I know you’re feeling bad and that you’re struggling mentally. I’ve passed by you many times and heard you crying. I belong here, but I’m one of the helpers. I’ve told my leaders, those in charge of me, about you and that you’re struggling, and they said to me, ‘If you feel sorry for him, do what you like, because you’re our helper.’”
At this time he woke up, and saw sitting by him a little bird.[5] He talked to it. He said, “Oh, my [Pg 106] brother, I feel pleased that you understand my poor mind. Now take pity on me and help me.” The bird said to him, “You must not talk in this way to me. I am only a servant. To-morrow night I will come this way, and will show you what to do. To-morrow night I will come this way, and whatever you see me do, you do the same thing.” Then he disappeared. The man then felt a little easier in his mind, and more as if there were some hope for him.
At that moment, he woke up and noticed a little bird sitting next to him.[5] He spoke to it, saying, “Oh, my brother, I’m glad you understand my troubled mind. Please take pity on me and help me.” The bird replied, “You shouldn’t speak to me like that. I’m just a servant. Tomorrow night, I’ll come by and show you what to do. Whatever you see me do, you should do the same.” Then it vanished. The man felt a bit more at ease and began to sense that there might be some hope for him.
[5] This is a small bird, blue above, white below, with red legs. It is swift-flying, and sometimes dives down into the water. It is the messenger bird of the Nahu´rac. See also story of the Boy who was Sacrificed.
[5] This is a small bird, blue on top, white underneath, with red legs. It flies quickly and sometimes dives into the water. It is the messenger bird of the Nahu´rac. See also the story of the Boy who was Sacrificed.
The next night the bird came, and was flying about near him after dark, waiting for the time. When the time came, the bird flew close to him, and said, “Come. Let us go to the edge of the cut bank.” When they had come to the edge of the bank above the water in the river, the bird said, “Now, my friend, you are poor. What I do, you do. When I dive down off this bank, you follow me.” The man replied to him, “Yes, I am poor. Whatever you tell me to do, I will do.” So when the bird dived down off the cut bank, the man threw off everything, and cared nothing for what he did except to follow the bird. He leaped down after it, and as he sprang, it seemed to him that he felt like a bird, and could sail this way and that. He did not feel as if he were falling, and were going to be hurt, [Pg 107] but as if he were flying, and could control his movements. Just as he reached the water in his fall, it seemed to him that he was standing in the entrance way of a lodge, and could look through into it and see the fire burning in the middle.
The next night, the bird arrived and flew around him after dark, waiting for the right moment. When the moment came, the bird flew close and said, “Come. Let’s go to the edge of the bank.” When they reached the edge of the bank above the river, the bird said, “Now, my friend, you are poor. What I do, you do. When I dive off this bank, you follow me.” The man replied, “Yes, I am poor. I’ll do whatever you tell me to do.” So when the bird dove off the bank, the man took off everything and didn’t care about anything except following the bird. He jumped after it, and as he jumped, it felt like he was a bird, able to glide this way and that. He didn’t feel like he was falling or going to get hurt, but instead felt like he was flying and could control his movements. Just as he hit the water, it seemed to him that he was standing in the entrance of a lodge, able to look inside and see the fire burning in the middle. [Pg107]
While he was standing there, the bird flew in ahead of him, and he heard it say, “Here he is.” He stepped toward the entrance, and just as he came to it the Nahu´rac all made their different noises, for they are not used to the smell of human beings. The bears growled, and the panthers and wild cats and wolves and rattlesnakes and other animals all made their sounds. As he went in, there was a bear standing on one side, and a great snake on the other, and it was very difficult for the man to go in. He hesitated a little to enter that narrow passage, but something behind him seemed to push him ahead, although the bear stood ready to seize him, and the snake was rattling and standing up as if about to strike. If he had not had the courage to pass them he would have been lost, but he looked neither to the right nor to the left, but walked straight ahead past them. As soon as he had passed them, they both sank back and were quiet. Then all the Nahu´rac made another kind of a noise, as if [Pg 108] welcoming him. The bear began to lie down; and the snake stretched itself out again. As he went in he just stood there and looked around. He saw there all kinds of animals. The head doctor was a white beaver, very large, there was another a garfish, another an otter, and the fourth was a sandhill crane.
While he was standing there, a bird flew in ahead of him and said, “Here he is.” He stepped toward the entrance, and just as he got there, the Nahu´rac all made their different noises because they weren't used to the smell of humans. The bears growled, and the panthers, wild cats, wolves, rattlesnakes, and other animals all made their sounds. As he entered, there was a bear on one side and a huge snake on the other, making it really hard for the man to go in. He hesitated a bit about entering that narrow passage, but something behind him seemed to push him forward, even though the bear was ready to grab him, and the snake was rattling and standing up like it was about to strike. If he hadn't had the courage to get past them, he would have been lost, but he didn’t look to the right or left; he walked straight ahead past them. As soon as he passed, both sank back and fell silent. Then all the Nahu´rac made another kind of noise, as if welcoming him. The bear started to lie down, and the snake stretched itself out again. He just stood there and looked around. He saw all kinds of animals. The head doctor was a large white beaver; there was another, a garfish, another an otter, and the fourth was a sandhill crane.
The man sat down, and he looked very pitiful. Then for a while everything was silent. Then the servant said to the four head doctors, “I have brought this man here. I have taken pity on him, and I want you to take pity on him.” Then it was more silent than ever. The man looked about him, and saw all the animals, and saw them roll their eyes around at him.
The man sat down, looking really sad. For a while, everything was quiet. Then the servant spoke to the four head doctors, “I brought this man here. I felt sorry for him, and I want you to feel sorry for him too.” After that, it got even quieter. The man looked around and noticed all the animals staring at him.
Presently the servant got up, and stood right in the midst. The head doctors sat at the back of the lodge opposite the door on the other side of the fire. The bird said, “My rulers, you know me. I am your servant, and I am always obedient to your commands. No matter what you tell me to do, I do it. No matter how long the journeys you send me on, I go. Many nights I have lost sleep because of carrying out your commands. I have seen this man many times, and I am weary of his crying as I fly back and [Pg 109] forth. Now, I want you to take pity on this man, because I pity him. Look on this poor-minded man and pity him.”
Right now, the servant stood up and positioned himself in the center. The chief doctors were seated at the back of the lodge, facing the door across the fire. The bird said, “My leaders, you know me. I am your servant, and I always follow your orders. Whatever you ask me to do, I do it. No matter how long the journeys you assign to me, I go. Many nights I've lost sleep because of fulfilling your requests. I've seen this man many times, and I’m tired of his crying as I fly back and forth. Now, I want you to have compassion for this man, because I feel for him. Look at this troubled man and have mercy on him.”
Then the bird went to the young man, and took from him his pipe, which was filled, and carried it round and stood before the beaver, the head doctor, and held out the pipe to him to take. The white beaver did not stretch out his hand for it, and the bird stood there for a long time. At last the bird began to cry, and the tears began to run down its face, and it cried hard; and at last the white beaver stretched out his hand, and then drew it back again, and hesitated; and the bird kept on crying, and at length the head doctor reached out his hand and took the pipe. Just as soon as he took the pipe, all the animals made a kind of a hissing sound, as much as to say, Loo´ah—Good. They were pleased. Then the white beaver, holding the pipe, said, “I cannot help but reach out for this pipe, for I take pity on my servant. But it is impossible for me to promise that I will do this thing, but I will do what I can. I will leave it to this other Nahu´rac to say what shall be done;” and he passed the pipe to the other Nahu´rac who sat next to him. This animal reached for the pipe, and took it. He made a speech, and [Pg 110] said, “My friends, I am poor, I am poor. I have not such power as that;” and he passed the pipe to another; and he said, “I have not the power;” and he passed it to another; and so it went around the circle. The pipe had passed around, and none of the Nahu´rac had the power. None of them seemed to understand how to help the man. Then the white beaver said, “My friend, you see that no one of us have the power to help you. There is another lodge of Nahu´rac at Pa´howa. You must go there and ask them.” Then the Nahu´rac made medicine, and the young man went to sleep, and when he awoke at daylight, he found himself on the point where he had lain down to sleep the night before.
Then the bird went to the young man, took his filled pipe, and carried it around to stand before the beaver, the head doctor, and held out the pipe for him to take. The white beaver didn't reach for it, and the bird waited there for a long time. Finally, the bird began to cry, tears running down its face as it cried hard; at last, the white beaver stretched out his hand but then pulled it back, hesitating. The bird continued to cry, and eventually, the head doctor reached out and took the pipe. As soon as he took the pipe, all the animals made a hissing sound, as if to say, Loo´ah—Good. They were pleased. Then the white beaver, holding the pipe, said, “I can’t help but reach for this pipe because I feel sorry for my servant. But I can't promise that I will do this thing; I will do what I can. I'll leave it to this other Nahu´rac to decide what shall be done;” and he passed the pipe to the other Nahu´rac sitting next to him. This animal took the pipe and made a speech, and [Pg110] said, “My friends, I am poor, I am poor. I don’t have that kind of power;” and he passed the pipe to another; and he said, “I don’t have the power;” and he passed it to another; and so it went around the circle. The pipe went around, and none of the Nahu´rac had the power. None of them seemed to understand how to help the man. Then the white beaver said, “My friend, you see that none of us have the power to help you. There is another lodge of Nahu´rac at Pa´howa. You must go there and ask them.” Then the Nahu´rac made medicine, and the young man went to sleep, and when he woke up at daylight, he found himself at the spot where he had laid down to sleep the night before.
He was discouraged and wept all day long. At night the elk came to him and said, “Go to sleep; I will take you over to Pa´howa.” The man slept and the elk took him on its back and carried him while asleep, and the next morning he found himself on that point of Pa´howa.
He felt down and cried all day. At night, the elk came to him and said, “Go to sleep; I’ll take you to Pa´howa.” The man fell asleep, and the elk carried him on its back while he slept. The next morning, he discovered he was at Pa´howa.
That night the messenger bird came to him and said, “Now, my friend, follow me, and what you see me do, that do yourself. When I dive down into Pa´howa, you follow me.” The bird dived down into the spring, and the young man jumped after [Pg 111] him, and again found himself standing at the door of a lodge, and the same things took place as before. Here the same animals were the head doctors. The chief head doctor talked to the boy and said, “My friend, I am sorry you have come to me in the condition you are in. My friend, this is something impossible. If it were anything else it might be possible for us to cure your trouble. Nothing like it was ever known before.”
That night, the messenger bird came to him and said, “Now, my friend, follow me. Do exactly what you see me do. When I dive into Pa´howa, you dive after me.” The bird plunged into the spring, and the young man jumped in after him, and once again found himself standing at the door of a lodge. The same sequence of events happened as before. The same animals were the lead healers. The chief healer spoke to the boy and said, “My friend, I’m sorry you’ve come to me in this state. This is something impossible. If it were anything else, we might be able to help you. Nothing like this has ever been known before.”
When he had said this he turned to the Nahu´rac and said, “Now you shall be the leaders. If there are any of you who understand things like this; if any of you can take the lead in things like this, why do it. It is beyond my power. Say what shall be done, any of you. My mind would be big if any of you could take pity on this poor man.”
When he finished speaking, he turned to the Nahu´rac and said, “Now you will be the leaders. If any of you understands situations like this; if any of you can take charge in matters like this, then please do so. It's beyond my abilities. Decide what should be done, any of you. My heart would be full if any of you could show compassion for this poor man.”
Another one of the Nahu´rac stood up and spoke, “My brother [to the white beaver], and my brother [to the young man], do not feel hard at me. This is beyond my power. I cannot do anything to help him.” So it went around the circle, every one saying that it was impossible. After it had gone round, the head doctor again stood up and said, “Now, my friend, you can see that it is impossible to cure you of this trouble, but there is another [Pg 112] lodge of the Nahu´rac on the west side of the Loup River. You go there.” Then they put him to sleep, and when he awoke next morning, he was on top of the ground near Pa´howa.
Another one of the Nahu´rac stood up and said, “My brother [to the white beaver] and my brother [to the young man], please don’t hold this against me. This is beyond what I can do. I can’t help him.” It went around the circle, and everyone said it was impossible. After everyone spoke, the head doctor stood up again and said, “Now, my friend, you can see that it’s impossible to cure you of this issue, but there is another [Pg112] lodge of the Nahu´rac on the west side of the Loup River. You should go there.” Then they put him to sleep, and when he woke up the next morning, he was on the ground near Pa´howa.
That night the elk took him while he was asleep to the place on the Loup. The next night he was sitting on the ground there, and the bird came to him, and he followed the bird down over the bank and into the Nahu´rac lodge. Here the head doctors were the same animals, and they made speeches as had been done at the other places, and, as before, it was left to the assembly, and all agreed that it was beyond their power. Then the white beaver directed him to go to an island in the Platte, near the Lone Tree, where there was another lodge of the Nahu´rac. The elk took him to this island. Under the center of this island was the lodge. The messenger bird was with him and went into the lodge and asked the Nahu´rac to help him. The white beaver made a speech, and said, “My friend, I have heard the condition that you are in. Of all these lodges that you have visited, that lodge at Pa-huk´ is the head. I want you to go back there, and tell the leaders there that they are the rulers, and that whatever they shall do will be right, and will [Pg 113] be agreed to by the other lodges. They must help you if they can. If they cannot do it, no one can.”
That night, the elk took him while he was sleeping to the place on the Loup. The next night, he was sitting on the ground there, and the bird came to him. He followed the bird down over the bank and into the Nahu´rac lodge. The head doctors were the same animals, and they made speeches just like they had at the other places. As before, it was left up to the assembly, and everyone agreed that it was beyond their power. Then the white beaver instructed him to go to an island in the Platte, near the Lone Tree, where there was another lodge of the Nahu´rac. The elk took him to this island. Under the center of this island was the lodge. The messenger bird accompanied him and went into the lodge to ask the Nahu´rac for help. The white beaver made a speech and said, “My friend, I have heard about your situation. Of all the lodges you have visited, that lodge at Pa-huk´ is the head. I want you to go back there and tell the leaders that they are the rulers, and whatever they decide will be right and will be accepted by the other lodges. They must help you if they can. If they can’t do it, no one can.” [Pg113]
When the elk took him back to Pa-huk´, the bird again conducted him into the lodge. He had left his pipe here. When he entered the lodge all the animals made a hissing sound—No´a—they were glad to see him again. The man stood in the middle of the lodge and spoke. He said, “Now you animals all, you are the leaders. You see how poor my mind is. I am tired of the long journeys you have sent me on. I want you to take pity on me.”
When the elk brought him back to Pa-huk´, the bird led him into the lodge again. He had left his pipe there. As he entered, all the animals made a hissing sound—No´a—they were happy to see him again. The man stood in the center of the lodge and spoke. He said, “Now you animals, you are the leaders. You can see how empty my mind is. I’m tired of the long journeys you’ve sent me on. I want you to have mercy on me.”
The white beaver stood up and took the pipe and said, “Oh, my brother, I have done this to try these other lodges of Nahu´rac, to see if any of them were equal to me. That was the reason that I sent you around to all these other lodges, to see if any of them would be willing to undertake to rid you of your burden. But I see that they all still acknowledge that I am the leader. Now I have here an animal that I think will undertake to help you and to rid you of your trouble.” Saying this he stepped out to the right, and walked past some of the Nahu´rac until he came to a certain animal—a ground dog—and held out the pipe to it. There were twelve of these animals, all alike—small, with round faces and [Pg 114] black whiskers—sitting on their haunches. He held out the pipe to the head one of these twelve. When the white beaver reached out the pipe to this animal he did not take it. He hesitated a long time, and held his head down. He did not want to take the pipe. He looked around the lodge, and at the man, and drew in his breath. At last he reached out his paws and took the pipe, and as he did so, all the Nahu´rac made a noise, the biggest kind of a noise. They were glad.
The white beaver stood up, took the pipe, and said, “Oh, my brother, I did this to check out these other lodges of Nahu´rac, to see if any of them were on my level. That’s why I sent you to all these other lodges, to see if any of them would be willing to take on your burden. But I see that they all still recognize me as the leader. Now I have an animal here that I think will help you and get rid of your troubles.” With that, he stepped to the right and walked past some of the Nahu´rac until he came to a specific animal—a ground dog—and held out the pipe to it. There were twelve of these animals, all alike—small, with round faces and black whiskers—sitting on their haunches. He held out the pipe to the first one of these twelve. When the white beaver reached out the pipe to this animal, it didn’t take it. It hesitated for a long time, keeping its head down. It didn’t want to take the pipe. It looked around the lodge, at the man, and breathed in. Finally, it reached out its paws and took the pipe, and as it did, all the Nahu´rac made a loud noise. They were happy.
Then the head ground dog got up and said, “Now, doctors, I have accepted this pipe on account of our servant, who is so faithful, and who many a night has lost sleep on account of our commands. I have accepted it for his sake. It is impossible to do this thing. If it had been earlier, I could perhaps have done it. Even now I will try, and if I fail now, we can do nothing for him.”
Then the head ground dog stood up and said, “Alright, doctors, I’ve taken on this responsibility because of our loyal servant, who has lost countless nights of sleep due to our requests. I’ve done it for his benefit. This task is impossible. If it had been earlier, I might have managed it. Even now, I’ll give it a shot, and if I fail this time, we won’t be able to help him.”
After they had smoked, they told the man to go and sit down opposite the entrance to the lodge, between the head doctors and the fire. These twelve animals stood up and walked back and forth on the opposite side of the fire from him, facing him. After a while they told him to stand up. The head ground dog now asked the other Nahu´rac to help him, by [Pg 115] singing, and they all sang; and the ground dogs danced, keeping time to the singing, and moved their hands up and down, and made their jaws go as if eating, but did not open their mouths.
After they smoked, they told the man to go and sit down across from the entrance to the lodge, between the head doctors and the fire. The twelve animals stood up and walked back and forth on the other side of the fire from him, facing him. After a while, they told him to stand up. The head ground dog then asked the other Nahu´rac for help by singing, and they all sang; the ground dogs danced in time with the singing, moving their hands up and down and mimicking eating with their jaws without opening their mouths.
After a while they told him to lie down with his head toward the doctors and his feet toward the entrance. After he had lain down, they began to move and went round the lodge toward him, and the head ground dog jumped over the man’s belly, and as he jumped over him he was seen to have a big piece of flesh in his mouth, and was eating it. Another ground dog followed him, and another, and each one ran until he came to the man, and as each one jumped over him, it had a piece of flesh in its mouth, eating it. So they kept going until they had eaten all the swelling. The young man was unconscious all this time, for he afterward said he knew nothing of what had happened.
After a while, they told him to lie down with his head facing the doctors and his feet toward the entrance. Once he lay down, they started moving around the lodge toward him, and the lead ground dog jumped over the man’s belly. As it jumped, it was seen to have a large piece of flesh in its mouth and was eating it. Another ground dog followed, then another, and each one ran up to the man, having a piece of flesh in its mouth and eating it as it jumped over him. They kept going until they had eaten all the swelling. The young man was unconscious during all of this because he later said he didn't know anything about what had happened.
The head ground dog spoke to the animals, and said, “Now, Nahu´rac, you have seen what I can do. This is the power that I have. That is the reason I am afraid to be out on the prairie, because when I get hungry I would kill men and would eat them. My appetite would overpower me, and I do not want to do these things, I want to be friendly. This is the [Pg 116] reason that I do not travel around on top of the ground. I stay hid all the time.”
The leader of the groundhogs addressed the animals and said, “Now, Nahu´rac, you’ve seen what I can do. This is my power. That’s why I’m scared to be out on the prairie because when I get hungry, I might kill people and eat them. My hunger would take over, and I don’t want to do those things; I want to be friendly. That’s the [Pg116] reason I don’t wander around above ground. I stay hidden all the time.”
The man was still unconscious, and the head ground dog said, “Now, Nahu´rac, I do not understand how to restore this man. I leave that to you.” Then the ground dogs went back to their places and sat down. Then the head doctor, the beaver, spoke to the bears. He said, “Now this man belongs to you. Let me see what you can do.” The head bear got up and said, “Very well, I will come. I will let you see what I can do.” Then the bears stood up and began to sing. The head bear would jump on top of the man, and act as if he were going to tear him to pieces, and the others would take hold of him, and shake him around, and at last his blood began to flow and the man began to breathe, but he was still unconscious. After a while he moved and came to life, and felt himself just as he had been many months before. He found that his trouble was gone and that he was cured.
The man was still unconscious, and the head ground dog said, “Now, Nahu´rac, I don’t understand how to bring this man back. I’ll leave that up to you.” Then the ground dogs went back to their spots and sat down. The head doctor, the beaver, then spoke to the bears. He said, “Now this man is yours. Show me what you can do.” The head bear stood up and said, “Alright, I’ll come. Let’s see what I can do.” Then the bears got to their feet and started to sing. The head bear jumped on top of the man, pretending to shred him, while the others grabbed him and shook him around. Eventually, his blood started to flow and the man began to breathe, but he was still out cold. After a while, he stirred and woke up, feeling just as he had many months before. He realized that his troubles were gone and that he was healed.
The head bear still stood by him and spoke to the Nahu´rac. He said, “Now, Nahu´rac, this is what I can do. I do not care how dangerously wounded I may be, I know how to cure myself. If they leave any breath at all in me, I know how to [Pg 117] cure myself.” Then the bears went to their place and sat down.
The head bear still stood by him and spoke to the Nahu´rac. He said, “Now, Nahu´rac, this is what I can do. I don’t care how badly I’m hurt; I know how to heal myself. As long as there's any breath left in me, I know how to [Pg117] heal myself.” Then the bears went to their spot and sat down.
The man got up and spoke to the Nahu´rac, thanking them for what they had done for him. He stayed there several nights, watching the doings of the Nahu´rac. They taught him all their ways, all the animal secrets. The head doctor said to him, “Now, I am going to send you back to your home, but I will ask a favor of you, in return for what I have done for you.”
The man got up and spoke to the Nahu´rac, thanking them for what they had done for him. He stayed there several nights, observing the activities of the Nahu´rac. They taught him all their ways and the secrets of animals. The head doctor said to him, “Now, I’m going to send you back home, but I have one favor to ask in return for what I’ve done for you.”
The man answered him, “It will be so, whatever you say.”
The man replied, “It will be as you say.”
The doctor said, “Through you let my animals that move in the river be fed. Now you can see who we are. I move in the water. I have no breath, but I exist. We every one of us shall die except Ti-ra´-wa. He made us, just as he made you. He made you to live in the air. We live where there is no air. You see the difference. I know where is that great water that surrounds us [the ocean]. I know that the heaven [sky] is the house of Ti-ra´-wa, and we live inside of it. You must imitate us. Do as we do. You must place your dependence on us, but still, if anything comes up that is very difficult, you must put your dependence on Ti-ra´-wa. [Pg 118] Ask help from the ruler. He made us. He made every thing. There are different ways to different creatures. What you do I do not do, and what I do you do not do. We are different. When you imitate us you must always blow a smoke to each one of these four chief doctors, once to each; but to Ti-ra´-wa you must blow four smokes. And always blow four to the night, to the east, because something may tell you in your sleep a thing which will happen. This smoke represents the air filled with the smoke of hazy days. That smoke is pleasant to Ti-ra´-wa. He made it himself. Now go home, and after you have been there for a time, go and pay a visit to the doctor who put you in this condition.”
The doctor said, “Through you, let my creatures that swim in the river be nourished. Now you can see who we are. I move in the water. I have no breath, but I exist. We will all die except Ti-ra´-wa. He created us, just like He created you. He made you to live in the air. We live where there is no air. You see the difference. I know where the vast ocean that surrounds us is. I know that the sky is the home of Ti-ra´-wa, and we live within it. You should imitate us. Do as we do. You must rely on us, but if anything difficult comes up, you need to put your trust in Ti-ra´-wa. [Pg118] Seek help from the ruler. He created us. He created everything. There are different ways for different beings. What you do, I do not do, and what I do, you do not do. We are distinct. When you imitate us, you must always blow smoke to each of these four chief doctors, once for each; but to Ti-ra´-wa, you must blow smoke four times. And always blow four times to the night, to the east, because something may reveal to you in your dreams what will happen. This smoke represents the air filled with the haze of smoky days. That smoke is pleasing to Ti-ra´-wa. He made it Himself. Now go home, and after you’ve been there for a while, go and visit the doctor who put you in this state.”
The young man went home to his village, and got there in the night. He had long been mourned as dead, and his father was now poor in mind on account of him. He went into his father’s lodge, and touched him, and said, “Wake up, I am here.”
The young man returned to his village and arrived at night. He had been mourned as dead for a long time, and his father was now emotionally exhausted because of it. He entered his father's hut, touched him, and said, “Wake up, I'm here.”
His father could not believe it. He had thought him dead a long time. He said, “Is it you, or is it a ghost?”
His father couldn't believe it. He thought he was dead for a long time. He said, “Is it you, or is it a ghost?”
The young man answered, “It is I, just the same as ever. Get up, and go and tell my uncles and all my relations that I am here. I want you to give me [Pg 119] something; a blue bead, and some Indian tobacco, and some buffalo meat, and a pipe.”
The young man replied, “It’s me, just like always. Get up, and go tell my uncles and all my family that I'm here. I need you to bring me [Pg119] something: a blue bead, some Indian tobacco, buffalo meat, and a pipe.”
The father went about and told his relations that his son had come back, and they were very glad, and came into the lodge, bringing the presents, and gave them to the boy. He took them, and went down to the river, and threw them in, and they were carried down to the Nahu´rac lodge at Pa-huk´.
The father went around and told his relatives that his son had returned, and they were really happy, so they came into the lodge, bringing gifts, and gave them to the boy. He accepted them, went down to the river, and tossed them in, and they were carried down to the Nahu´rac lodge at Pa-huk´.
A few days after this the boy got on his horse, and rode away to visit the doctor who had brought his trouble on him. When he reached the village, the people said to the doctor, “A man is coming to visit you,” and the doctor was troubled, for he knew what he had done to the boy. But he thought that he knew so much that no one could get the better of him. When the boy came to the lodge, he got off his horse, went in and was welcomed. After they had eaten, the boy said to him, “When you visited me we smoked your tobacco; to-day we will smoke mine.”
A few days later, the boy got on his horse and rode off to visit the doctor who had caused him so much trouble. When he reached the village, the people told the doctor, “A man is coming to see you,” and the doctor felt uneasy because he knew what he had done to the boy. But he believed he was so knowledgeable that no one could outsmart him. When the boy arrived at the lodge, he dismounted, went inside, and was greeted warmly. After they had eaten, the boy said to him, “When you visited me, we smoked your tobacco; today we will smoke mine.”
They did so, for the doctor thought that no one could overcome him. They smoked until daylight, and while they were smoking, the boy kept moving his jaws as if eating, but did not open his mouth. At daylight the boy said he must be going. He [Pg 120] went, and when he got down to the river, he blew strongly upon the ice, and immediately the water in the river was full of blood. It was the blood of the doctor. It seems that the ground dogs had taught the young man how to do their things.
They did this because the doctor believed no one could defeat him. They smoked until morning, and while they were smoking, the boy kept moving his jaws as if he were eating, but he didn't open his mouth. When morning came, the boy said he had to leave. He went, and when he reached the river, he blew hard on the ice, and instantly the water in the river turned red with blood. It was the doctor’s blood. It seems the ground dogs had taught the young man how to do their tricks.
When the people found the doctor he was dead in his lodge, and he was all hollow. All his blood and the inside of him had gone into the river, and had gone down to feed the animals. So the boy kept his promise to the Nahu´rac and had revenge on the doctor.
When the people found the doctor, he was dead in his cabin, and he was completely empty. All his blood and insides had flowed into the river and down to nourish the animals. So the boy kept his promise to the Nahu´rac and got revenge on the doctor.
The boy was the greatest doctor in the Kit-ke-hahk´-i band, and was the first who taught them all the doctors’ ceremonies that they have. He taught them all the wonderful things that the doctors can do, and many other things.
The boy was the best doctor in the Kit-ke-hahk´-i band, and he was the first to teach them all the doctors’ ceremonies they have. He showed them all the amazing things doctors can do, as well as many other things.

OLD-FASHIONED KNIFE.
VINTAGE KNIFE.
THE BEAR MAN.
THERE was once a young boy, who, when he was playing with his fellows, used often to imitate the ways of a bear, and to pretend that he was one. The boys did not know much about bears. They only knew that there were such animals.
THERE was once a young boy who, when he was playing with his friends, often imitated the behavior of a bear and pretended to be one. The boys didn't know much about bears; they only knew that those animals existed.
Now, it had happened that before this boy was born his mother had been left alone at home, for his father had gone on the warpath toward the enemy, and this was about five or six months before the babe would be born. As the man was going on the warpath, he came upon a little bear cub, very small, whose mother had gone away; and he caught it. He did not want to kill it because it was so young and helpless. It seemed to him like a little child. It looked up to him, and cried after him, because it knew no better; and he hated to kill it or to leave it [Pg 122] there. After he had thought about this for a while, he put a string around its neck and tied some medicine smoking stuff, Indian tobacco, to it, and said, “Pi-rau´—child, you are a Nahu´rac; Ti-ra´-wa made you, and takes care of you. He will look after you, but I put these things about your neck to show that I have good feelings toward you. I hope that when my child is born, the Nahu´rac will take care of him, and see that he grows up a good man, and I hope that Ti-ra´-wa will take care of you and of mine.” He looked at the little bear for quite a long time, and talked to it, and then he went on his way.
Now, it happened that before this boy was born, his mother was left alone at home because his father had gone off to fight the enemy, and this was about five or six months before the baby was due. While heading into battle, the man came across a tiny bear cub, very small, whose mother had left it behind; he caught it. He didn’t want to kill it because it was so young and defenseless. To him, it looked like a little child. The cub looked up at him and cried out, not understanding any better; and he couldn’t bear the thought of killing it or abandoning it there. After thinking about it for a bit, he put a string around its neck and tied on some medicinal smoking stuff, Indian tobacco, and said, “Pi-rau´—child, you are a Nahu´rac; Ti-ra´-wa made you and takes care of you. He will watch over you, but I have put these things around your neck to show that I have good intentions toward you. I hope that when my child is born, the Nahu´rac will look after him, ensuring he grows up to be a good man, and I hope that Ti-ra´-wa will take care of you and mine.” He stared at the little bear for quite a while and talked to it before continuing on his way.
When he returned to the village from his warpath, he told his wife about the little bear, and how he had looked at it and talked to it.
When he came back to the village from his journey, he told his wife about the small bear and how he had looked at it and talked to it.
When his child was born it had all the ways of a bear. So it is among the Pawnees. A woman, before her child is born, must not look hard at any animal, for the child may be like it. There was a woman in the Kit-ke-hahk´-i band, who caught a rabbit, and, because it was gentle and soft, she took it up in her hands and held it before her face and petted it, and when her child was born it had a split nose, like a rabbit. This man is still alive.
When his child was born, it had all the traits of a bear. This is how it is among the Pawnees. A woman, before her child is born, must not stare intently at any animal, because the child might resemble it. There was a woman in the Kit-ke-hahk'i band who caught a rabbit, and since it was gentle and soft, she picked it up and held it in front of her face and petted it. When her child was born, it had a split nose, just like a rabbit. This man is still alive.
[Pg 123] This boy, who was like a bear, as he grew up, had still more the ways of a bear. Often he would go off by himself, and try to pray to the bear, because he felt like a bear. He used to say, in a joking way, to the other young men, that he could make himself a bear.
[Pg123] This boy, who was big and tough like a bear, as he grew up, acted even more like one. He would often wander off on his own and try to pray to the bear since he felt like a bear himself. He would jokingly tell the other young men that he could turn himself into a bear.
After he had come to be a man, he started out once on the warpath with a party of about thirty-five others. He was the leader of the party. They went away up on the Running Water, and before they had come to any village, they were discovered by Sioux. The enemy pursued them, and surrounded them, and fought with them. The Pawnees were overpowered, their enemies were so many, and all were killed.
After he grew into a man, he set out one time on the warpath with a group of about thirty-five others. He was the leader of the group. They traveled up to the Running Water, and before they reached any village, they were spotted by the Sioux. The enemy chased them, surrounded them, and fought against them. The Pawnees were overwhelmed; there were too many enemies, and all were killed.
The country where this took place is rocky, and much cedar grows there. Many bears lived there. The battle was fought in the morning; and the Pawnees were all killed in a hollow. Right after the fight, in the afternoon, two bears came traveling along by this place. When they came to the spot where the Pawnees had been killed, they found one of the bodies, and the she bear recognized it as that of the boy who was like a bear. She called to the he bear, and said, “Here is the man that was very good to us. He often sacrificed smokes to us, and every [Pg 124] time he ate he used always to take a piece of food and give it to us, saying, ‘Here is something for you to eat. Eat this.’ Here is the one that always imitated us, and sung about us, and talked about us. Can you do anything for him?” The he bear said, “I fear I cannot do it. I have not the power, but I will try. I can do anything if the sun is shining. I seem to have more power when the sun is shining on me.” That day it was cloudy and cold and snowing. Every now and then the clouds would pass, and the sun come out for a little while, and then the clouds would cover it up again.
The country where this happened is rocky, and a lot of cedar trees grow there. Many bears lived there. The battle took place in the morning, and all the Pawnees were killed in a hollow. Right after the fight, in the afternoon, two bears came wandering by this spot. When they reached the place where the Pawnees had been killed, they found one of the bodies, and the female bear recognized it as the boy who was like a bear. She called to the male bear and said, “Here’s the man who was really good to us. He often made sacrifices of smoke for us, and every time he ate, he would always take a piece of food and give it to us, saying, 'Here’s something for you to eat. Eat this.' This is the one who always mimicked us, sang about us, and talked about us. Can you do anything for him?” The male bear replied, “I’m afraid I can’t do it. I don’t have the power, but I’ll try. I can do anything if the sun is shining. I seem to have more power when the sun shines on me.” That day, it was cloudy, cold, and snowy. Every now and then, the clouds would clear, and the sun would come out for a little while, only to be covered up again by the clouds.
The man was all cut up, pretty nearly hacked in small pieces, for he was the bravest of all. The two bears gathered up the pieces of the man, and put them together, and then the he bear lay down and took the man on his breast, and the she bear lay on top of it to warm the body. They worked over it with their medicine, and every now and then the he bear would cry out, and say, “A-ti´-us—Father, help me. I wish the sun was shining.” After a while the dead body grew warm, and then began to breathe a little. It was still all cut up, but it began to have life. Pretty soon the man began to move, and to come to life, and then he became conscious and had life.
The man was all torn up, almost chopped into small pieces, because he was the bravest of all. The two bears gathered the pieces of the man and put him back together. Then the male bear lay down and held the man on his chest, while the female bear lay on top to warm the body. They worked on him with their healing methods, and now and then the male bear would cry out, saying, “A-ti´-us—Father, help me. I wish the sun was shining.” After a while, the lifeless body started to warm up and then began to breathe a little. He was still all torn up, but he started to come back to life. Soon the man began to move, regained his consciousness, and came back to life.
[Pg 125] When he came to himself and opened his eyes he was in the presence of two bears. The he bear spoke to him, and said, “It is not through me that you are living. It was the she bear who asked for help for you, and had you brought back to life. Now, you are not yet whole and well. You must come away with us, and live with us for a time, until all your wounds are healed.” The bears took him away with them. But the man was very weak, and every now and then, as they were going along, he would faint and fall down; but still they would help him up and support him; and they took him along with them, until they came to a cave in the rocks among the cedars, which was their home. When he entered the cave, he found there their young ones that they had left behind when they started out.
[Pg125] When he regained consciousness and opened his eyes, he found himself face-to-face with two bears. The male bear said to him, “You’re not alive because of me. It was the female bear who asked for help for you and brought you back to life. You’re still not fully healed. You need to come with us and stay with us for a while until all your wounds are mended.” The bears led him away with them. However, the man was very weak, and every now and then, as they walked, he would faint and collapse; but they always helped him up and supported him, continuing on until they arrived at a cave in the rocks among the cedars, which was their home. When he stepped into the cave, he found their young ones that they had left behind when they set out.
The man was all cut up and gashed. He had also been scalped, and had no hair on his head. He lived with the bears until he was quite healed of his wounds, and also had come to understand all their ways. The two old bears taught him everything that they knew. The he bear said to him, “None of all the beings and animals that roam over the country are as great and as wise as the bears. No animal is equal to us. When we get hungry, we go [Pg 126] out and kill something and eat it. I did not make the wisdom that I have. I am an animal, and I look to one above. He made me, and he made me to be great. I am made to live here and to be great, but still there will be an end to my days, just as with all of us that Ti-ra´-wa has created upon this earth. I am going to make you a great man; but you must not deceive yourself. You must not think that I am great, or can do great things of myself. You must always look up above for the giver of all power. You shall be great in war and great in wealth.
The man was all cut up and had gashes everywhere. He had also been scalped, so he had no hair on his head. He lived with the bears until he was fully healed from his wounds and had learned all their ways. The two old bears taught him everything they knew. The male bear said to him, “None of the beings and animals that roam the land are as great and as wise as bears. No animal compares to us. When we get hungry, we go out and kill something to eat. I didn't create the wisdom I have. I am an animal, and I look to someone above. He made me, and he made me to be great. I am meant to live here and to be great, but there will still be an end to my days, just like all of us that Ti-ra´-wa has created on this earth. I am going to make you a great man; but you must not deceive yourself. Don't think that I am great, or that I can do great things on my own. You must always look up above for the source of all power. You shall be great in battle and wealthy.”
“Now you are well, and I shall take you back to your home, and after this I want you to imitate us. This shall be a part of your greatness. I shall look after you. I shall give to you a part of myself. If I am killed, you shall be killed. If I grow old, you shall be old.
“Now that you’re well, I’ll take you back home, and after that, I want you to imitate us. This will be part of your greatness. I’ll take care of you. I’ll give you a part of myself. If I die, you’ll die. If I get old, you’ll get old.”
“I want you to look at one of the trees that Ti-ra´-wa made in this earth, and place your dependence on it. Ti-ra´-wa made this tree (pointing to a cedar). It never gets old. It is always green and young. Take notice of this tree, and always have it with you; and when you are in the lodge and it thunders and lightens,[6] throw some of it on the fire and let the smoke rise. Hold that fast.”
“I want you to look at one of the trees that Ti-ra´-wa created on this earth and rely on it. Ti-ra´-wa made this tree (pointing to a cedar). It never ages. It’s always green and youthful. Pay attention to this tree and keep it close to you; and when you’re in the lodge and it thunders and lightens,[6] throw some of it on the fire and let the smoke rise. Hold on to that.”
[Pg 127] The he bear took the skin of a bear, and made a cap for him, to hide his naked skull. His wounds were now all healed, and he was well and strong. The man’s people had nearly forgotten him, it had been so long ago, and they had supposed that the whole party had been killed.
[Pg127] The bear used its skin to make a cap, covering his bare head. His wounds had completely healed, and he was healthy and strong. The man's family had almost forgotten about him since so much time had passed, and they had assumed that the entire group had been killed.
Soon after this the he bear said, “Now we will take that journey.” They started, and went to the village, and waited near it till it was night. Then the bear said to him, “Go into the village, and tell your father that you are here. Then get for me a piece of buffalo meat, and a blue bead, and some Indian tobacco, and some sweet smelling clay.”[7]
Soon after this, the bear said, “Now we’re going to take that journey.” They set out and arrived at the village, waiting nearby until nightfall. Then the bear said to him, “Go into the village and tell your father that you’re here. Then get me a piece of buffalo meat, a blue bead, some Indian tobacco, and some fragrant clay.”[7]
The man went into the village, and his father was very much surprised, and very glad to see him again. He got the presents, and brought them to the bear, and gave them to him, and the bear talked to him.
The man entered the village, and his father was really surprised and happy to see him again. He received the gifts, took them to the bear, handed them over, and the bear spoke to him.
When they were about to part, the bear came up to him, and put his arms about him, and hugged him, and put his mouth against the man’s mouth, and said, “As the fur that I am in has touched you it will make you great, and this will be a blessing to you.” His paws were around the man’s shoulders, and he drew them down his arms, until they came to [Pg 128] his hands, and he held them, and said, “As my hands have touched your hands, they are made great, not to fear anything. I have rubbed my hands down over you, so that you shall be as tough as I am. Because my mouth has touched your mouth you shall be made wise.” Then he left him, and went away.
When they were about to part, the bear approached him, wrapped his arms around him, hugged him, and pressed his mouth against the man’s mouth, saying, “As the fur I wear has touched you, it will make you great, and this will be a blessing for you.” His paws were around the man’s shoulders, and he slid them down his arms until they reached his hands, which he held, saying, “Since my hands have touched your hands, they are made great, so you have nothing to fear. I have rubbed my hands over you, so you will be as strong as I am. Because my mouth has touched your mouth, you will become wise.” Then he left him and went away.
So this man was the greatest of all warriors, and was brave. He was like a bear. He originated the bear dance which still exists among the tribe of Pawnees. He came to be an old man, and at last died of old age. I suspect the old bear died at the same time.
So this man was the greatest warrior ever and was really brave. He was like a bear. He started the bear dance, which still exists among the Pawnee tribe. He grew old and eventually died of old age. I suspect the old bear died around the same time.

A RATTLE.
A rattle.
THE GHOST WIFE.
ONE time there were living together a man and his wife. They had a young child. The woman died. The man was very sad, and mourned for his wife.
ONE time there was a man and his wife living together. They had a young child. The woman died. The man was very sad and mourned for his wife.
One night he took the child in his arms, and went out from the village to the place where his wife was buried, and stood over the grave, and mourned for his wife. The little child was very helpless, and cried all the time. The man’s heart was sick with grief and loneliness. Late in the night he fell asleep, fainting and worn out with sorrow. After a while he awoke, and when he looked up, there was a form standing by him. The form standing there was the one who had died. She spoke to her husband, and said, “You are very unhappy here. There is a place to go where we would not be unhappy. Where I [Pg 130] have been nothing bad happens to one. Here, you never know what evil will come to you. You and the child had better come to me.”
One night he picked up the child and walked out of the village to where his wife was buried. He stood over the grave and mourned for her. The little child was very helpless and cried the entire time. The man’s heart was heavy with grief and loneliness. Late at night, he fell asleep, exhausted and overcome with sorrow. After a while, he woke up, and when he looked up, he saw a figure standing next to him. The figure was his deceased wife. She spoke to her husband and said, “You’re very unhappy here. There’s a place we can go where we wouldn’t be unhappy. Where I [Pg130] have been, nothing bad happens. Here, you never know what evil might come your way. You and the child should come to me.”
The man did not want to die. He said to her, “No; it will be better if you can come back to us. We love you. If you were with us we would be unhappy no longer.”
The man didn’t want to die. He said to her, “No; it will be better if you can come back to us. We love you. If you were with us, we wouldn’t be unhappy anymore.”
For a long time they discussed this, to decide which one should go to the other. At length the man by his persuasions overcame her, and the woman agreed to come back. She said to the man, “If I am to come back you must do exactly as I tell you for four nights. For four days the curtain must remain let down before my sleeping place; it must not be raised; no one must look behind it.”
For a long time, they talked about this to figure out who should visit the other. Eventually, the man convinced her, and the woman agreed to return. She told him, “If I’m coming back, you need to follow my instructions for four nights. For four days, the curtain must stay down in front of my sleeping area; it can't be lifted; no one is allowed to look behind it.”
The man did as he had been told, and after four days had passed, the curtain was lifted, and the woman came out from behind it. Then they all saw her, first her relations, and afterward the whole tribe. Her husband and her child were very glad, and they lived happily together.
The man did what he was told, and after four days, the curtain was lifted, and the woman stepped out from behind it. Then everyone saw her, first her family, and then the entire tribe. Her husband and child were very happy, and they lived together joyfully.
A long time after this, the man took another wife. The first wife was always pleasant and good-natured, but the new one was bad-tempered, and after some time she grew jealous of the first woman, and [Pg 131] quarreled with her. At length, one day the last married became angry with the other, and called her bad names, and finally said to her, “You ought not to be here. You are nothing but a ghost, anyway.”
A long time later, the man married another woman. The first wife was always friendly and easygoing, but the new one was irritable, and after a while, she became jealous of the first woman and [Pg131] had arguments with her. Eventually, one day, the new wife got angry with the other and insulted her, finally saying, “You shouldn't be here. You're just a ghost, anyway.”
That night when the man went to bed, he lay down, as was his custom, by the side of his first wife. During the night he awoke, and found that his wife had disappeared. She was seen no more. The next night after this happened, the man and the child both died in sleep. The wife had called them to her. They had gone to that place where there is a living.
That night when the man went to bed, he lay down, as he usually did, next to his first wife. During the night, he woke up and found that his wife was gone. She was never seen again. The following night, both the man and the child died in their sleep. The wife had called them to her. They had gone to that place where there is life.
This convinced everybody that there is a hereafter.
This convinced everyone that there is an afterlife.
TI-KE-WA-KUSH.
The Man who Called the Buffalo.
The Man Who Called the Buffalo.
THIS happened in the olden time before we had met the white people. Then the different bands lived in separate villages. The lodges were made of dirt. The Kit-ke-hahk´-i band went off on a winter hunt, roaming over the country, as they used to do, after buffalo. At this time they did not find the buffalo near. They scouted in all directions, but could discover no signs of them. It was a hard time of starvation. The children cried and the women cried; they had nothing at all to eat.
This happened a long time ago, before we met white people. Back then, the different groups lived in separate villages. The homes were made of dirt. The Kit-ke-hahk'i group went on a winter hunt, wandering the land like they used to, in search of buffalo. During this time, they couldn't find the buffalo nearby. They searched all around but could see no signs of them. It was a tough period of starvation. The children cried, and the women cried; they had nothing to eat at all.
There was a person who looked at the children crying for something to eat, and it touched his heart. They were very poor, and he felt sorry for them. He said to the Head Chief, “Tell the chiefs and other head men to do what I tell them. My heart is [Pg 133] sick on account of the suffering of the people. It may be that I can help them. Let a new lodge be set up outside the village for us to meet in. I will see if I can do anything to relieve the tribe.” The Chief said that it was well to do this, and he gave orders for it.
There was a person who saw the children crying for something to eat, and it really affected him. They were very poor, and he felt empathy for them. He said to the Head Chief, “Tell the chiefs and other leaders to follow my instructions. My heart is [Pg133] heavy because of the people's suffering. Maybe I can help them. Let’s set up a new meeting place outside the village. I’ll see if I can do anything to support the tribe.” The Chief agreed that this was a good idea and gave orders to make it happen.
While they were preparing to build this lodge they would miss this man in the night. He would disappear like a wind, and go off a long way, and just as daylight came, he would be there again. Sometimes, while sitting in his own lodge during the day, he would reach behind him, and bring out a small piece of buffalo meat, fat and lean, and would give it to some one, saying, “When you have had enough, save what is left, and give it to some one else.” When he would give this small piece of meat to any one, the person would think, “This is not enough to satisfy my hunger;” but after eating until he was full, there was always enough left to give to some other person.
While they were getting ready to build this lodge, they would miss this man at night. He would vanish like the wind and roam off far away, only to return right at dawn. Sometimes, while sitting in his own lodge during the day, he would reach behind him, pull out a small piece of buffalo meat, both fatty and lean, and hand it to someone, saying, “When you’ve had enough, save what’s left, and give it to someone else.” When he gave this small piece of meat to anyone, that person would think, “This isn’t enough to satisfy my hunger;” but after eating until full, there was always enough left to share with someone else.
In those days it was the custom for the Head Chief of the tribe, once in a while, to mount his horse, and ride about through the village, talking to the people, and giving them good advice, and telling them that they ought to do what was right by each [Pg 134] other. At this time the Chief spoke to the people, and explained that this man was going to try to benefit the tribe. So the people made him many fine presents, otter skins and eagle feathers, and when they gave him these things each one said, “I give you this. It is for yourself. Try to help us.” He thanked them for these presents, and when they were all gathered together he said, “Now you chiefs and head men of the tribe, and you people, you have done well to give me these things. I shall give them to that person who gives me that power, and who has taken pity on me. I shall let you starve yet four days. Then help will come.”
In those days, it was a tradition for the Head Chief of the tribe to occasionally ride his horse around the village, talking to the people, offering good advice, and reminding them to treat each other right. At that time, the Chief addressed the people, explaining that one man was trying to help the tribe. So, the people gave him many beautiful gifts, like otter skins and eagle feathers, and as they handed these items to him, each person said, “I give you this. It's for you. Please help us.” He expressed his gratitude for the gifts, and when everyone had gathered, he said, “Now you chiefs and leaders of the tribe, and you people, you have done well to give me these things. I will give them to the person who grants me that power and has shown me kindness. I will let you go without assistance for four more days. Then, help will arrive.”
During these four days, every day and night he disappeared, but would come back the same night. He would say to the people that he had been far off, where it would take a person three or four days to go, but he was always back the same night. When he got back on the fourth night, he told the people that the buffalo were near, that the next morning they would be but a little way off. He went up on the hill near the camp, and sacrificed some eagle feathers, and some blue beads, and some Indian tobacco, and then returned to the camp. Then he said to the people, “When that object comes to that [Pg 135] place of sacrifice, do not interfere with it; do not turn it back. Let it go by. Just watch and see.”
During those four days, he vanished every day and night but always returned by the same night. He told the people he had traveled far, places that would take someone three or four days to reach, yet he made it back the same night. When he returned on the fourth night, he informed everyone that the buffalo were nearby and would be close the following morning. He climbed a hill near the camp, made a sacrifice with some eagle feathers, blue beads, and Indian tobacco, and then came back to the camp. Then he said to the people, “When that object gets to that [Pg135] place of sacrifice, don’t interfere with it; don’t turn it back. Let it pass. Just watch and see.”
The next morning at daylight, all the people came out of their lodges to watch this hill, and the place where he had sacrificed. While they were looking they saw a great buffalo bull come up over the hill to the place. He stood there for a short time and looked about, and then he walked on down the hill, and went galloping off past the village. Then this man spoke to the people, and said, “There. That is what I meant. That is the leader of the buffalo; where he went the whole herd will follow.”
The next morning at dawn, everyone came out of their tents to watch the hill and the spot where he had made his sacrifice. As they were observing, they saw a huge buffalo bull appear over the hill at that place. He stood there for a moment, looked around, and then walked down the hill, galloping past the village. Then this man addressed the people, saying, “There. That’s what I meant. That’s the leader of the buffalo; wherever he goes, the whole herd will follow.”
He sent his servant to the chiefs to tell them to choose four boys, and let them go to the top of the hill where the bull had come over, and to look beyond it. The boys were sent, and ran to the top of the hill, and when they looked over beyond it they stopped, and then turned, and came back, running. They went to the chiefs’ lodge, and said to the chiefs sitting there, “Beyond that place of sacrifice there is coming a whole herd of buffalo; many, many, crowding and pushing each other.”
He sent his servant to the leaders to tell them to pick four boys and send them to the top of the hill where the bull had come over, so they could look beyond it. The boys were sent, and they ran to the top of the hill. When they looked over, they stopped, turned around, and ran back. They went to the chiefs’ lodge and told the chiefs sitting there, “Beyond that place of sacrifice, a whole herd of buffalo is coming; there are many, crowding and pushing each other.”
Then, as it used to be in the old times, as soon as the young men had told the Chief that the buffalo were coming, the Chief rode about the village, and [Pg 136] told every one to get ready to chase them. He said to them besides, “Do not leave anything on the killing ground. Bring into the camp not only the meat and hides, but the heads and legs and all parts. Bring the best portions in first, and take them over to the new lodge, so that we may have a feast there.” For so the man had directed.
Then, just like in the old days, as soon as the young men informed the Chief that the buffalo were on their way, the Chief rode around the village and [Pg136] told everyone to get ready to chase them. He also said to them, “Don’t leave anything at the killing site. Bring back not just the meat and hides, but also the heads, legs, and all other parts. Bring the best cuts first and take them over to the new lodge so we can have a feast there.” That’s how the man had instructed.
Presently the buffalo came over the hill, and the people were ready, and they made a surround, and killed all that they could, and brought them home. Each man brought in his ribs and his young buffalo, and left them there at that lodge. The other parts they brought into the village, as he had directed. After they had brought in this meat, they went to the lodge, and staid there four days and four nights, and had a great feast, roasting these ribs. The man told them that they would make four surrounds like this, and to get all the meat that they could, “But,” he said, “in surrounding these buffalo you must see that all the meat is saved. Ti-ra´-wa does not like the people to waste the buffalo, and for that reason I advise you to make good use of all you kill.” During the four nights they feasted this man used to disappear each night.
Currently, the buffalo came over the hill, and the people were ready. They formed a surround, killed as many as they could, and brought them home. Each man carried in his ribs and young buffalo, leaving them at that lodge. The other parts were taken to the village, just as he had instructed. After bringing in the meat, they went to the lodge and stayed there for four days and four nights, having a great feast while roasting the ribs. The man told them they would set up four surrounds like this to gather all the meat they could. "But," he said, "when surrounding these buffalo, make sure that all the meat is saved. Ti-ra´-wa doesn't like it when people waste buffalo, so I advise you to make good use of everything you kill." During the four nights of feasting, this man would disappear each night.
On the night of the fourth day he said to the [Pg 137] people, “To-morrow the buffalo will come again, and you will make another surround. Be careful not to kill a yellow calf—a little one—that you will see with the herd, nor its mother.” This was in winter, and yet the calf was the same color as a young calf born in the spring. They made the surround, and let the yellow calf and its mother go.
On the night of the fourth day, he said to the [Pg137] people, “Tomorrow the buffalo will come again, and you’ll set up another surround. Be careful not to kill a yellow calf—a small one—that you’ll see with the herd, nor its mother.” This was in winter, yet the calf was the same color as a young calf born in the spring. They set up the surround and let the yellow calf and its mother go.
A good many men in the tribe saw that this man was great, and that he had done great things for the tribe, and they made him many presents, the best horses that they had. He thanked them, but he did not want to accept the presents. The tribe believed that he had done this wonderful thing—had brought them buffalo—and all the people wanted to do just what he told them to.
A lot of men in the tribe recognized that this guy was important and that he had done amazing things for them, so they gave him many gifts, including their best horses. He appreciated it but didn't want to take the gifts. The tribe believed that he had performed this incredible feat—brought them buffalo—and everyone wanted to follow his lead.
In the first two surrounds they killed many buffalo, and made much dried meat. All their sacks were full, and the dried meat was piled up out of doors. After the second surround, they feasted as before.
In the first two rounds, they hunted a lot of buffalo and made a ton of dried meat. All their bags were full, and the dried meat was stacked outside. After the second round, they celebrated just like before.
After four days, as they were going out to surround the buffalo the third time, the wind changed, and before the people got near them, the buffalo smelt them, and stampeded. While they were galloping away, the man ran up on to the top of the hill, to the place of sacrifice, carrying a pole, on [Pg 138] which was tied the skin of a kit fox; and when he saw the buffalo running, and that the people could not catch them, he waved his pole, and called out Ska-a-a-a! and the buffalo turned right about, and charged back right through the people, and they killed many of them. He wished to show the people that he had the power over the buffalo.
After four days, as they were heading out to surround the buffalo for the third time, the wind shifted, and before the people got close, the buffalo caught their scent and stampeded. As they were running away, the man ran up to the hilltop, the place of sacrifice, carrying a pole, on [Pg138] which the skin of a kit fox was tied. When he saw the buffalo running and realized the people couldn't catch them, he waved his pole and shouted Ska-a-a-a!, causing the buffalo to turn around and charge back through the crowd, resulting in many being killed. He wanted to show the people that he had power over the buffalo.
After the third surround they had a great deal of meat, and he called the chiefs together and said, “Now, my chiefs, are you satisfied?” They said, “Yes, we are satisfied, and we are thankful to you for taking pity on us and helping us. It is through your power that the tribe has been saved from starving to death.” He said, “You are to make one more surround, and that will be the end. I want you to get all you can. Kill as many as possible, for this will be the last of the buffalo this winter. Those presents that you have made to me, and that I did not wish to take, I give them back to you.” Some of the people would not take back the presents, but insisted that he should keep them, and at last he said he would do so.
After the third surround, they had a lot of meat, and he gathered the chiefs and said, “Now, my chiefs, are you happy?” They replied, “Yes, we are happy, and we thank you for helping us and showing us compassion. It’s because of your strength that the tribe has been saved from starving to death.” He said, “You need to make one more surround, and that will be the last. I want you to gather all you can. Kill as many as possible, because this will be the last of the buffalo this winter. Those gifts you gave me that I didn’t want to accept, I’m giving them back to you.” Some of the people refused to take back the gifts and insisted that he should keep them, and finally, he agreed to do so.
The fourth surround was made, and the people killed many buffalo, and saved the meat. The night after this last surround, he disappeared and drove [Pg 139] the buffalo back. The next morning he told the people to look about, and tell him if they saw anything. They did so, but they could not see any buffalo.
The fourth enclosure was built, and the people hunted a lot of buffalo and stored the meat. The night after this last hunt, he vanished and herded the buffalo back. The next morning, he asked everyone to look around and let him know if they saw anything. They did that, but they couldn't find any buffalo.
The next day they moved camp, and went east toward their home. They had so much dried meat that they could not take it all at once, but had to come back and make two trips for it. When they moved below, going east, they had no fresh meat, only dried meat; but sometimes when this man would come in from his journeys, he would bring a piece of meat—a little piece—and he would divide it up among the people, and they would put it into the kettles and boil it, and everybody would eat, but they could not eat it all up. There would always be some left over. This man was so wonderful that he could change even the buffalo chips that you see on the prairie into meat. He would cover them up with his robe, and when he would take it off again, you would see there pounded buffalo meat and tallow (pemmican), tup-o-har´-ash.
The next day, they moved their camp and headed east toward home. They had so much dried meat that they couldn’t carry it all at once, so they had to go back and make two trips. As they traveled east, they had no fresh meat, just dried meat; but sometimes when this man returned from his journeys, he would bring back a piece of meat—a small piece—and he would share it among the people. They would put it in the kettles to boil, and everyone would eat, but they could never finish it all. There would always be some left over. This man was so amazing that he could even turn the buffalo chips you see on the prairie into meat. He would cover them with his robe, and when he took it off again, you would find pounded buffalo meat and tallow (pemmican), tup-o-har´-ash.
The man was not married; he was a young man, and by this time the people thought that he was one of the greatest men in the tribe, and they wanted him to marry. They went to one of the chiefs and [Pg 140] told him that they wanted him to be this man’s father-in-law, for they wanted him to raise children, thinking that they might do something to benefit the tribe. They did not want that race to die out. The old people say that it would have been good if he had had children, but he had none. If he had, perhaps they would have had the same power as their father.
The man wasn’t married; he was young, and by now, the people believed he was one of the greatest in the tribe, and they wanted him to marry. They approached one of the chiefs and [Pg140] told him they wanted to be this man’s father-in-law because they wanted him to have children, thinking they could benefit the tribe. They didn’t want that lineage to die out. The elders say it would have been good if he had kids, but he didn’t have any. If he did, maybe they would have had the same power as their father.
That person called the buffalo twice, and twice saved the tribe from a famine. The second time the suffering was great, and they held a council to ask him to help the tribe. They filled up the pipe and held it out to him, asking him to take pity on the tribe. He took the pipe, and lighted it, and smoked. He did it in the same way as the first time, and they made four surrounds, and got much meat.
That person called the buffalo twice, and twice saved the tribe from starvation. The second time the suffering was intense, and they held a meeting to ask him for help. They filled the pipe and offered it to him, pleading for his mercy on the tribe. He took the pipe, lit it, and smoked. He did it just like the first time, and they formed four circles and got plenty of meat.
When this man died, all the people mourned for him a long time. The Chief would ride around the village and call out, “Now I am poor in mind on account of the death of this man, because he took pity on us and saved the tribe. Now he is gone and there is no one left like him.”
When this man died, everyone mourned for him for a long time. The Chief would ride around the village and call out, “Now I'm heartbroken because of this man's death, since he cared for us and saved the tribe. Now he’s gone, and there’s no one left like him.”
This is a true and sacred story that belongs to the Kit-ke-hahk´-i band. It happened once long ago, [Pg 141] and has been handed down from father to son in this band. The Skidi had a man who once called the buffalo, causing them to return when stampeded, as was done in this story.
This is a true and sacred story that belongs to the Kit-ke-hahk'i band. It happened a long time ago, [Pg141] and has been passed down from father to son in this band. The Skidi had a man who could call the buffalo, bringing them back when they were stampeded, just as the story describes.
Note.—Big Knife, a Skidi, who died only recently, said that the man was alive in his time. Kuru´ks-u le-shar (Bear Chief), a Skidi, says that he knew the man. His name was Carrying Mother.
Note.—Big Knife, a Skidi, who passed away recently, mentioned that the man was alive during his lifetime. Kuru´ks-u le-shar (Bear Chief), also a Skidi, claims that he knew the man. His name was Carrying Mother.

BABY ON BOARD.
BABY ON BOARD.
PA-HU-KA´-TAWA.
ABOUT the end of the winter, before the grass began to grow in the spring, a company of three brothers and two other men went out from the village to trap beaver. When they had been gone about ten days, and had got up above the Forks of the Loup River, they camped on the South Fork, and in the morning sent one man ahead to see if he could find any beaver sign, and could look out a good trapping ground.
ABOUT the end of winter, just before the grass started to grow in spring, a group of three brothers and two other men left the village to trap beavers. After about ten days and reaching above the Forks of the Loup River, they set up camp on the South Fork. The next morning, they sent one man ahead to check for any signs of beavers and to scout out a good trapping area.
When he had gone a little distance from the camp, he saw some Sioux, and at the same moment they saw him. He did not run back to the camp; he was too anxious to save himself; but ran across to a little creek, and hid in the brush, not trying to let his brothers know that the enemy were near. The Sioux followed him and found him, and chased him about, [Pg 143] and shot at him all day, until near sundown, when they killed him.
When he had walked a short distance from the camp, he spotted some Sioux, and at the same moment, they noticed him. He didn’t run back to the camp; he was too desperate to escape. Instead, he dashed over to a small creek and hid in the bushes, trying not to let his brothers know that the enemy was close. The Sioux tracked him down and chased him around, [Pg143] shooting at him all day until just before sunset when they killed him.
The four other men had stopped in camp, but were not so far off but that they could hear the shouts and yells, and they ran off from the camp, and hid themselves and waited. When the other man did not come back, they knew that he had been killed.
The other four men had stopped at the camp, but they weren't too far away that they couldn't hear the shouting and yelling. They left the camp, hid, and waited. When the other man didn't return, they realized he had been killed.
The next morning, the four men talked together. One said, “We had better go up and see if he is killed.” Another said, “Yes, let us go there. It may be that we can bury him.” So they went up where he had been, going very carefully, and looking over all the hills as they went, so as to see any enemies if they were about. They found him. He was dead, shot full of arrows, scalped, his whole head skinned, his arms and legs unjointed, his head cut off; he was all cut to pieces. So they thought that there was not enough of him left to bury, and besides, those killed in battle are often left unburied. When they found how it was, they started back to the village, and when they came close to it, one of the men called out, “Pa-hu-ka´-tawa is killed!” He called that out so that the people might know, and might begin to mourn.
The next morning, the four men talked together. One said, “We should head up and see if he’s dead.” Another said, “Yeah, let’s go check it out. We might be able to bury him.” So they carefully made their way to where he had been, keeping an eye out over all the hills for any enemies that might be nearby. They found him. He was dead, shot full of arrows, scalped, his entire head skinned, his arms and legs disjointed, and his head cut off; he was completely mutilated. They figured there wasn’t enough left of him to bury, and besides, those who die in battle are often left unburied. When they saw the situation, they headed back to the village, and as they got close, one of the men shouted, “Pa-hu-ka´-tawa is killed!” He called that out so the people would know and could start to mourn.
When they came into the village, the relations of [Pg 144] this man felt very badly because he was killed. It was coming on toward the time when they begin to clear up their patches, to plant the corn, and to hoe, and his father and mother mourned, and said, “Now we have no one to help us hoe. We are old, and he helped us; but now he is gone.” So they mourned for him.
When they arrived in the village, this man's family felt really sad because he had been killed. It was getting close to the time when they usually start clearing their fields, planting corn, and weeding, and his parents grieved, saying, “Now we have no one to help us with the weeding. We’re getting old, and he used to help us; but now he’s gone.” So they mourned for him.
They did not visit the place where he had been killed for some time. It was now spring, and they were planting, and hoeing the corn, and when they got through their work, the whole tribe started out on the summer hunt to get buffalo, as they used to do. They started up the Loup, and when they had traveled along a number of days, they came near the place where the man had been killed. When they got there, the men who had been with him said, “This is the place where Pa-hu-ka´-tawa was killed,” and his father and mother and all his relations went over to the place where he had lain, to gather his bones together and then to bury them. When they got to the place, they could find no bones at all, but the arrows were there, sticking straight up in the ground; all the arrows that had been shot into the body. They wondered that they had not fallen down, for they thought that the wolves might have dragged [Pg 145] the body, but when they looked everywhere about for the bones, they could find no sign of them anywhere. It seemed strange to them that the arrows should be there standing up in the ground, and they wondered what had become of the bones. At length they gave up looking for them, and went back to the camp. When they could not find the bones, they went on and hunted buffalo, and killed plenty, and made dried meat. After two months they started back to the village, going down the Platte River. His mother had cried so much for Pa-hu-ka´-tawa, that she had become blind.
They didn’t visit the place where he had been killed for a while. It was now spring, and they were planting and hoeing the corn. Once they finished their work, the whole tribe set out on the summer hunt for buffalo, just like they used to. They headed up the Loup, and after traveling for several days, they got close to the spot where the man had been killed. When they arrived, the men who were with him said, “This is where Pa-hu-ka´-tawa was killed,” and his father, mother, and all his relatives went over to the place where he had lain to collect his bones and then bury them. When they got there, they couldn’t find any bones at all, but the arrows were there, sticking straight up in the ground—every arrow that had been shot into his body. They were surprised that they hadn’t fallen down, since they thought wolves might have dragged the body away, but when they looked everywhere for the bones, they couldn’t find any trace of them. It seemed odd to them that the arrows remained standing in the ground, and they wondered what happened to the bones. Eventually, they gave up the search and returned to the camp. Unable to find the bones, they went on and hunted buffalo, killing plenty and making dried meat. After two months, they headed back to the village, traveling down the Platte River. His mother had wept so much for Pa-hu-ka´-tawa that she had lost her sight.
One pleasant afternoon they were camped on the Platte. The evening was warm and soft and still. As the sun went down toward the earth, long shining rays seemed to come down from it to the ground. All through the air was a light smoke, and in the west the sky was red. Just as the sun was setting, the people all heard a voice calling from the other side of the river. They listened; and the voice said, “Pa-hu-ka´-tawa is coming back to you.” Then all the Indians jumped up, and ran across the river to meet him, for they thought perhaps he was coming back. When they had got to the other side, they looked about, but could see no one. Then they [Pg 146] heard a voice from behind them, on the other side of the camp, which said, “He is coming from here.” They all turned round and ran back to the other side of the camp; but no one was there; and in a little while they heard the voice again, on the other side of the river, saying, “He is coming.” Then they knew it was only a voice and not a person. They stopped running about, and that night they talked about the voice. The next day they went on down the river, and at length got back to the main village. There they stayed six months, and by this time their dried meat was all eaten, and it was toward spring.
One nice afternoon, they were camping by the Platte. The evening was warm, soft, and calm. As the sun went down, long rays of light seemed to reach the ground. There was a light haze in the air, and the sky was red in the west. Just as the sun was setting, everyone heard a voice calling from across the river. They listened, and the voice said, “Pa-hu-ka´-tawa is coming back to you.” All the Indians jumped up and ran across the river to meet him, thinking he might really be returning. Once they reached the other side, they looked around but saw no one. Then they heard a voice behind them, on the other side of the camp, saying, “He is coming from here.” They all turned and rushed back to the other side of the camp, but nobody was there. After a little while, they heard the voice again from across the river, saying, “He is coming.” That’s when they realized it was just a voice and not a person. They stopped running around, and that night they talked about the voice. The next day, they continued down the river and eventually returned to the main village. They stayed there for six months, and by then, all their dried meat was gone, and it was nearing spring.
The mother of Pa-hu-ka´-tawa had her bed near the door of the lodge on the left hand side, the last bed next to the door. One night, at midnight, he came into the lodge, and touched his mother and said, “Mother! mother!” His mother used to dream of him almost every night, and she thought she was dreaming now. She said, “Oh, my son, do not do this. You are deceiving me again.” He stopped; but presently he touched her again, and pushed her shoulder, and she awoke.
The mother of Pa-hu-ka´-tawa had her bed near the door of the lodge on the left side, the last bed next to the door. One night, at midnight, he came into the lodge, touched his mother, and said, “Mom! Mom!” His mother dreamed about him almost every night, and she thought she was dreaming now. She said, “Oh, my son, please don’t do this. You’re tricking me again.” He stopped; but soon he touched her again and nudged her shoulder, and she woke up.
He said to her, “Mother, I am here,” and she reached out and felt him.
He said to her, “Mom, I’m here,” and she reached out and touched him.
He answered, “Yes, I am your son.”
He replied, “Yes, I’m your son.”
Then she put her arms around him, and hugged him, and said to him, “Oh, my son, my son, you have come back to me.” She cried, she was so glad.
Then she wrapped her arms around him, hugged him tightly, and said, “Oh, my son, my son, you’re back with me.” She cried, overwhelmed with joy.
Then they talked together. He gave her a piece of meat—a piece of fresh buffalo meat—though they had had no fresh meat in the village for six months. He said to his mother, “I am really alive, though I was killed. The Nahu´rac (animals) took pity on me, and have made me alive again. And now I am going off; but do not cry about me any more.” Then he went away.
Then they talked. He handed her a piece of meat—a piece of fresh buffalo meat—even though there hadn’t been any fresh meat in the village for six months. He said to his mother, “I’m really alive, even though I was killed. The Nahu´rac (animals) took pity on me and brought me back to life. Now I'm leaving, but please don’t cry for me anymore.” Then he walked away.
The next morning, when his mother awoke, she found by her side the piece of fresh meat, and she began to cook it on the coals. The people wondered where she got the fresh meat, and asked her about it, but she would not tell them where she got it, for her son had told her to say nothing. They asked her again where she got it, and she told them she found it in her bed.
The next morning, when his mom woke up, she found a piece of fresh meat next to her, and she started cooking it over the coals. The people were curious about where she got the fresh meat and asked her about it, but she wouldn’t tell them, since her son had told her to keep quiet. They asked her again where she found it, and she said she discovered it in her bed.
After a long time her son came again in the night, and went into the lodge, and spoke to his mother, saying, “Mother, I am here again.” She awoke, and rejoiced that he had come back. He said to [Pg 148] her, “My mother, I know that you are poor. You are blind on account of me, because you have cried so much. Now, my mother, there is standing by the side of your daughter’s bed, water in a wooden bowl. After I have left you to-night, go over there, and put your face down deep into the water, and open your eyes in the water, and then you will see.” Before he left her he gave her some ka´wis.[8]
After a long time, her son came back at night, entered the lodge, and spoke to his mother, saying, “Mom, I’m here again.” She woke up and was happy he had returned. He said to her, “Mom, I know you’re struggling. You’ve become blind because of me, due to all your tears. Now, Mom, next to your daughter’s bed, there’s a wooden bowl of water. After I leave you tonight, go there, put your face in the water, and open your eyes, and then you will see.” Before he left her, he gave her some ka´wis.[8]
After he had gone, she did as he had told her. She got up, and feeling her way along with her hands, crept into the place where her daughter slept. There she felt the wooden bowl with water in it, and she put her face deep down into the water, and opened her eyes in it, and when she took her face out of the water, and opened her eyes again, she could see. Then she was glad. Everybody wondered how the mother’s eyes had been cured, but she told no one, except only her oldest son.
After he left, she did what he told her to do. She got up and, feeling her way with her hands, quietly slipped into the room where her daughter slept. There, she found the wooden bowl filled with water, and she dunked her face into it, opening her eyes underwater. When she lifted her face out and opened her eyes again, she could see. Then she felt happy. Everyone was curious about how the mother’s eyesight was restored, but she told no one, except for her oldest son.
After a long time Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down again to see his mother. He said to her, “Mother, I am going up to see my oldest brother.” He went to see his brother in the night. His brother was expecting him, for his mother had warned him. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Now, my brother, I think you [Pg 149] have heard that I come all the time to see our mother. I wish that you would put up your lodge outside the camp, so that I can come and see you often. I want to talk to you, and tell you my thoughts and all my troubles. I am a spirit.” His brother answered him that he would do as he had asked, and the first night after the lodge had been set up outside the camp, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down, and said to his brother, “To-morrow night I want you to select the two bravest men in the tribe, and let them go about through the camp, and call all the chiefs and all the bravest warriors in the tribe, and let them gather at your home. Do not build any fire in the lodge. Let it all be dark, for I am coming down in the night to see them.”
After a long time, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down again to see his mom. He said to her, “Mom, I’m going up to visit my oldest brother.” He went to see his brother at night. His brother was expecting him because their mom had warned him. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Now, my brother, I think you’ve heard that I come to see our mom all the time. I wish you would set up your lodge outside the camp so that I can visit you more often. I want to talk to you and share my thoughts and troubles. I am a spirit.” His brother replied that he would do as he asked, and the first night after the lodge was set up outside the camp, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down and said to his brother, “Tomorrow night, I want you to choose the two bravest men in the tribe. Let them walk around the camp, calling all the chiefs and the bravest warriors in the tribe to gather at your home. Don’t build any fire in the lodge. Keep it dark because I'm coming down at night to see them.”
When the next night came, the chiefs and the braves gathered at the lodge just about dark. They made no fire, but sat there waiting for Pa-hu-ka´-tawa to come down. After a while he came down to the lodge, and came in where they were sitting. When they were all silent, he came in, and every step he made it seemed that sparks of fire were flying out from him. He went and stood before his brother, and said to him, “I am in everything; in the grass, the water, the trees. I am a part of all these things. [Pg 150] I know every thought of yours, and if you only whispered, I would hear it. I know everything, and about everything, even about the ocean which is so far off, and where the water is salt.
When night fell again, the chiefs and warriors gathered at the lodge just as it was getting dark. They didn’t light a fire but sat there waiting for Pa-hu-ka´-tawa to arrive. After a while, he came down to the lodge and entered where they were sitting. As the room fell silent, he walked in, and with each step, it seemed like sparks of fire were flying off him. He stood in front of his brother and said, “I am in everything; in the grass, the water, the trees. I am part of all of these things. [Pg150] I know every thought you have, and even if you just whisper, I would hear it. I know everything about everything, even about the ocean that is so far away, where the water is salty.”
“There are two dances that I like, in which there are songs sung about me.” Then he sang these songs and told them how to dance these dances.[9] He said, “Dance these dances and sing about me, calling me by name.”
“There are two dances I enjoy, with songs sung about me.” Then he performed these songs and showed them how to do the dances.[9] He said, “Dance these dances and sing about me, calling me by my name.”
Then he said, “Brother, I want you to know that there is a tribe of your enemies getting ready to go on the warpath against you. I will let you know when they start, and all they do. Every move they make I will tell you of. They are coming from far up the Missouri River.”
Then he said, “Brother, I want you to know that there’s a group of your enemies getting ready to go to war against you. I’ll keep you updated when they start, and on everything they do. I’ll let you know about every move they make. They’re coming from way up the Missouri River.”
Two or three nights later Pa-hu-ka´-tawa appeared to his brother, and said, “They are coming. To-morrow night they will be here spying round the camp. Be ready for them. You must ask me to take pity on you, telling me what you want to do, and I will make you strong, so that you can succeed. If you want to strike two or three, ask me. If you want to kill two or three, tell me. You must call me grandfather.”
Two or three nights later, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa appeared to his brother and said, “They're coming. Tomorrow night they'll be here watching the camp. Be ready for them. You need to ask me to help you, telling me what you want to do, and I will make you strong so you can succeed. If you want to strike two or three, ask me. If you want to kill two or three, tell me. You must call me grandfather.”
[Pg 151] The next night they danced and asked him to take pity on them. One young man prayed, saying, “Let me strike nine, and at the tenth let me be wounded, but let me not die.” A second young man prayed, saying, “I want to strike five and capture the biggest man in the party.” Another man asked him, “Let me strike two, and then let me be killed.” To each one who asked a favor of him, he said, “Let it be so.” They did not see him, for there was no fire in the lodge. It was dark.
[Pg151] The following night they danced and begged him for mercy. One young man prayed, saying, “Let me hit nine times, and on the tenth, let me be injured, but please don’t let me die.” A second young man prayed, “I want to hit five times and take down the biggest guy in the group.” Another man asked, “Let me hit twice, and then let me die.” To each person who asked him for a favor, he replied, “So be it.” They couldn't see him because there was no fire in the lodge. It was dark.
He said to them, “Be ready. To-morrow morning is the time when the enemy will attack you. I will send a fog from the north as a warning. They will come down toward the village, and you must go out on the plain in front of the village, and have a skirmish with them. Then draw off, and look toward the point of bluff which runs down into the plain on the east end of the battle field. Watch that point and you will see me. I will appear to you there. And this shall be a sign to you that it is I whom you see. When I come up over that point and turn around, facing to the north, the wind will change and will come from the south. And when the wind blows from the south, you make a charge on them.”
He said to them, “Get ready. Tomorrow morning is when the enemy will attack you. I will send a fog from the north as a warning. They will head towards the village, and you need to go out onto the plain in front of the village and have a skirmish with them. Then pull back and look towards the bluff that extends into the plain at the east end of the battlefield. Keep an eye on that point, and you’ll see me. I will appear there to you. This will be a sign that it’s really me. When I come over that point and turn to face north, the wind will shift and blow from the south. And when the wind comes from the south, you should charge at them.”
[Pg 152] So it was. The next morning the enemy made an attack on them, and came down toward the village. It was the very day he had said. The warriors went out on the plain to meet them. They were wondering in what shape Pa-hu-ka´-tawa would appear to them, how he would look. On that morning, before the Sioux appeared, a white fog came down from the north. Then the Sioux made the attack, and the people began to look for Pa-hu-ka´-tawa. And while they were looking toward the bluff, a great white wolf came up over the point, and stood looking first one way and then another, and then it turned around and faced the north. And immediately the wind changed and blew from the south. When the wolf appeared, some of the braves doubted whether it was Pa-hu-ka´-tawa, but when it turned round, and the wind changed, then they knew that it was he.
[Pg152] So it was. The next morning, the enemy attacked and moved toward the village. It was the exact day he had mentioned. The warriors went out to the plains to confront them. They were curious about how Pa-hu-ka´-tawa would show up, what he would look like. That morning, before the Sioux arrived, a thick white fog rolled in from the north. Then the Sioux launched their attack, and the people began searching for Pa-hu-ka´-tawa. As they were looking toward the bluff, a large white wolf ascended over the ridge, glancing around and then turning to face the north. At that moment, the wind shifted and started blowing from the south. When the wolf appeared, some of the braves were unsure if it was Pa-hu-ka´-tawa, but once it turned around and the wind changed, they realized that it was indeed him.
Then they made the charge, and each one of those who had asked a favor received it. In every case what Pa-hu-ka´-tawa had promised came true. The man who had prayed that he might strike nine and at the tenth be wounded, struck nine and was wounded at the tenth, but he did not die; the one who asked to strike five, and to capture the biggest [Pg 153] man in the party, did so. He caught the prisoner, and overcame him, and put a rope around his neck, and led him into the village. And when he got him to the village the women beat the captive with sticks and clubs, and threw dirt at him, and had lots of fun with him. The young man who had asked it, killed two, and then was himself killed. All that Pa-hu-ka´-tawa had promised came to pass.
Then they charged ahead, and each person who had asked for a favor received it. In every case, what Pa-hu-ka´-tawa had promised came true. The man who prayed to strike nine and be wounded on the tenth did just that—he struck nine and was wounded on the tenth, but he didn't die; the one who asked to strike five and capture the biggest man in the group succeeded. He caught the prisoner, defeated him, put a rope around his neck, and led him into the village. When he got to the village, the women beat the captive with sticks and clubs, threw dirt at him, and had a great time with him. The young man who had asked for it killed two, and then he was killed himself. Everything Pa-hu-ka´-tawa had promised came to pass.
The people killed many of the Sioux, and drove them far, chasing and killing them all day long. Then they came back to the village, bringing with them the scalps and the weapons that they had taken, the bows and the spears, the shields and the war bonnets. They danced in the village, and sang and rejoiced. Every one was glad because the people had won a great victory.
The people killed many of the Sioux and chased them away, pursuing and killing them all day. Then they returned to the village, bringing back the scalps and weapons they had taken, including bows, spears, shields, and war bonnets. They celebrated in the village, dancing, singing, and rejoicing. Everyone was happy because they had achieved a significant victory.
The next night after the day of the battle, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down to his brother’s lodge, and told him that he wanted to speak to him. His brother awoke all his wives, and sent them out of the lodge, telling them not to come back until he called them. Then Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said to his brother, “Now, my brother, you people have seen whether what I say to you is true or not. You have seen what has happened, you can judge. Now, brother, I want you to [Pg 154] feel of me all over; nobody else but you to feel of me, my brother.” His brother passed his hands all over his breast and arms and body and legs. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Now put your hands on top of my head, and feel there.” He did so, and felt something soft. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Do you know what that is? That is the down feathers.”
The night after the battle, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came to his brother’s lodge and said he wanted to talk. His brother woke up all his wives and sent them out of the lodge, telling them not to return until he called for them. Then Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said to his brother, “Now, my brother, you have seen whether what I've told you is true or not. You’ve witnessed what happened, and you can judge for yourself. Now, brother, I want you to touch me all over; only you, my brother.” His brother ran his hands over his chest, arms, body, and legs. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Now put your hands on top of my head and feel there.” He did so and felt something soft. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Do you know what that is? That’s down feathers.”
Then he told the story of his being killed. He said, “That time after I got killed, all kinds of Nahu´rac took pity on me. The flies and bugs, the fishes and birds, the deer and the wolves, all the animals took pity on me, and helped me to come to life again. They looked all over for my flesh and my bones, and brought them all together. One part of me, the top part of my skull, they could not find. The bugs crept through the ground looking for it, the fishes swam through the water and sought it, the flies buzzed about over the sand, and the deer and wolves hunted for it on the prairie, but they could not find this piece anywhere. Nor could they find my brains. Perhaps, when I was killed, the crows eat them out. When they had gathered the pieces all together, they laid each piece in its own place, so that they had the form of a man, and in place of the top of the skull and the brains they put [Pg 155] the down feathers. After they had put all the pieces together, they stood around me, and prayed, and passed their paws over me, and danced and sang, and at last I breathed a little. Then they prayed again, and passed their paws over me, and at length I breathed regularly. Then I was not dead any more; I was alive again. Not as a person was I alive, but as a spirit.
Then he told the story of how he got killed. He said, “After I died, all kinds of Nahu´rac felt sorry for me. The flies and bugs, the fish and birds, the deer and the wolves—every animal took pity on me and helped me come back to life. They searched everywhere for my flesh and bones and brought them all together. One part, the top of my skull, they couldn’t find. The bugs crawled through the ground looking for it, the fish swam through the water searching for it, the flies buzzed over the sand, and the deer and wolves scoured the prairie, but they couldn’t find that piece anywhere. They also couldn’t find my brains. Maybe the crows ate them when I was killed. Once they gathered all the pieces, they laid each one in its place so that it looked like a man. Instead of the top of the skull and the brains, they used [Pg155] down feathers. After they put all the pieces together, they stood around me, prayed, passed their paws over me, danced, and sang, and finally, I breathed a little. Then they prayed again, passed their paws over me, and eventually, I breathed normally. I was no longer dead; I was alive again. Not as a person, but as a spirit."
“I am in every thing; in the wind, in the rain, in the grass. I go over the whole world. I am the wind, and I go everywhere all over the world. There is no one above me but Ti-ra´-wa. He is the only one I am under. He is the ruler of all. Whenever any human being on this earth, man, woman or child, says anything about me, I hear it surely. You must tell all this to every one, and say to them that if they are sick or unfortunate, let them pray to me, and I will heal or help them.
“I am in everything; in the wind, in the rain, in the grass. I cover the whole world. I am the wind, and I travel everywhere. There is no one above me except Ti-ra´-wa. He is the only one I answer to. He is the ruler of all. Whenever any person on this earth—man, woman, or child—says anything about me, I definitely hear it. You must share this with everyone and tell them that if they are sick or in trouble, they should pray to me, and I will heal or help them."
“Now you know that I am living, but I am a spirit; and whenever you people have a fight with the Sioux, if you pray to me, and call me by name, and ask to be brave, and to be helped, I will hear you. If you wish to be brave, or if you wish not to be hurt in battle, even though the enemy be right upon you, and just striking or shooting at you, I will [Pg 156] protect you. I shall live forever, as long as this world exists. So long as I come to you, I want you people to conquer the Sioux all you can, on account of what they did to me when they killed me and cut me in pieces. So long as the Sioux come down to attack you, I want you to conquer them every time.
“Now you know that I'm alive, but I'm a spirit. Whenever you have a fight with the Sioux, if you pray to me, call my name, and ask for bravery and help, I will hear you. If you want to be brave, or if you want to avoid being hurt in battle, even if the enemy is right on you and attacking, I will protect you. I will live forever, as long as this world exists. As long as I come to you, I want you to defeat the Sioux as much as you can, because of what they did to me when they killed me and dismembered me. As long as the Sioux come down to attack you, I want you to conquer them every time.
“Now, brother, when I come down to see you, you must not get tired of me. I want to come down often to see you, and talk to you, to tell you what is going to happen, and to warn you whenever the Sioux are coming down to attack the Skidi. I go about everywhere, to the camps of the different bands of Sioux, and I know what the chiefs are saying in council; when they are talking of sending out war parties against you. If I come down to you often, do not get tired of seeing me.”
“Hey, brother, when I come down to see you, please don't get sick of me. I want to visit you often, chat with you, let you know what's going to happen, and warn you whenever the Sioux are planning to attack the Skidi. I go everywhere, to the camps of the different Sioux bands, and I know what the chiefs are discussing in their meetings when they're planning to send out war parties against you. If I visit you frequently, don't get tired of having me around.”
He knew himself that his brother would some time refuse to listen to him, but his brother did not know it, and he said, “I will never get tired of you.”
He knew that his brother would eventually refuse to listen to him, but his brother didn’t realize it, and he said, “I will never get tired of you.”
Some time after this, the Sioux came down again to attack the Skidi village. Two days before they came, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down to his brother and warned him, saying, “A big war party of Sioux will be here day after to-morrow to fight with you. But I am going to attend to them. On the morning of [Pg 157] the second day from this, tell all the people to be ready, and to have their horses tied up close to the lodges, where they can get at them. Then, if you look up in the sky, you will see thick black clouds, as if you were going to have a great rain. When you begin fighting, do not be afraid of the enemy. Do not be afraid of them; go right up to them; they will not be able to shoot, their bowstrings will be wet, and the sinews will stretch and slip off the ends of the bows. They will not be able to hurt you.”
Some time later, the Sioux returned to attack the Skidi village. Two days before they arrived, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came to his brother and warned him, saying, “A large war party of Sioux will be here the day after tomorrow to fight with you. But I’m going to take care of them. On the morning of [Pg157], the second day from now, tell everyone to be ready and to tie their horses close to the lodges, where they can easily reach them. Then, if you look up in the sky, you’ll see thick black clouds, as if there's going to be a heavy rain. When you start fighting, don’t be afraid of the enemy. Don’t be scared; go right up to them; they won’t be able to shoot, their bowstrings will be wet, and the sinews will stretch and slip off the ends of their bows. They won’t be able to hurt you.”
On the morning that he had said, the Sioux came down, and the people went out to meet them. The sky above was black with clouds. When they began fighting, a heavy rain commenced to fall, but it did not rain everywhere, but only just where the Sioux were. The bowstrings of the Sioux got wet, so that they could not use them, for the sinews stretched, so that when they bent their bows the strings slipped off the ends of the bows, and there was no force to their arrows. The Skidi overcame the Sioux and drove them, and the Sioux ran far. The rain followed the Sioux, and rained over them, but nowhere else, and the Sioux fled, and the Skidi won a great victory.
On the morning he mentioned, the Sioux arrived, and the people went out to greet them. The sky overhead was filled with dark clouds. When the fighting began, heavy rain started to pour, but it only fell where the Sioux were. The Sioux's bowstrings got wet, making them unusable because the sinews stretched, causing the strings to slip off the ends of the bows, and their arrows lacked force. The Skidi defeated the Sioux and drove them back, and the Sioux ran far away. The rain followed the Sioux, pouring down on them but nowhere else, and the Sioux fled, resulting in a great victory for the Skidi.
Soon after this, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down and [Pg 158] visited his brother, and said to him, “My brother, whenever you have a feast or a council of old men, you must smoke to me and say, ‘Father, we want you to help us.’ Then I will hear you. At the same time you must pray to Ti-ra´-wa. There is one above us who is the ruler of all. I do not wish to be talked about commonly or by common men, but that whenever you have a feast you should call in the young men and tell them about me and let them hear.” He did not want his name used irreverently, nor wish that the story of what he had suffered and done should be told commonly or for mere amusement. It is sacred and should be told only at solemn times.
Soon after this, Pa-hu-ka´-tawa came down and [Pg158] visited his brother, and said to him, “My brother, whenever you have a feast or a meeting of elders, you need to smoke for me and say, ‘Father, we want you to help us.’ Then I will hear you. At the same time, you must pray to Ti-ra´-wa. There is someone above us who rules everything. I don’t want my name used carelessly or by ordinary people, but whenever you have a feast, you should gather the young men, tell them about me, and let them listen.” He didn’t want his name mentioned disrespectfully, nor did he wish for the story of his suffering and deeds to be told casually or for simple entertainment. It is sacred and should only be shared during serious occasions.
Some time after this talk with his brother, he came down again to see him. Another man was living in his brother’s lodge, and on this night his brother was not there, he was sleeping somewhere else. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa asked this man where his brother was. He answered, “He is not here to-night, he is sleeping somewhere else.” Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Go over and tell him that I am here, and that I want to see him.” The man went and gave the message to the brother, who said, “I do not want to go. Tell him I am asleep.” The man went back and told [Pg 159] Pa-hu-ka´-tawa that his brother could not come. He said, “He is asleep.” Pa-hu-ka´-tawa sent him back again, to get the brother. The man went, and said to the brother, “He wants to see you very much.” The brother said, “Tell him I can’t come; I want to sleep to-night.” The man returned and said, “He does not want to come, he is sleeping.” He was sent back for the brother the third time, to tell the brother he must come, he was wanted. He sent word back that he could not, he was too sleepy. Then Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Very well. Go back and tell him to sleep now, to sleep all he wants. I told him before that he would get tired of me at last. Let him sleep all he wants, I will come to him no more. I can go to some other tribe. This is the last time I will come. Tell him to sleep. I will trouble him no more. I am going off, but tell the people not to forget me; to talk of me sometimes, and to pray to me, and I will help them and care for the tribe.”
Some time after talking to his brother, he went down to see him again. Another man was staying in his brother’s lodge, and that night his brother wasn't there; he was sleeping somewhere else. Pa-hu-ka´-tawa asked this man where his brother was. He replied, “He’s not here tonight; he’s sleeping somewhere else.” Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Go tell him that I’m here and I want to see him.” The man went to deliver the message to the brother, who said, “I don't want to go. Tell him I’m asleep.” The man returned and told [Pg159] Pa-hu-ka´-tawa that his brother couldn’t come. He said, “He’s asleep.” Pa-hu-ka´-tawa sent him back again to get the brother. The man went back and said to the brother, “He really wants to see you.” The brother replied, “Tell him I can’t come; I want to sleep tonight.” The man returned and said, “He doesn’t want to come; he’s sleeping.” He was sent back for the brother a third time, to tell him he needed to come because he was wanted. He sent word back that he couldn’t because he was too sleepy. Then Pa-hu-ka´-tawa said, “Alright. Go back and tell him to sleep now, to sleep as much as he wants. I told him before that he would eventually get tired of me. Let him sleep as much as he wants; I won’t visit him again. I can go to another tribe. This will be the last time I come. Tell him to sleep. I won’t bother him anymore. I’m leaving, but tell the people not to forget about me; to talk about me sometimes and to pray to me, and I’ll help them and take care of the tribe.”
So Pa-hu-ka´-tawa went away to the Rees, and the people knew him no more; after that he never came down to see them. When the people learned this, they felt very badly, and were angry at his brother who would not see him. There was living not long [Pg 160] ago, among the Rees, an old woman, who, when she was a girl, had seen and talked to Pa-hu-ka´-tawa.
So Pa-hu-ka´-tawa left for the Rees, and the people never saw him again; he never returned to visit them. When the people found out, they felt very upset and were angry at his brother for not seeing him. Not long ago, among the Rees, there was an old woman who, when she was a girl, had seen and talked to Pa-hu-ka´-tawa.
Note.—This is a Skidi story. The Rees have a story of what Pa-hu-ka´-tawa did after he had come to them. The Lower Village tribes have a story of a hero of this same name, which is quite different from that of the Skidi.
Note.—This is a Skidi story. The Rees have a story about what Pa-hu-ka´-tawa did after he arrived. The Lower Village tribes have a story about a hero with the same name, but it's quite different from the Skidi version.

LONE CHIEF—SKIDI.
Lone Chief—Skidi.
THE BOY WHO WAS SACRIFICED.
THERE was a time, far back, when some people thought that it was good to sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa whatever they had that was most precious to them. The sacrifice of the animal, the burnt offering, has always been made by all the Pawnees; that is one of the things handed down from the ruler. It is very old. The Skidi have always performed the sacrifice of the captive. Each one of these is sacred and solemn, but it is not like giving up something that belongs to you, and that you love. It is a sacrifice, but it does not cost much.
THERE was a time, long ago, when some people believed it was important to sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa whatever they valued the most. The sacrifice of an animal, the burnt offering, has always been made by all the Pawnees; that is one of the traditions passed down from their leader. It’s very ancient. The Skidi have always carried out the sacrifice of a captive. Each of these is sacred and serious, but it's not the same as giving up something that you own and cherish. It is a sacrifice, but it doesn't really cost much.
Many years ago, in the Skidi village on the Loup, there lived a man, who believed that if he sacrificed his son to Ti-ra´-wa, it would be a blessing to him. He thought that if he did this thing, perhaps Ti-ra´-wa would speak to him face to face, and that he could talk to him just as two people would talk to [Pg 162] one another, and that in this way he would learn many things that other people did not understand. His child was a nice boy about ten years old, strong, growing up well, and the man loved him. It made him feel badly to think of killing him. He meditated long about this, but the more he thought about it, the more he believed that this sacrifice would please Ti-ra´-wa. There were many things that he wanted to understand, and to do; and he thought if he gave up his son, these good things would come to him. So he resolved to make the sacrifice.
Many years ago, in the Skidi village on the Loup, there was a man who believed that if he sacrificed his son to Ti-ra´-wa, it would bring him blessings. He thought that by doing this, maybe Ti-ra´-wa would speak to him in person, and that he could chat with him just like two people would talk to each other, and in this way, he would learn many things that others didn’t understand. His child was a good boy, around ten years old, strong and growing up well, and the man loved him. It troubled him to think about killing his son. He thought about it for a long time, but the more he pondered, the more he convinced himself that this sacrifice would make Ti-ra´-wa happy. There were many things he wanted to understand and do, and he believed that if he sacrificed his son, those good things would come to him. So, he decided to go through with the sacrifice.
One morning he started out from the village, and took the boy with him. They went over to the Platte. When they got to the river, as they were walking along, the man took his knife from its sheath, and caught the boy by the shoulder, and stabbed him quickly, and cut him open. When the boy was dead, he threw the body into the river, and then went back to the village. When he got there, he went into his lodge and sat down. After a time he said to his wife, “Where is the boy?” The woman said, “He went out with you, when you went over to see the horses.” The man answered, “No; I went out to where the horses are feeding, and looked at them, but he did not go with me.”
One morning, he set out from the village and took the boy with him. They headed over to the Platte River. When they arrived at the river, as they were walking along, the man pulled out his knife, grabbed the boy by the shoulder, and quickly stabbed him, cutting him open. After the boy was dead, he threw the body into the river and then returned to the village. When he got there, he entered his lodge and sat down. After a while, he asked his wife, “Where's the boy?” The woman replied, “He went out with you when you went to see the horses.” The man responded, “No; I went to where the horses were grazing and looked at them, but he didn’t come with me.”
[Pg 163] The man went out, and looked for the boy all through the village, but he could not find him. At night when the boy did not come home, they began to get frightened, and for two days they hunted for the boy, and at last they got the old crier to call out for him from the top of the lodge, and ask if any one had seen him, but none of the people knew what had become of the boy. Now the mother was mourning, and the father pretended to feel very badly. They could not find the boy; and soon after this the tribe started on the summer hunt, and the father and mother went with them. The village made a good hunt, killing plenty of buffalo, and made much dried meat.
[Pg163] The man went out and searched for the boy throughout the village, but he couldn't find him. When night fell and the boy still hadn't come home, they began to worry. They searched for two days, and finally had the old town crier call out for him from the top of the lodge to see if anyone had seen him, but no one knew what had happened to the boy. The mother was heartbroken, and the father pretended to be very upset. They were unable to find the boy, and shortly after that, the tribe set out on the summer hunt, with the father and mother joining them. The village had a successful hunt, killing plenty of buffalo and making a lot of dried meat.
After the boy had been thrown into the river, he floated down with the current, sometimes turning over and over in the swift water, and sometimes grounding for a little while on a sand bar, and then being floated off again, and being carried further down. At length he came near to the place where the whirlpool is, under the bluff at Pa-hŭk´, where is the lodge of the Nahu´rac. There were two buzzards sitting on the bluff, just above this place, and as they sat there, one of them stretched out his neck and looked up the river, and after he had looked, he [Pg 164] said to the other, “I see a body.” Then both the buzzards flew down to where the boy was floating in the water, and got down under him, and raised him on their backs, and lifted him up out of the water, and flew up to the bluff, carrying the boy on their backs, and placed him on the ground on top of the bluff over the big cave, which is the home of the Nahu´rac. In this lodge were all kinds of animals, and all kinds of birds. There were bears, and mountain lions, and buffalo, and elk, and beaver, and otter, and deer; all kinds of animals, great and small, and all kinds of birds.
After the boy was tossed into the river, he floated down with the current, sometimes rolling over in the fast water, and sometimes grounding for a bit on a sandbar, then being carried off again and drifting further downstream. Eventually, he neared the spot where the whirlpool is, beneath the bluff at Pa-hŭk´, where the lodge of the Nahu´rac is located. Two buzzards were perched on the bluff just above this area, and while they sat there, one of them stretched out his neck and looked up the river. After watching for a moment, he said to the other, “I see a body.” Then both buzzards swooped down to where the boy was floating in the water, positioned themselves underneath him, lifted him onto their backs, and flew up to the bluff, carrying the boy with them. They set him down on the ground at the top of the bluff, right above the large cave that is the home of the Nahu´rac. Inside this lodge were all sorts of animals and birds. There were bears, mountain lions, buffalo, elk, beavers, otters, and deer; all kinds of animals, big and small, and all types of birds.
There is a little bird, smaller than a pigeon. Its back is blue, and its breast white, and its head is spotted. It flies swiftly over the water, and when it sees a fish, it dives down into the water to catch it. This bird is a servant or a messenger for the Nahu´rac. Such a bird came flying by just as the buzzards put the body on the ground, and he stopped and looked at it. When he saw how it was—for he knew all that had happened—he flew down into the lodge and told the Nahu´rac about the boy. The bird said, “There is a boy up here on the hill. He is dead, and he is poor, and I want to have him brought to life again.” Then he told the Nahu´rac [Pg 165] all the things that had happened. When the messenger bird had done speaking, the Nahu´rac earnestly counselled together for a long time to decide what should be done, and each one made a speech, giving his opinion about the matter, but they could not make up their minds what ought to be done.
There’s a small bird, even smaller than a pigeon. Its back is blue, its chest is white, and its head has spots. It flies quickly over the water, and when it spots a fish, it dives down to catch it. This bird acts as a servant or messenger for the Nahu´rac. One of these birds flew by just as the buzzards placed the body on the ground, and it paused to look at it. When it realized what had happened—because it knew everything that occurred—it flew down into the lodge and informed the Nahu´rac about the boy. The bird said, “There’s a boy up here on the hill. He’s dead and poor, and I want him brought back to life.” Then it recounted to the Nahu´rac [Pg165] everything that had taken place. Once the messenger bird finished speaking, the Nahu´rac deliberated seriously for a long time to figure out what to do, and each one gave a speech, sharing their views on the matter, but they couldn’t come to a decision on what should be done.
The little bird was coaxing the Nahu´rac, and saying, “Come, now, we want to save his life.” But the Nahu´rac could not decide. At last the chief of the Nahu´rac said, “No, messenger, we cannot decide this here. You will have to go to the other council lodges, and see what they say about it.” The bird said, “I am going,” and flew swiftly out of the lodge and up the river, till he came to the Nahu´rac lodge near the Lone Tree. When he got there, he told them all about the boy, and said that the council at Pa-hŭk´ could not decide what should be done. The Nahu´rac here talked, and at last they said, “We cannot decide. The council at Pa-hŭk´ must decide.” Then the bird went to the lodge on the Loup, and the Nahu´rac there said that they could not decide Then he went to Kitz-a-witz-ŭk, and to Pa-hūr´; and at each place the Nahu´rac considered and talked about it, and then said, “We cannot decide what [Pg 166] shall be done. The council at Pa-hŭk´ must decide for themselves.”
The little bird was urging the Nahu´rac, saying, “Come on, we need to save his life.” But the Nahu´rac couldn't make a decision. Finally, the chief of the Nahu´rac said, “No, messenger, we can't decide this here. You’ll have to go to the other council lodges and see what they think.” The bird replied, “I’m going,” and flew quickly out of the lodge and up the river until he reached the Nahu´rac lodge near the Lone Tree. When he arrived, he explained everything about the boy and mentioned that the council at Pa-hŭk´ couldn't come to a decision. The Nahu´rac discussed it, and in the end, they said, “We can’t decide. The council at Pa-hŭk´ must decide.” Then the bird went to the lodge on the Loup, where the Nahu´rac there also stated they couldn't decide. He then went to Kitz-a-witz-ŭk, and Pa-hūr´; and at each place the Nahu´rac considered and talked about it, and ultimately said, “We cannot decide what [Pg166] should be done. The council at Pa-hŭk´ must decide for themselves.”
At last, after he had visited all the council lodges of the Nahu´rac, the bird flew swiftly back to the lodge at Pa-hŭk´, and told them there what the animals at the other lodges had said. In the council of the Nahu´rac at Pa-hŭk´, there were four chiefs, who sat there as judges to determine such matters as this, after they had all been talked over, and to decide what should be done. When the messenger bird came back, and told the Nahu´rac what the other councils had said, these judges considered for a time, and then spoke together, and at length the chief of the judges said to the bird, “Now, messenger, we have concluded that we will not decide this question ourselves. You decide it, and say what shall be done.”
At last, after visiting all the council lodges of the Nahu´rac, the bird flew quickly back to the lodge at Pa-hŭk´ and reported what the animals at the other lodges had said. In the council of the Nahu´rac at Pa-hŭk´, there were four chiefs who sat as judges to determine matters like this after discussing them thoroughly and deciding what action to take. When the messenger bird returned and shared what the other councils had said, the judges deliberated for a while, then talked among themselves. Eventually, the chief judge addressed the bird, saying, “Now, messenger, we have decided that we will not make this decision ourselves. You decide it and tell us what should be done.”
The messenger was not long in deciding. He did not hesitate. He said, “I want this boy brought back to life.” Then all the Nahu´rac stood up, and went to where the boy lay, and stood around him and prayed, and at last the boy breathed once, and then after a little while he breathed again, and at last he came to life and sat up. He looked about and saw all these animals standing around him, and [Pg 167] he wondered. He said to himself, “Why, my father stabbed me, and killed me, and now here I am among this great crowd of animals. What does this mean?” He was surprised.
The messenger quickly made up his mind. He didn’t hesitate. He said, “I want this boy brought back to life.” Then all the Nahu´rac stood up, went over to where the boy lay, surrounded him, and prayed. Finally, the boy took a breath, then after a moment he breathed again, and eventually he came to life and sat up. He looked around and saw all these animals standing around him, and [Pg167] he felt amazed. He thought to himself, “Wow, my father stabbed me, killed me, and now I’m here with this huge crowd of animals. What does this mean?” He was astonished.
The Nahu´rac all went back into the lodge, and took the boy with them. When all were seated in the lodge, the four judges talked to each other, and the chief one stood up, and said, “Now, my people, we have brought this boy back to life, but he is poor, and we must do something for him. Let us teach him all we know, and make him one of us.” Then the Nahu´rac all made a noise. They were glad. Then they began to sing and they danced. They taught the boy all their secrets, and all their ways. They taught him how to cut a man open and cure him again, and how to shoot an arrow through a man and then cure him, and how to cut a man’s tongue out and then to put it back, and how to make well a broken leg, and many other things. After they had done all these things, they said to the boy, “Now we have brought you back to life, and have taught you all these things, so that you are one of us. Now you must stop with us one season. Your people have gone off on the summer hunt. You must stay with us until the autumn. Then you can go back to your [Pg 168] people.” So the boy stayed with the Nahu´rac in their lodge.
The Nahu´rac all went back into the lodge and took the boy with them. Once everyone was seated, the four judges talked among themselves, and the chief stood up and said, “Now, my people, we’ve brought this boy back to life, but he has nothing, and we need to help him. Let’s teach him everything we know and make him one of us.” The Nahu´rac all cheered. They were happy. Then they began to sing and dance. They taught the boy all their secrets and their ways. They showed him how to operate on a person and heal him, how to shoot an arrow at someone and then heal them, how to cut out a person’s tongue and put it back, how to fix a broken leg, and many other things. After they had done all this, they said to the boy, “Now that we’ve brought you back to life and taught you all these things, you are one of us. You must stay with us for one season. Your people have gone off on the summer hunt. You need to stay with us until autumn. Then you can return to your [Pg168] people.” So the boy stayed with the Nahu´rac in their lodge.
At length the Skidi had returned from the hunt with plenty of dried meat. Soon after this, the Nahu´rac said one day to the boy, “Your people have got back from the hunt. Now you can go back to the village. Go back and get a lot of nice dried meat, and bring it back to us here, and we will have a feast.”
At last, the Skidi came back from the hunt with a lot of dried meat. Not long after, the Nahu´rac said to the boy one day, “Your people are back from the hunt. Now you can return to the village. Go back and grab a bunch of good dried meat, then bring it back to us here, and we’ll have a feast.”
The boy went home to the village. He got there in the night, and went to his father’s lodge, and went in. There was a little fire burning in the lodge. It was nearly out, and gave only a little light, but he knew the place where his mother slept. He went up to her, and put out his hand and touched her, and pushed her a little. She awoke, and sat up and looked at him, and he said, “I’ve come back.” When she saw him, and heard him speak, she was very much surprised, and her heart was glad to see her boy again. She called to his father, and he woke up. When he saw the boy he was afraid, for he thought it was a ghost. The boy told them nothing of what had happened, or where he had been. He just said, “I have come back again.”
The boy returned home to the village. He arrived at night and went to his father’s lodge, entering quietly. There was a small fire burning inside, almost out and providing only dim light, but he knew where his mother slept. He approached her, reached out his hand, touched her, and nudged her gently. She woke up, sat up, and looked at him. He said, “I’ve come back.” When she saw him and heard his voice, she was very surprised and filled with joy to see her boy again. She called to his father, and he woke up. When he saw the boy, he was scared, thinking it was a ghost. The boy didn’t tell them anything about what had happened or where he had been. He just said, “I have come back again.”
In the morning all the people were surprised to [Pg 169] hear that he had come back, and to see him, and they stood around looking at him, and asking him questions, but he said nothing. The next day the people still questioned him, and at last the boy said, “I have been all summer with friends, with people who have been good to me. I should like to take them a present of some nice dried meat, so that we can have a feast.” The people said that this was good. They picked out four strong horses, and loaded them with dried meat, the nicest pieces. The boy’s father gave some of it, and all the other people brought pieces and put them on the horses, until they had big loads. They sent two young men with the boy, to help him load and drive the horses, and they started to go to the Nahu´rac lodge at Pa-hŭk´.
In the morning, everyone was surprised to [Pg169] hear that he had come back and to see him. They gathered around, looking at him and asking him questions, but he said nothing. The next day, the people continued to ask him questions, and finally, the boy said, “I spent all summer with friends who treated me well. I’d like to bring them a gift of some nice dried meat so we can have a feast.” The people agreed that this was a good idea. They chose four strong horses and loaded them with the best pieces of dried meat. The boy’s father contributed some, and all the other people added pieces until the horses had heavy loads. They sent two young men with the boy to help him load and drive the horses, and they set off for the Nahu´rac lodge at Pa-hŭk´.
When they had come pretty near the place, the boy sent the young men back to the village, and he went on alone, driving the pack-horses before him. When he reached the home of the Nahu´rac, he unloaded the horses, and turned them loose, and then went into the lodge. When he went in, and when the Nahu´rac saw him, they all made a hissing noise. They were glad to see him. The boy brought into the lodge all the dried meat, and they had a great feast. After the feast they had a doctors’ [Pg 170] dance, and the boy was made a doctor, and again was taught all that the Nahu´rac knew. After that he could do many wonderful things. He could sometimes go to a man that had been dead for a day, and then bring him back to life.
When they got close to the place, the boy sent the young men back to the village and continued on his own, leading the pack horses in front of him. When he arrived at the home of the Nahu´rac, he unloaded the horses and let them go, then entered the lodge. As he walked in, the Nahu´rac saw him and all made a hissing sound. They were happy to see him. The boy brought all the dried meat into the lodge, and they had a big feast. After the feast, they held a doctors’ [Pg170] dance, and the boy was made a doctor and learned everything the Nahu´rac knew. After that, he was able to do many amazing things. Sometimes, he could go to a man who had been dead for a day and bring him back to life.
No one ever knew what the father had done, for the boy never told any one. He knew that he could never have learned all these wonderful things unless his father had sacrificed him.
No one ever found out what the dad had done, because the boy never told anyone. He understood that he could never have learned all these amazing things if his dad hadn't sacrificed him.

FLESHERS.
Fleshers.
THE SNAKE BROTHER.
ONE time, long ago, a big party of Pawnees went on the warpath down to the south. They could find no enemies anywhere, and they went a long way south. In this party were two brothers, poor boys, and one day as they were traveling along, apart from the others, in a piece of woods where it was very thick, they got lost. When they found that they were lost, they tried to go back to the camp, but they could not find the others, and at last gave up looking for them and started to go back north to their home. They had no food with them, and were looking about for something to kill, so that they might eat. As they were going along, they came upon a dead buffalo that had been killed some time, and there was nothing of it left but the bones, so they took some of the marrow bones, and carried them along with them, until they made a camp.
ONE time, long ago, a large group of Pawnees headed south for war. They couldn’t find any enemies anywhere and traveled a long way. In this group were two brothers, who were poor. One day, while they were walking in a dense part of the woods, they got separated from the others and lost. Realizing they were lost, they tried to find their way back to the camp but couldn't locate anyone, so they eventually gave up and started heading north back home. They had no food with them and were searching for something to hunt so they could eat. As they continued, they stumbled upon a dead buffalo that had been there for some time, and all that remained were its bones. They took some of the marrow bones and carried them until they set up camp.
[Pg 172] Not far beyond here they stopped to rest. There was a tree growing near where they stopped, and as they looked up into it, they saw a squirrel run up the tree. One of the brothers caught up his bow and arrows, and the other said, “Oh, kill him, kill him, quick.” The boy shot and killed it, and they skinned it, and roasted it over the fire. While they were cooking it the elder brother said, “I wonder if it is good to eat the marrow and the squirrel together.” The younger said, “No, it is not good to do so. This is not real meat.”[10] The elder thought the two kinds of food would be good together, and they disputed about this for some time. The elder brother kept coaxing the younger to eat the squirrel and the marrow together, but the younger said, “Oh, brother, I do not like to do this. To me it does not seem good. But if you wish to do it, why don’t you?” The elder said, “I think I will do so;” and he did so, taking a bite of squirrel, and then a bite of marrow. He said, “It is nice, you had better take some.” But the younger brother would not. He ate only the marrow. After they had eaten they did not go on further, but slept there.
[Page172] Not long after that, they took a break. There was a tree nearby, and as they looked up, they saw a squirrel climbing it. One of the brothers grabbed his bow and arrows, and the other said, “Oh, kill it, kill it, fast.” The boy shot and killed the squirrel, and they skinned it and roasted it over the fire. While they were cooking, the older brother said, “I wonder if it’s good to eat the marrow and the squirrel together.” The younger brother replied, “No, that’s not good to do. This isn’t real meat.”[10] The older brother thought the two types of food would taste good together, and they argued about it for a while. The older brother kept trying to persuade the younger to eat the squirrel and the marrow together, but the younger said, “Oh, brother, I don’t want to do that. It doesn’t seem good to me. But if you want to, why don’t you?” The older brother said, “I think I will;” and he did, taking a bite of squirrel and then a bite of marrow. He said, “It’s nice, you should try some.” But the younger brother refused. He only ate the marrow. After they finished eating, they didn’t go any further and just slept there.
About the middle of the night, the elder brother [Pg 173] felt a noise in his feet, and he sat up and felt of his legs and feet, and he found that his feet were stuck together, and were beginning to get round, like a snake, and had a rattle on the end of them, and that his legs were round and like the tail of a great big rattlesnake. He reached over, and put his hands on his brother, and shook him, and said to him, “Get up. There is something the matter with me.” The younger brother woke up, and felt of his brother, and found how it was; as if he was changing into a snake, beginning at his feet. When he saw this he felt very badly. Then the older brother began to talk to the younger, and to give him good advice, for he felt very sad.
About the middle of the night, the older brother [Pg173] heard a noise in his feet, so he sat up and checked his legs and feet. He discovered that his feet were stuck together and starting to round out, like a snake, and they had a rattle at the end. His legs were also round, resembling the tail of a huge rattlesnake. He reached over, put his hands on his brother, shook him, and said, “Get up. Something's wrong with me.” The younger brother woke up, felt his brother, and realized what was happening; it was as if he was transforming into a snake, starting from his feet. Seeing this made him feel very upset. Then the older brother began to talk to the younger one and gave him some good advice, as he felt very sad.
He said, “Now I am going to die, and leave my young brother here alone on this prairie. He is so young, he will not be able to find his way home, and he must die, too. Surely this has happened because I ate the marrow and the squirrel together.” While he was talking, the change had moved up to his waist.
He said, “Now I’m going to die and leave my younger brother here alone on this prairie. He’s so young; he won’t be able to find his way home, and he’s going to die, too. This must have happened because I ate the marrow and the squirrel together.” While he was speaking, the change had moved up to his waist.
After a little while he got more hopeful, and he said, “Now, brother, I know that you will get home safely. I will protect you. I know that I am going to be a snake, and I shall stay right here. You see that hole,” and he pointed to a hole in the bank. [Pg 174] “When I have changed into a snake, take me in your arms, and carry me over to that hole. I am going to stay there forever. That will be my home, for that is the house of the snakes. When you go back home, you must tell our father and mother how it was, and whenever you want to go on the warpath, take a big party and come down this way, and come right here, to this very place, and you will see me, for I shall be here. Now, brother, when you go back home, some time after you have reached home, I want you to come back all alone; come right here. You know what I told you; do not be afraid of me. I believe this was to happen to me, and I could not help it. After you have once come all alone, then the second time you may bring some others with you, but the first time come alone.” So he talked to his brother, and as he spoke the change kept going on. While it was moving up his body, until it got to his head, he was still like a man in his mind, but all his body was like a great big snake. Then he spoke to his brother, and said, “Now, brother, cover up my head with the robe, and after a little while take it off again.” The younger brother, did as he was told, and when, after a while, he took the robe off, there he saw an immense snake’s head as [Pg 175] broad as his two hands. The elder brother had completely changed into a snake.
After a little while, he started to feel more hopeful, and he said, “Now, brother, I know you’ll make it home safely. I’ll protect you. I know I’m going to turn into a snake, and I’m going to stay right here. You see that hole?” He pointed to a hole in the bank. [Pg174] “When I’ve changed into a snake, hold me in your arms and carry me over to that hole. That’s where I’ll stay forever. That will be my home since it’s the house of the snakes. When you go back home, you need to tell our mom and dad what happened, and whenever you want to go to battle, gather a big party, come this way, and come right here, to this exact spot, and you’ll find me, because I’ll be here. Now, brother, when you get back home, some time after you’ve arrived, I want you to come back all alone; come right here. Remember what I told you; don’t be scared of me. I believe this is meant to happen to me, and I couldn’t avoid it. After you’ve come alone once, then the second time, you can bring others with you, but the first time, come alone.” He continued talking to his brother, and as he spoke, the transformation kept happening. As it shifted up his body until it reached his head, he still felt like a man in his mind, but his body was like a huge snake. Then he told his brother, “Now, brother, cover my head with the robe, and after a little while, take it off again.” The younger brother did as he was instructed, and when he eventually removed the robe, he saw an enormous snake’s head as [Pg175] wide as his two hands. The older brother had completely turned into a snake.
The young man took the snake in his arms, and carried him over to the hole, and put him on the ground by it. He felt very sad to go away and leave his brother here. Before he started, he spoke good words to the snake, and said, “Now, brother, I am going home, and I ask you to take pity on me, and to protect me. I do not know the country I am going through, and you must take care of me. Do not forget the promises you have made me.” After he had spoken he did not wait to see the snake go into the hole, but started on his journey, and went off toward his home.
The young man picked up the snake and brought him to the hole, placing him gently on the ground next to it. He felt really sad about leaving his brother behind. Before he left, he said some kind words to the snake: “Now, brother, I’m going home, and I ask you to have mercy on me and protect me. I don’t know this area I’m passing through, so I need you to look out for me. Please don’t forget the promises you’ve made to me.” After he spoke, he didn’t wait to see the snake enter the hole; he just set off on his journey back home.
When he reached the village, he told all these things to his father and his mother. He said to all his relations, “Do not mourn for him. He is alive and he is well. The only trouble is, that he is in the shape of a snake.” After he had been home ten days, he told his mother to make for him five pairs of moccasins, that he was going on the warpath for himself. His mother did so, and he stuffed them full of parched corn, and took a little sack of pounded buffalo meat on his back, and started back to see his brother.
When he got to the village, he told his parents everything. He said to all his relatives, “Don’t mourn for him. He’s alive and doing well. The only issue is that he’s in the form of a snake.” After he had been home for ten days, he asked his mom to make him five pairs of moccasins because he was going to go off to war for himself. His mom did this, and he filled them with parched corn, took a small bag of pounded buffalo meat on his back, and set off to see his brother.
[Pg 176] It took him seven days fast traveling to get to where he left the snake. When he had come near the place, he saw there the hole where he had left his brother. He went up close to the hole and began to speak. He said, “Brother, I am here. I have come on the warpath, and I am here to see you. You told me to come, and to come alone. I have done what you bade me, and am here. Now, brother, remember to keep your promises. I want to see you this afternoon.”
[Pg176] It took him seven days of fast traveling to get to where he left the snake. When he got close to the spot, he saw the hole where he had left his brother. He stepped up to the hole and began to speak. He said, “Brother, I’m here. I’ve come for battle, and I’m here to see you. You told me to come, and to come alone. I’ve done what you asked, and I’m here. Now, brother, remember to keep your promises. I want to see you this afternoon.”
He stood there a little while, and then there began in the hole a rattling and a rustling and scraping noise, and presently dust began to roll out, and then out of the hole came this great big snake, which was his brother. First came out this great snake, and after him many other large ones came out, and crept all about, but the great snake, his brother, lay just outside the hole. The boy went up to the big snake and took it in his arms, and hugged it, and spoke to it, and the snake put out its tongue, as if it were kissing him. Then the boy put it down on the ground, and all the other snakes came back, and went in the hole, and after them all, last, the big snake went in the hole.
He stood there for a bit, and then he heard a rattling, rustling, and scraping noise coming from the hole. Soon, dust started to billow out, and then a huge snake emerged, which was his brother. First, the big snake came out, followed by many other large snakes that crawled around, but the big snake, his brother, lay just outside the hole. The boy approached the big snake, picked it up in his arms, hugged it, and talked to it, while the snake flicked its tongue as if it were kissing him. Then the boy set it down on the ground, and all the other snakes returned and went back into the hole, with the big snake being the last to follow them inside.
Then the boy left this place, and went on a little [Pg 177] further, and about sunset he came to a little creek, and here he lay down and slept. In the night he dreamed of his brother, who spoke to him and said, “Now, brother, I am glad that you have come down to see me, as I told you to. And now I say to you, be brave. Have courage. To-morrow morning when you awake, dress yourself up as if you were going to fight. Paint your face, put feathers in your head, make yourself ready to fight.”
Then the boy left this place and walked a bit further. Around sunset, he arrived at a small creek, where he lay down and fell asleep. During the night, he dreamed of his brother, who spoke to him and said, “Now, brother, I'm glad you've come to see me like I told you. And now I want you to be brave. Have courage. Tomorrow morning when you wake up, get dressed as if you're going to fight. Paint your face, put on some feathers, and get ready for battle.”
The next morning the boy woke up, and as the snake had told him in the dream, so he did. He painted his face and tied feathers in his head, and dressed himself up for the fight. Then he started on. Pretty soon he came to a little hill, and as he looked over it, he saw people coming toward him; people and many horses. He thought they were Sioux, and when he saw them, he went back a little, to find a place where he could hide. He went back to the little creek where he had slept, and there he sat down in the brush. When he had hidden himself in the brush, he waited; and the people came straight toward where he had hidden himself, and camped just below where he was. After a little while he raised himself up and looked at them, and saw only two persons, and presently he saw that one [Pg 178] of them was a woman. He watched for a long time, looking about to see if there were any more, but he could see only these two. Then he considered what he should do. While he was thinking, it came to him what the snake brother had said to him in the night, and then he knew what to do.
The next morning, the boy woke up and, just as the snake had told him in the dream, he painted his face, tied feathers in his hair, and got ready for the fight. Then he set off. Soon, he reached a small hill and, looking over it, he saw people approaching; a group of people and many horses. He thought they were Sioux, so he moved back a bit to find a place to hide. He returned to the little creek where he had slept and sat down in the bushes. After he had concealed himself, he waited; the people came right toward his hiding spot and set up camp just below him. After a while, he peeked out to look at them and saw only two people. Then he noticed that one of them was a woman. He watched for a long time, scanning for others, but he could only see these two. Then he thought about what he should do. As he pondered, he remembered what the snake brother had said to him at night, and then he knew what to do.
He crept slowly along through the brush toward their camp, and when he got close to them, about twenty yards distant, he raised up his head and looked. He saw the woman cooking, and there were hanging on a little tree the man’s bow and arrows and shield and spear, but the man he could not see. He was lying down asleep somewhere near by. The boy waited and watched. He was excited, and his heart was pounding against his ribs. After a little while, the woman left the fire and walked away toward the horses. Perhaps her husband had said to her, “The horses are going off, you had better go and turn them back.” When she went toward the horses, the boy was going to run up to the man and kill him, but before doing so he changed his mind; for he thought, “If I kill him, perhaps the woman will get on a horse, and ride away, driving the other horses with her.” So he waited until the woman had come back. When she had returned to [Pg 179] the fire, he ran up toward her, and she heard him coming, and ran to wake her husband; but just as she got to him, the boy was by her side. He shot two arrows into the man and killed him and counted coup on him, and captured the woman. He took the whole scalp of his enemy’s head.
He quietly moved through the bushes toward their camp, and when he got close, about twenty yards away, he lifted his head to look. He saw the woman cooking, and hanging from a small tree were the man's bow, arrows, shield, and spear, but he couldn't see the man. He was lying somewhere nearby, asleep. The boy waited and watched, feeling excited with his heart racing in his chest. After a while, the woman left the fire and walked toward the horses. Maybe her husband had told her, “The horses are wandering off; you should go and bring them back.” As she headed toward the horses, the boy considered running up to the man to kill him, but then he thought, “If I kill him, the woman might hop on a horse and ride away, taking the other horses with her.” So he waited until she returned. When she came back to the fire, he ran toward her, and she heard him approaching and rushed to wake her husband; but just as she reached him, the boy was already by her side. He shot two arrows into the man, killing him, and counted coup on him, capturing the woman. He took the entire scalp from his enemy's head.
Then he took the woman and went down to where the horses were, and they got on two of them, and rode back to where his brother, the snake, lived, driving the horses before them. Just before they got to the hole, the boy took his lariat and caught a nice spotted horse and a mule, and tied them up to the tree, and called up the woman, and tied her up against the tree as tight as he could tie her. When he had done this, he went up to the hole and began to talk. He said, “Oh, my brother, I see now that what you have promised me comes true. I did what you told me. Now here are these two animals and the woman; I give them to you for being good to me. They are yours. I am glad for what you have done for me this day.” When he had finished saying this he spoke again, saying, “Now, brother, I want to see you once more. I am going off, and I want to see you before I go.” After a little while he heard again the rattling sound in the hole, and [Pg 180] saw the dust coming out of it, and then his brother came out of the hole, and then afterward the smaller snakes; and these all went down to the tree and climbed up into it. The tree was thick with them. Then the boy did as he had done before. He went close to the hole, and took his brother up in his arms and hugged him, and the great snake thrust out his tongue, as if kissing him. Then the boy spoke again and said, “Now, brother, I am going away, and I give you these two animals and this woman to keep. They are yours.” Then he started for his home, and after a long time he arrived at the village.
Then he took the woman and went down to where the horses were. They climbed onto two of the horses and rode back to where his brother, the snake, lived, guiding the horses along. Just before reaching the hole, the boy used his lariat to catch a nice spotted horse and a mule, tied them to a tree, then brought the woman over and secured her to the tree as tightly as he could. After doing this, he approached the hole and began to talk. He said, “Oh, my brother, I can see now that what you promised has come true. I did what you asked me to do. Here are the two animals and the woman; I’m giving them to you for being good to me. They’re yours. I’m grateful for what you’ve done for me today.” After finishing this, he continued, saying, “Now, brother, I want to see you one last time. I’m leaving, and I want to see you before I go.” After a little while, he heard the rattling sound from the hole again and saw dust rising from it. Then his brother emerged from the hole, followed by the smaller snakes, which all climbed up into the tree. The tree was thick with them. The boy then did what he had done before. He went close to the hole, picked up his brother in his arms, and hugged him while the great snake stuck out his tongue, as if to kiss him. Then the boy said again, “Now, brother, I am leaving, and I’m giving you these two animals and this woman to keep. They’re yours.” Then he started towards home, and after a long time, he arrived at the village.
After a time, he determined to start off again on the warpath, and this time he took a party with him. He had told the whole tribe what had happened, and how his brother had protected and helped him; and he said to those warriors who were going with him, “Let each one of you take a present with you for my brother; some beads or eagle feathers or some tobacco as an offering, so that he may help you.” They started south to go to the place where his brother lived. When they got there, the young man said to the others, “Now you must, each one of you, give something to my brother. Call him by his kin name, and ask him to help you, and to make you [Pg 181] successful; and leave the things before the hole.” They did as he said, and when they had made their presents, they went by. They saw nothing, for the brother did not call out the great snake.
After a while, he decided to set out again on the warpath, this time taking a group with him. He had told the entire tribe what happened and how his brother had protected and supported him. He said to the warriors accompanying him, “Make sure to bring a gift for my brother—some beads, eagle feathers, or tobacco as an offering so he can help you.” They traveled south to where his brother lived. When they arrived, the young man told the others, “Now you each need to give something to my brother. Call him by his kin name, ask him for help and to ensure your success, and leave your gifts before the hole.” They followed his instructions, and after making their offerings, they moved on. They saw nothing, as the brother did not summon the great snake.
Two or three days after they had passed the place, they found a camp of Sioux, and took a lot of horses and killed some of the enemy. Then they went back, and when they came to the snake’s home, they took a horse and led it up near the hole and killed it, and gave it to him, and left the scalps at the mouth of the hole as presents to him. When they reached the village, there was great joy and a good time. They had all kinds of dances, for they were glad that the war party had killed some Sioux.
Two or three days after they passed the area, they stumbled upon a Sioux camp, where they captured several horses and took down some of their enemies. Then they returned, and when they got back to the snake’s den, they took a horse, brought it close to the hole, and killed it to offer as a gift. They left the scalps at the entrance of the hole as presents for him. When they reached the village, everyone celebrated with great joy and had an amazing time. They enjoyed various dances, happy that the war party had defeated some Sioux.
After that another war party started out, and the brother said to them, “Go straight to my brother, and make him a present, and ask him to give you good luck, and you will be successful.” And it happened as he had said.
After that, another war party set out, and the brother told them, “Go directly to my brother, give him a gift, and ask him for good luck, and you will succeed.” And it happened just as he said.
The brother was always fortunate in war. He became a chief and was very rich, having many horses. Ever after that time, when he took the lead of a war party, all the poor men would come and say, “I want to go with you.” They knew that his brother was a snake, and would give him good luck.
The brother was always lucky in battle. He became a leader and was very wealthy, owning many horses. After that, whenever he led a war party, all the poor men would come and say, “I want to join you.” They knew that his brother was a snake and would bring him good luck.
O´RE-KA-RAHR.
A LONG time ago, as the tribe were on their summer hunt, a man and his wife got to quarreling. They had a child, a boy about ten months old. It was while they were traveling along, going from one camp to another, that they began to quarrel. At length the wife became very angry, and threw the baby to the man, saying, “You take that baby. It belongs to you, for it is a man child. I am not going to nurse it for you any longer.” Then she went away.
A LONG time ago, while the tribe was on their summer hunt, a man and his wife started arguing. They had a child, a boy about ten months old. It was during their journey from one camp to another that the argument broke out. Eventually, the wife got really angry and tossed the baby to the man, saying, “You take this baby. It's yours since it’s a boy. I'm not going to take care of him for you anymore.” Then she walked away.
The man took the child and carried it along with him. He felt very badly, both on his own account and on account of his child. He was so unhappy that he almost wanted to kill himself. He was so poor-minded because it was a disgrace that he, being a man, should be obliged to take care of his child [Pg 183] until it was grown up, and he had no female relatives to whom he could turn it over to be reared. So he was very unhappy, and determined to leave the tribe and wander off alone, far from his people.
The man picked up the child and took it with him. He felt really bad, both for himself and for his child. He was so miserable that he almost wanted to end his life. He felt so ashamed because it was a disgrace for him, as a man, to have to care for his child until it was grown up, and he had no female relatives to hand it over to for raising. So he was really unhappy and decided to leave the tribe and wander off alone, far away from his people. [Pg183]
He did so. He carried the child on his back, as a woman does. When it cried for its mother’s milk, he had none to give it. He could only cry with it. He hated to kill the child, or to leave it behind to die on the prairie. He wandered off to the south. He traveled on for a time, until he came near to where the buffalo were. By this time, the child had changed from a very fat baby to a very thin one, because it had not been nursed. When he got to the buffalo, he killed a cow, and took its udder, and while it was fresh he let the child suck it, until it became sour. Then he killed another cow, and did the same thing. In every way he did the best he could to nourish the child. Sometimes he would get a slice of meat, and half cook it, and let the child suck the juice. The child began to improve, and to get a little stronger. In this way he supported it for quite a long time, and it did pretty well, and at last it got used to this food, and became strong and well. By this time he had gone a long way.
He did that. He carried the child on his back, like a woman would. When the child cried for its mother’s milk, he had none to give. He could only cry along with it. He didn’t want to kill the child or leave it behind to die on the prairie. He wandered off to the south. He traveled for a while until he got close to where the buffalo were. By then, the child had gone from being a very fat baby to a very thin one because it hadn’t been nursed. When he reached the buffalo, he killed a cow, took its udder, and let the child suck from it while it was still fresh, until it soured. Then he killed another cow and did the same. In every way he tried his best to take care of the child. Sometimes he would get a piece of meat, partially cook it, and let the child suck the juices. The child started to get better and stronger. This way, he supported it for quite a while, and it did pretty well, eventually getting used to this food and becoming strong and healthy. By this point, he had traveled a long way.
At length he found that the child could sit up [Pg 184] alone. Then he began to give it all sorts of playthings, so that it could amuse itself. First he made for it a little bow and some arrows, and taught it how to use them. He made other things for the child to play with, and at last it got to be contented playing alone. Then the father would leave the child for a few minutes, and go off a little way, perhaps to the top of a hill near by, to look off over the country, but he would look back at the child every few steps to see that it was all right. When he would come back he would find the child safe, playing, well contented. After a while he got so that he would leave it for about an hour, and when he came back, find it safe and contented, playing. By this time the child had begun to walk. Finally the father went off once for half a day, and when he came back, he found the child playing about safe. It did not seem to mind much about the father being absent. About this time he killed a buffalo cow, and made some dried meat, and put it in a certain place, and told the child when it was hungry to go there and get a a piece.
At last, he noticed that the child could sit up [Pg184] on its own. So he started giving it all kinds of toys to keep it entertained. First, he crafted a little bow and some arrows, and taught the child how to use them. He made other toys for the child, and eventually, it became happy playing by itself. Then, the father would leave the child for a few minutes and go a little way off, maybe to the top of a nearby hill, to look out over the land, but he would glance back at the child every few steps to make sure everything was fine. When he returned, he always found the child safe, playing, and quite satisfied. After some time, he got comfortable leaving it for about an hour, and upon his return, he would find the child safe and content, still playing. By this time, the child had started to walk. Eventually, the father once left for half a day, and when he returned, he found the child playing safely. The child didn't seem to mind much that the father was gone. Around this time, he hunted a buffalo cow, made some dried meat, stored it in a designated spot, and told the child to go there and get a piece when it got hungry.
He now went off and was gone a whole day, and when he came back at night the child was safe. Finally he made his preparations and went off to [Pg 185] stay over night, and be gone two days. He did so, and when he came back, the boy was asleep. A second time he went away and was absent for two days, going quite a long distance. When he came back he found that the child was painted with white clay. The father thought this was strange. He said to himself, “Something must have come and talked to my child, and is taking care of him while I am gone.”
He left and was gone for a whole day, and when he returned at night, the child was safe. Finally, he made his plans and went off to [Pg185] stay overnight, being gone for two days. He did that, and when he came back, the boy was asleep. The second time he left, he was away for two days, traveling quite a distance. When he returned, he found that the child was covered in white clay. The father thought this was odd. He said to himself, “Something must have come and talked to my child and is taking care of him while I’m away.”
When he came back the third time after a two days’ journey, he found that the child had about his neck a string of pa´hut.[11] The fourth long journey he took lasted three days, and when he returned, he found his boy still wearing this same string of beads, and with a feather tied in his head. Now his father knew that something was looking after his child while he was away, and when he went off, he would pray for the child. He would say, “No´-a, whatever it is that is taking pity on my child, also take pity on me.”
When he returned for the third time after a two-day journey, he discovered that the child was wearing a string of pa´hut around his neck.[11] The fourth long journey lasted three days, and when he came back, he found his son still wearing the same string of beads and a feather tied in his hair. Now his father realized that something was watching over his child while he was away, so whenever he left, he would pray for the child. He would say, “No´-a, whatever it is that is showing kindness to my child, please also show kindness to me.”
[11] Wild currants strung like beads.
Wild currants arranged like beads.
The child had now grown so large that it could talk with him, and one day it said, “Father, you go away, and you be gone for four days; I will be all right here. When you come back you will find me safe.”
The child had grown so big that it could talk to him, and one day it said, “Dad, you’re going away for four days; I’ll be just fine here. When you get back, you’ll find me safe.”
[Pg 186] The man went. He started to go way down south, to be gone for four days. After he had been gone two days and two nights, he saw a signal smoke and went toward it. As he raised up his head and peeped over a hill before crossing it, he saw, far off, a lot of people and horses coming toward the river which lay between him and them. He lay on the hill a long time, watching to see where they would camp. When they had made camp, he went into a ravine, and crept down close to the camp, until he could see that it was just one lodge, and that about it were a whole herd of horses. He waited until evening, and then went over to the lodge. It was after dark when he went. The lodge was all surrounded by horses; everywhere nothing but horses, there were so many. He crept close to the lodge, and looked in through an opening by the door, and saw lying down opposite the door a great big man, and on either side a woman; only three persons in all. As he looked at these persons, he thought he recognized one of the women. He kept looking at her, and at last he remembered who she was, and that she had been captured long ago from the Pawnees. Her people were still living. The man was a Comanche.
[Pg186] The man left. He headed way down south, planning to be gone for four days. After two days and two nights, he spotted a signal smoke and moved towards it. As he raised his head and peeked over a hill before crossing it, he saw in the distance a group of people and horses approaching the river that lay between him and them. He lay on the hill for a long time, watching to see where they would set up camp. Once they pitched their camp, he slipped into a ravine and crept down close to the camp until he could see that it was just one lodge, surrounded by a large herd of horses. He waited until evening, then approached the lodge. It was after dark when he arrived. The lodge was completely surrounded by horses; there were so many, it was just horses everywhere. He moved close to the lodge and looked in through an opening by the door, where he saw a large man lying down across from the door, with a woman on either side of him; just three people in total. As he stared at them, he thought he recognized one of the women. He kept looking at her until he finally remembered who she was—she had been captured a long time ago by the Pawnees. Her people were still alive. The man was a Comanche.
[Pg 187] While the Pawnee was watching, the man inside the lodge asked for something, and the captive woman stood up to go out of the lodge, and the Pawnee stepped to one side, out of sight. The woman came out into the darkness, and went out among the horses. The Pawnee stepped up behind her very softly, and put his hand on her shoulder, and said to her in Pawnee, “Friend, do you belong to my tribe?” The woman started to scream, but he put his hand on her mouth, and said to her, “Be quiet. Keep still. Do not call out.” She answered him, “Yes, I belong to your tribe.” Then she said in a very low voice that shook, for she was afraid, “Do you belong to my tribe?” The man said, “Yes.” Then he asked her, “Who is that other woman that I see in the lodge?” She answered him, “She also belongs to our tribe, and is a prisoner.” Then the man said, “You just wait and keep still. I am going to kill that man.” The woman said, “That is good. That is good. This man is the biggest man of all the Comanches. He has come first to this place, and all the rest of the Comanches are coming here to meet him. I am glad that my people are living, and that I am going back to see them once more. Do not fail to kill [Pg 188] him. I will tell the other woman to be ready, that our friend is here, and we will wait and watch.”
[Pg187] While the Pawnee was watching, the man inside the lodge asked for something, and the captive woman stood up to leave the lodge. The Pawnee stepped aside, out of sight. The woman stepped out into the darkness and walked among the horses. The Pawnee quietly approached her from behind, placed his hand on her shoulder, and said to her in Pawnee, “Friend, do you belong to my tribe?” The woman gasped and was about to scream, but he covered her mouth with his hand and urged her, “Be quiet. Stay still. Don’t shout.” She replied, “Yes, I belong to your tribe.” Then she whispered, trembling with fear, “Do you belong to my tribe?” The man said, “Yes.” He then asked her, “Who is that other woman I see in the lodge?” She replied, “She also belongs to our tribe and is a prisoner.” The man said, “Just wait and stay quiet. I’m going to kill that man.” The woman responded, “That’s good. That’s good. This man is the most powerful of all the Comanches. He has arrived here first, and all the others are coming to meet him. I’m glad my people are alive and that I will get to see them again. Don’t forget to kill him. I’ll tell the other woman to be ready, so our friend is here, and we will wait and watch.”[Pg188]
When the woman went into the lodge, she whispered to the other woman, and said, “Be ready. A friend who belongs to our tribe is here. Take your hatchet, and be prepared to help to kill our husband.”
When the woman entered the lodge, she quietly told the other woman, “Get ready. A friend from our tribe is here. Grab your hatchet, and be ready to help kill our husband.”
The two women waited, and the Pawnee made ready to shoot the Comanche with his bow and arrow. The woman had said to him, “Push aside the door a little and be ready.” He made a little bit of an opening by the door, just big enough to let an arrow pass through, and when the time came he let it go. U´-ra-rīsh! the arrow flew straight, and pierced the Comanche through the heart. So he died, and the Pawnee counted coup on him and took his scalp.
The two women waited, and the Pawnee got ready to shoot the Comanche with his bow and arrow. The woman had told him, "Push the door aside a bit and be ready." He opened the door just enough to let an arrow through, and when the moment came, he fired it. U´-ra-rīsh! the arrow flew straight and hit the Comanche in the heart. He died, and the Pawnee counted coup on him and took his scalp.
The women felt so glad to meet a friend that they put their arms around the man and patted him. They were going back home to see their relations. They asked him, “How many of you are here?” He answered, “I am alone.” They were surprised.
The women were really happy to see a friend, so they wrapped their arms around the man and patted him. They were heading home to visit their family. They asked him, “How many of you are here?” He replied, “I’m alone.” They were surprised.
They took down the lodge, and packed everything on the horses, and drove off the herd, leaving the dead body of the enemy in the camp. All night they traveled, and all the next day; and as they were [Pg 189] going, he told them how it came about that he was alone. They told him that there were about three hundred head of horses in the herd that they had with them. When they had come pretty close to where he had left the child, he told them about the boy being there all alone; and the women just ran their horses to get to the boy; whichever got there first, he should be hers. When they came to the boy, they took him in their arms and petted him, and took him as their own.
They took down the lodge, packed everything onto the horses, and drove off the herd, leaving the enemy's dead body in the camp. They traveled all night and all the next day; as they went, he explained how he ended up alone. They mentioned that there were about three hundred horses in the herd they had with them. When they got close to where he had left the child, he told them about the boy being there all alone; the women immediately spurred their horses to reach the boy first, claiming that whoever got there first would have him. When they reached the boy, they embraced him and showered him with affection, taking him as their own.
Now the father was no longer sad. He had recovered two captured women, had killed his enemy, and had taken a lot of horses.
Now the father was no longer sad. He had rescued two captured women, defeated his enemy, and taken a lot of horses.
They went on, and traveled far, and at length, one night, they came to the Pawnee tribe, and camped with them. The horses just surrounded the lodge, you could just see the top of it over their backs. The next morning all the people wondered who these strangers could be. They found out that the man and child, who were lost, had returned, and with them two women, captured long ago by the Comanches. So there was great joy in the tribe. Then the man gave his relations many horses. In those days the Pawnees had not many horses, and it seems that this man brought good luck in horses to [Pg 190] the tribe. Ever since that time they have had many horses. The mother of the child came to see it, she was so glad it was alive, but she was whipped out of the lodge.
They continued on their journey and traveled a long way, and eventually, one night, they arrived at the Pawnee tribe and set up camp with them. The horses surrounded the lodge, and you could only see the top of it over their backs. The next morning, everyone in the tribe was curious about who these newcomers could be. They learned that the man and child, who had been lost, had come back, along with two women who had been captured long ago by the Comanches. This brought great joy to the tribe. The man then gave his relatives many horses. Back then, the Pawnees didn’t have many horses, and it seemed that this man brought good fortune in horses to the tribe. Ever since that time, they have had many horses. The child's mother came to see him; she was so happy he was alive, but she was driven out of the lodge.
The child grew to be a man, and was wealthy. After he had grown up, he told his father that ever since he could remember anything, a buck deer had talked to him, and taken care of him; that it had saved them, and brought them good fortune. In order that the O´re-ka-rahr might be remembered, he established a dance, called the deer dance, which has been kept up to this day.
The child grew up to be a wealthy man. Once he was an adult, he told his father that for as long as he could remember, a buck deer had spoken to him and looked after him; it had protected them and brought them good luck. To honor the O´re-ka-rahr, he started a dance known as the deer dance, which has continued to this day.
Many wonderful things happened to this same young man. Once he went on a war party against the Cheyennes, and stole some horses from them. The Cheyennes followed and overtook them, and they had a great fight. The first man killed was this young man. He was very brave, and the Cheyennes cut him up into small pieces, but that night it lightened and thundered and rained, and soon after the storm was over, the young man came walking into camp alive. He was all scarred over, where he had been cut up, but he had come to life because the deer had looked after him. He lived long to show the scars of the battles he had been through.
Many amazing things happened to this young man. Once, he went on a raid against the Cheyennes and stole some horses from them. The Cheyennes tracked them down and caught up to them, leading to a huge fight. The first person killed was this young man. He was very brave, and the Cheyennes chopped him into pieces, but that night it stormed with lightning, thunder, and rain. Soon after the storm cleared, the young man walked back into camp alive. His body was covered in scars from where he had been cut up, but he had survived because the deer had taken care of him. He lived a long time to show the scars from the battles he had fought.
THE GHOST BRIDE.
IN a place where we used to have a village, a young woman died just before the tribe started on the hunt. When she died they dressed her up in her finest clothes, and buried her, and soon after this the tribe started on the hunt.
IN a place where there used to be a village, a young woman died right before the tribe set out on the hunt. When she passed away, they dressed her in her best clothes and buried her. Shortly after that, the tribe headed out for the hunt.
A party of young men had gone off to visit another tribe, and they did not get back until after this girl had died and the tribe had left the village. Most of this party did not go back to the village, but met the tribe and went with them on the hunt. Among the young men who had been away was one who had loved this girl who had died. He went back alone to the village. It was empty and silent, but before he reached it, he could see, far off, some one sitting on top of a lodge. When he came near, he saw that it was the girl he loved. He did not [Pg 192] know that she had died, and he wondered to see her there alone, for the time was coming when he would be her husband and she his wife. When she saw him coming, she came down from the top of the lodge and went inside. When he came close to her, he spoke and said, “Why are you here alone in the village?” She answered him, “They have gone off on the hunt. I was sulky with my relations, and they went off and left me behind.” The man wanted her now to be his wife, but the girl said to him, “No, not yet, but later we will be married.” She said to him, “You must not be afraid. To-night there will be dances here; the ghosts will dance.” This is an old custom of the Pawnees. When they danced they used to go from one lodge to another, singing, dancing and hallooing. So now, when the tribe had gone and the village was deserted, the ghosts did this. He could hear them coming along the empty streets, and going from one lodge to another. They came into the lodge where he was, and danced about, and whooped and sang, and sometimes they almost touched him, and he came pretty near being scared.
A group of young men had set out to visit another tribe, and they didn't return until after the girl had died and the tribe had left the village. Most of them did not return but instead joined the tribe on the hunt. Among the young men who had been away was one who had loved the girl who had died. He went back to the village alone. It was empty and quiet, but before he got there, he noticed someone sitting on top of a lodge in the distance. As he approached, he realized it was the girl he loved. He didn't know she had died and was surprised to see her there alone, as they were soon supposed to be married. When she saw him coming, she climbed down from the top of the lodge and went inside. As he got closer, he asked her, “Why are you here alone in the village?” She replied, “They went off on the hunt. I was upset with my family, so they left me behind.” He wanted her to be his wife, but she told him, “Not yet, but we will get married later.” She said, “Don’t be afraid. Tonight, there will be dances here; the ghosts will dance.” This is an old tradition of the Pawnees. When they danced, they would move from one lodge to another, singing, dancing, and shouting. So now, with the tribe gone and the village empty, the ghosts did just that. He could hear them coming down the empty streets and going from one lodge to another. They entered the lodge where he was, dancing around, whooping, and singing, sometimes almost brushing against him, which nearly scared him.
The next day, the young man persuaded the girl to go on with him, and follow the tribe, to join it on the hunt. They started to travel together, and she [Pg 193] promised him that she would surely be his wife, but not until the time came. They overtook the tribe; but before they got to the camp, the girl stopped. She said, “Now we have arrived, but you must go first to the village, and prepare a place for me. Where I sleep, let it be behind a curtain. For four days and four nights I must remain behind this curtain. Do not speak of me. Do not mention my name to any one.”
The next day, the young man convinced the girl to travel with him and join the tribe for the hunt. They began their journey together, and she promised him that she would definitely be his wife, but only when the time was right. They caught up with the tribe; however, before reaching the camp, the girl stopped. She said, “Now that we’re here, you need to go to the village first and get a place ready for me. Let my sleeping area be behind a curtain. I need to stay behind this curtain for four days and four nights. Don’t talk about me. Don’t mention my name to anyone.”
The young man left her there and went into the camp. When he got to his lodge, he told a woman, one of his relations, to go out to a certain place and bring in a woman, who was waiting there for him. His relative asked him, “Who is the woman?” And to avoid speaking her name, he told who were her father and mother. His relation, in surprise, said, “It cannot be that girl, for she died some days before we started on the hunt.”
The young man left her there and entered the camp. When he reached his lodge, he asked a woman, who was a relative, to go to a specific spot and bring back a woman who was waiting for him. His relative asked him, “Who is she?” And to avoid saying her name, he mentioned who her parents were. His relative, surprised, said, “It can’t be that girl, because she died a few days before we left for the hunt.”
When the woman went to look for the girl she could not find her. The girl had disappeared. The young man had disobeyed her, and had told who she was. She had told him that she must stay behind a curtain for four days, and that no one must know who she was. Instead of doing what she had said, he told who she was, and the girl disappeared [Pg 194] because she was a ghost. If he had obeyed the girl, she would have lived a second time upon earth. That same night this young man died in sleep.
When the woman went to find the girl, she couldn’t locate her. The girl had vanished. The young man had gone against her wishes and revealed her identity. She had told him that she needed to stay hidden behind a curtain for four days and that no one should know who she was. Instead of following her instructions, he told everyone who she was, and the girl disappeared [Pg194] because she was a ghost. If he had obeyed the girl, she would have had a second chance at life on earth. That same night, the young man died in his sleep.
Then the people were convinced that there must be a life after this one.
Then people became convinced that there must be life after this one.

INTERIOR OF DIRT LODGE.
INTERIOR OF EARTH LODGE.
THE BOY WHO SAW A-TI´-US.
MANY years ago the Pawnees started on their winter hunt. The buffalo were scarce, and the people could get hardly any meat. It was very cold, and the snow lay deep on the ground. The tribe traveled southward, and crossed the Republican, but still found no buffalo. They had eaten all the dried meat, and all the corn that they had brought with them, and now they were starving. The sufferings of the people were great, and the little ones began to die of hunger. Now they began to eat their robes, and parfleches, and moccasins.
MANY years ago, the Pawnees set out on their winter hunt. The buffalo were hard to find, and the people could barely get any meat. It was freezing cold, and the snow was deep on the ground. The tribe traveled southward and crossed the Republican River, but still found no buffalo. They had consumed all the dried meat and corn they had brought with them, and now they were starving. The suffering of the people was severe, and the little ones began to die of hunger. They started to eat their robes, parfleches, and moccasins.
There was in the tribe a boy about sixteen years old, who was all alone, and was very poor. He had no relations who could take care of him, and he lived with a woman whose husband had been killed by the Sioux. She had two children, a boy and a girl; and [Pg 196] she had a good heart, and was sorry for the poor boy. In this time of famine, these people had scarcely anything to eat, and whenever the boy got hold of any food, he gave it to the woman, who divided it among them all.
There was a boy in the tribe who was about sixteen years old, completely alone, and very poor. He had no family to take care of him and lived with a woman whose husband had been killed by the Sioux. She had two kids, a boy and a girl; and [Pg196] she was kind-hearted and felt sorry for the poor boy. During this time of famine, these people had barely anything to eat, and whenever the boy found any food, he gave it to the woman, who shared it among all of them.
The tribe kept traveling southward looking for buffalo, but they had to go very slowly, because they were all so weak. Still they found no buffalo, and each day the young men that were sent out to look for them climbed the highest hills, and came back at night, and reported that they could only see the white prairie covered with snow. All this time little ones were dying of hunger, and the men and women were growing weaker every day.
The tribe continued their journey south, searching for buffalo, but they had to move very slowly due to their weakness. Still, they found no buffalo, and each day the young men sent to search for them climbed the highest hills and returned at night, reporting only white prairie blanketed in snow. Meanwhile, the little ones were dying of hunger, and the men and women were growing weaker with each passing day.
The poor boy suffered with the rest, and at last he became so weak that he hardly could keep up with the camp, even though it moved very slowly. One morning he was hardly able to help the old woman pack the lodge, and after it had been packed, he went back to the fire, and sat down beside it, and watched the camp move slowly off across the valley, and up over the bluffs. He thought to himself, “Why should I go on? I can’t keep up for more than a day or two longer anyhow. I may as well stay here and die.” So he gathered together the [Pg 197] ends of the sticks that lay by the fire, and put them on the coals, and spread his hands over the blaze, and rubbed them together, and got warm, and then lay down by the fire, and pretty soon he went to sleep.
The poor boy struggled along with everyone else, and eventually he got so weak that he could barely keep up with the camp, even though it was moving really slowly. One morning, he could hardly help the old woman pack up the lodge, and after it was all packed, he went back to the fire, sat down next to it, and watched the camp slowly make its way across the valley and up the bluffs. He thought to himself, “Why should I keep going? I can’t last more than a day or two anyway. I might as well just stay here and die.” So he gathered the ends of the sticks that were lying by the fire, placed them on the coals, spread his hands over the flames, rubbed them together to warm up, then lay down by the fire, and soon he fell asleep.
When he came to himself, it was about the middle of the day, and as he looked toward the sky he saw two spots there between him and the sun, and he wondered what they were. As he looked at them they became larger and larger, and at last he could see that they were birds; and by and by, as they came still nearer, he saw that they were two swans. The swans kept coming lower and lower, and at last they alighted on the ground right by the fire, and walked up to where the boy lay. He was so weak he could not get up, and they came to him, one on each side, and stooped down, and pushed their shoulders under him, and raised him up and put him on their backs, and then spread their broad wings, and flew away upward. Then the boy went to sleep again.
When he became aware again, it was around midday, and as he looked up at the sky, he noticed two spots between him and the sun, and he wondered what they were. As he focused on them, they grew larger and larger, and finally he realized they were birds; eventually, as they got closer, he recognized that they were two swans. The swans descended lower and lower, and finally landed right beside the fire, walking over to where the boy lay. He was too weak to stand up, so they approached him, one on each side, bent down, and nudged their shoulders under him, lifting him up and placing him on their backs, then spread their wide wings and flew upward. Then the boy drifted off to sleep again.
When he awoke he was lying on the ground before a very big lodge. It was large and high, and on it were painted pictures of many strange animals, in beautiful colors. The boy had never seen [Pg 198] such a fine lodge. The air was warm here, and he felt stronger than before. He tried to raise himself up, and after trying once or twice he got on his feet, and walked to the door of the lodge, and went in. Opposite the door sat A-ti´-us. He was very large and very handsome, and his face was kind and gentle. He was dressed in beautiful clothes, and wore a white buffalo robe. Behind him, from the lodge poles, hung many strange weapons. Around the lodge on each side sat many chiefs, and doctors, and warriors. They all wore fine clothes of white buckskin, embroidered with beautifully colored quills. Their robes were all of beaver skin, very beautiful.
When he woke up, he was lying on the ground in front of a massive lodge. It was large and tall, adorned with painted images of various strange animals in vibrant colors. The boy had never seen such an impressive lodge before. The air here was warm, and he felt stronger than he had before. He tried to push himself up, and after a few attempts, he managed to get on his feet and walked to the lodge door before going inside. Opposite the entrance sat A-ti´-us. He was very tall and handsome, with a kind and gentle face. He wore beautiful clothing and a white buffalo robe. Behind him, hanging from the lodge poles, were many unusual weapons. Surrounding the lodge on either side were numerous chiefs, doctors, and warriors. They all wore fine white buckskin clothes, embroidered with brightly colored quills. Their robes were made of beautiful beaver skin.
When the boy entered the lodge, A-ti´-us said to him, “Looah, pi-rau´, we-tŭs sūks-pit—Welcome, my son, and sit down.” And he said to one of the warriors, “Give him something to eat.” The warrior took down a beautifully painted sack of parfleche, and took his knife from its sheath, and cut off a piece of dried meat about as big as one’s two fingers, and a piece of fat about the same size, and gave them to the boy. The boy, who was so hungry, thought that this was not very much to give to one who was starving, but took it, and began to eat. He put the [Pg 199] fat on the lean, and cut the pieces off, and ate for a long time. But after he had eaten for a long time, the pieces of meat remained the same size; and he ate all that he wanted, and then put the pieces down, still the same size.
When the boy walked into the lodge, A-ti´-us said to him, “Looah, pi-rau´, we-tŭs sūks-pit—Welcome, my son, and have a seat.” Then he turned to one of the warriors, “Give him something to eat.” The warrior took down a beautifully painted sack of parfleche, drew his knife from its sheath, and cut off a piece of dried meat about the size of two fingers, along with a piece of fat of similar size, and handed them to the boy. The boy, who was really hungry, thought this didn’t seem like much for someone who was starving, but accepted it and began to eat. He placed the fat on the lean meat, cut pieces off, and ate for a long time. However, even after eating for quite a while, the pieces of meat stayed the same size; he ate until he was satisfied, then put the pieces down, and they were still the same size.
After the boy had finished eating, A-ti´-us spoke to him. He told him that he had seen the sufferings of his people, and had been sorry for them; and then he told the boy what to do. So he kept the boy there for a little while longer, and gave him some fine new clothing and weapons, and then he told one of the warriors to send the boy back; and the warrior led him out of the lodge to where the swans were standing near the entrance, and the boy got on to their backs. Then the warrior put his hand on his face, and pressed his eyelids together, and the boy went to sleep. And by and by the boy awoke, and found himself alone by the fire. The fire had gone out, but the ground was still covered with snow, and it was very cold.
After the boy finished eating, A-ti´-us spoke to him. He said he had seen the suffering of his people and felt sorry for them; then he told the boy what to do. So he kept the boy there for a little while longer, gave him some nice new clothes and weapons, and then told one of the warriors to send the boy back. The warrior led him out of the lodge to where the swans were standing near the entrance, and the boy climbed onto their backs. Then the warrior placed his hand on the boy's face, pressed his eyelids together, and the boy fell asleep. Eventually, the boy woke up and found himself alone by the fire. The fire had gone out, but the ground was still covered with snow, and it was very cold.
Now the boy felt strong, and he stood up, and started, running along the trail which the camp had taken. That night after dark he overtook the camp, for they traveled very slowly, and he walked through the village till he came to the lodge where the woman [Pg 200] was, and went in. She was surprised to see him in his new clothes, and looking so well and strong, and told him to sit down. There was a little fire in the lodge, and the boy could see that the woman was cutting up something into small pieces with her knife.
Now the boy felt strong, so he stood up and started running along the trail the camp had taken. That night, after dark, he caught up with the camp because they moved very slowly. He walked through the village until he reached the lodge where the woman was and went inside. She was surprised to see him in his new clothes, looking so healthy and strong, and told him to sit down. There was a small fire in the lodge, and the boy could see that the woman was chopping something into small pieces with her knife.
The boy said to her, “What are you doing?”
The boy asked her, “What are you doing?”
She answered, “I am going to boil our last piece of robe. After we have eaten this there will be nothing left, and we can then only die.”
She replied, “I’m going to boil our last piece of meat. Once we eat this, there will be nothing left, and then we can only wait to die.”
The boy said nothing, but watched her for a little while, and then stood up and went out of the lodge. The door had hardly fallen behind him, when the woman heard a buffalo coughing, and then the breaking of the crisp snow, as if a heavy weight was settling on it. In a moment the boy lifted the lodge door, and came in, and sat down by the fire, and said to the woman, “Go out and bring in some meat.” The woman looked at him, for she was astonished, but he said nothing, so she went out, and there in the snow by the side of the lodge was a fat buffalo cow. Then the woman’s heart was glad. She skinned the cow, and brought some of the meat into the lodge and cooked it, and they all ate and were satisfied. The woman was good, so she sent her son [Pg 201] to the lodges of all her relations, and all her friends, and told them all to come next morning to her lodge to a feast, “for,” she said, “I have plenty of meat.”
The boy didn’t say anything, but he watched her for a bit, then stood up and exited the lodge. The door had barely closed behind him when the woman heard a buffalo coughing and then the sound of crisp snow cracking, like something heavy was settling on it. In a moment, the boy lifted the lodge door, came back in, sat down by the fire, and told the woman, “Go out and bring in some meat.” The woman looked at him, surprised, but he didn’t say anything more, so she went outside, and there in the snow next to the lodge was a fat buffalo cow. Then the woman's heart was full of joy. She skinned the cow, brought some of the meat into the lodge, cooked it, and they all ate and were satisfied. The woman was kind, so she sent her son [Pg201] to the lodges of all her relatives and friends, inviting them to come to her lodge for a feast the next morning, “because,” she said, “I have plenty of meat.”
So the next morning all her relations and all her friends came, so many that they could not all get into the lodge, but some had to stand outside, and they ate with her, and she cooked the meat of the cow for them, and they ate until it was all gone, and they were satisfied. And after they had done eating, they lighted their pipes and prayed, saying, “A-ti´-us, we´-tŭs kit-tah-we—Father, you are the ruler.”
So the next morning, all her family and friends showed up, so many that they couldn't all fit in the lodge, and some had to stand outside. She cooked the meat from the cow for them, and they ate until it was all gone and felt satisfied. After they finished eating, they lit their pipes and prayed, saying, “A-ti´-us, we´-tŭs kit-tah-we—Father, you are the ruler.”
While they were smoking the poor boy called the woman’s son to him, and pointed to a high hill near the camp, and said, “Looah, sūks-kus-sis-pah ti-rah hah-tūr—Run hard to the top of that hill, and tell me what you see.” So the boy threw off his robe, and smoothed back his hair, and started, and ran as hard as he could over the snow to the top of the hill. When he got there he shaded his eyes with his hand, for the sun shone bright on the snow and blinded him, and he looked east, and west, and north, and south, but he could see nothing but the shining white snow on the prairie. After he had looked all ways, he ran back as hard as he could to [Pg 202] the village. When he came to the lodge, he went to the poor boy, and said to him, “I don’t see anything but the snow.” The poor boy said, “You don’t look good. Go again.” So the boy started again, and ran as hard as he could to the hilltop, and when he got there, panting, he looked all ways, long and carefully, but still he could see nothing but the snow. So he turned and ran back to the village, and told the poor boy again that he saw nothing. The boy said, “You don’t look good.” Then he took his bow in his hand, and put his quiver on his back, and drew his robe up under his arm so that he could run well, and started, himself, and ran as hard as he could to the top of the hill, and when he got there he looked off to the south, and there, as far as he could see, the plain was black with buffalo struggling in the deep snow. And he turned to the village, and signaled them with his robe that buffalo were in sight. In a few minutes all the Pawnees had seized their bows and arrows, and were running toward him, and the women fixed the travois, and took their knives, and followed. The boy waited on the hilltop until the warriors came up, and then they went down to the buffalo, running on the snow. The buffalo could not get away on account of the [Pg 203] deep snow, and the Pawnees made a great killing. Plenty of fat meat they got, enough to last them until the summer hunt, and plenty of warm winter robes. They did not have to move any further, but stayed right here, killing meat and drying it until they were all fat and strong again.
While they were smoking, the poor boy called the woman’s son to him and pointed to a high hill near the camp, saying, “Looah, sūks-kus-sis-pah ti-rah hah-tūr—Run fast to the top of that hill and tell me what you see.” So the boy took off his robe, smoothed back his hair, and ran as hard as he could over the snow to the top of the hill. When he got there, he shielded his eyes with his hand because the sun was shining brightly on the snow and blinding him. He looked east, west, north, and south, but all he could see was the shining white snow on the prairie. After looking in every direction, he raced back as fast as he could to the village. When he reached the lodge, he went to the poor boy and said, “I don’t see anything but snow.” The poor boy replied, “You didn’t look well. Go again.” So the boy set off again and ran as hard as he could to the hilltop. When he arrived, panting, he looked around carefully but still saw nothing but the snow. He turned and ran back to the village, telling the poor boy again that he saw nothing. The boy said, “You didn’t look well.” Then he grabbed his bow, slung his quiver on his back, and pulled up his robe under his arm to run better before starting off himself, running as fast as he could to the top of the hill. When he got there, he looked south and saw, as far as he could see, the plain was black with buffalo struggling in the deep snow. He turned to the village and signaled with his robe that buffalo were in sight. Soon, all the Pawnees grabbed their bows and arrows and ran towards him, while the women prepared the travois and grabbed their knives to follow. The boy waited on the hilltop until the warriors arrived, and then they all went down to the buffalo, running on the snow. The buffalo couldn’t escape because of the deep snow, and the Pawnees made a great kill. They got plenty of fat meat, enough to last them until the summer hunt, and lots of warm winter robes. They didn’t need to move any further; instead, they stayed right there, killing and drying meat until they all became fat and strong again.
And the poor boy became a great doctor in the tribe, and got rich.
And the poor boy became a successful doctor in the tribe and became wealthy.
Before this the Pawnees had always had a woman chief, but when the woman who was chief died, she named the poor boy as her successor, and the people made him head chief of the tribe.
Before this, the Pawnees had always had a woman chief, but when the woman who was chief passed away, she named the poor boy as her successor, and the people made him head chief of the tribe.

FIRE-STICK.
Fire Stick.
HOW THE DEER LOST HIS GALL.
A LONG time ago, the deer and the antelope met upon the prairie. At that time both of them had dew-claws, and both had galls. After they had talked for a little while, each one of them began to boast about how fast he could run. Each one, the deer and the antelope, claimed that he could run faster than any other animal, and at length they became very angry in their dispute, and determined that they would have a race.
A LONG time ago, the deer and the antelope met on the prairie. Back then, both of them had dewclaws and galls. After chatting for a bit, each started bragging about how fast he could run. Both the deer and the antelope claimed they could outrun any other animal, and eventually, they got very angry during their argument and decided to have a race.
They staked their galls on the race, and it was run on the prairie. The antelope ran the faster, and won, and took the deer’s gall. The deer felt very badly that he had lost it, and he seemed so miserable that the antelope felt sorry for him, and to cheer him up, he took off his dew-claws and gave them to him.
They bet their galls on the race, which took place on the prairie. The antelope ran faster and won, taking the deer's gall. The deer felt really upset about losing it and looked so miserable that the antelope felt sorry for him. To cheer him up, the antelope removed his dew-claws and gave them to the deer.
[Pg 205] Since that time the deer has had no gall, and the antelope no dew-claws.
[Pg205] Since then, the deer has had no gall, and the antelope no dewclaws.
Note.—A story somewhat similar to this is current among the Blackfeet tribes of the northern country. In this tale the antelope won the deer’s gall, as in the Pawnee story. Then the deer said, “You have won, but that race was not a fair one, for it was over the prairie alone. We ought to run another race in the timber to decide which is really the faster.” They agreed to run this second race, and on it they bet their dew-claws. The deer ran the faster through the thick timber and over the logs, and beat the antelope, and took his dew-claws. Since then the antelope has had no dew-claws, and the deer no gall.
Note.—There's a story similar to this among the Blackfeet tribes in the northern regions. In this version, the antelope won the deer’s gall, just like in the Pawnee story. Then the deer said, “You’ve won, but that race wasn't fair since it was only over the prairie. We should have another race in the woods to see who’s really faster.” They agreed to have this second race, wagering their dew-claws. The deer ran faster through the dense woods and over the logs, beating the antelope, and took his dew-claws. Ever since, the antelope has had no dew-claws, and the deer has had no gall.

BOW AND ARROWS.
Bows and arrows.
YELLOW FOX.
A LONG time ago, while the Pawnees were on their winter hunt, a young boy, Kiwuk-u lah´-kahta (Yellow Fox), went out alone to hunt, to see if he could kill a deer. When he left the camp in the morning, it was warm and pleasant, but in the middle of the day a great storm of wind and snow came up, and the flying snow hid everything, and it grew very cold. By and by the ground was covered with snow, and the whole look of the prairie was changed, and the boy became lost, and did not know where he was, nor what way to go to get to the camp. All day he walked, but he saw nothing of the camp, nor of any trail and as it became colder and colder, he thought that he would surely freeze to death. He thought that he must die, and that there was no hope of his ever seeing his people [Pg 207] again. As he was wandering along, numbed and stiffened by the cold, and stumbling through the deep snow, he heard behind him a curious singing sound, and in time with the singing was the noise made by some heavy animal, running. The sounds came nearer, and at last, close by the boy, ran a great big buffalo bull. And as he ran near the boy, he sang a song, and as he sang, the sound of his hoofs on the ground kept time to the measure of the song. This is what he sang:
A LONG time ago, while the Pawnees were on their winter hunt, a young boy named Kiwuk-u lah´-kahta (Yellow Fox) went out by himself to hunt, hoping to kill a deer. When he left the camp in the morning, the weather was warm and pleasant, but by midday, a fierce storm of wind and snow blew in, covering everything in white and making it very cold. Soon, the ground was blanketed in snow, dramatically changing the look of the prairie, and the boy found himself lost, unsure of where he was or how to get back to the camp. He walked all day but saw no sign of the camp or any trails. As the temperature continued to drop, he feared he would freeze to death. He believed that he would die and that there was no hope of ever seeing his people again. While wandering, numbed and stiff from the cold and stumbling through the deep snow, he heard a strange singing sound behind him, accompanied by the noise of some heavy animal running. The sounds drew closer until a huge buffalo bull ran right by him. As he passed the boy, he sang a song, matched in rhythm by the sound of his hooves on the ground. This is what he sang:
A-ti-us ti-wa-ko Ru-ru! Teh-wah-hwa´-ko,
My Father says, Go on! He keeps saying,
Ru-ru-hwa´-hwa´, Wi-ruh-rē.
Keep going on. It will be well.
A-ti-us ti-wa-ko Ru-ru! Teh-wah-hwa´-ko,
My Father says, Go on! He keeps saying,
Ru-ru-hwa´-hwa´, Wi-ruh-rē.
Keep going on. It will be well.
The boy’s heart became strong when he heard that the Father had sent the bull, and he followed him, and the bull led him straight to the camp.
The boy's heart soared when he heard that the Father had sent the bull, and he followed it as the bull guided him directly to the camp.
Notes on the Pawnees.
NOTE.
The notes on the origin, customs and character of the Pawnees, which follow, have been gathered during twenty years’ acquaintance with this people. They are what they profess to be; not a history of the people, but a series of notes bearing on their mode of life in the old wild days, an attempt to give some clues to their habits of thought, and thus to indicate the character of the people. Such notes may be of use to some future historian who shall have the time and the inclination to trace out more fully the history of the Pawnees, and to tell, as it ought to be told, the story of a people who once were great. I could wish that it might be my privilege to undertake this congenial task, but the constantly increasing pressure of other duties forbids me to hope that I shall be able to do [Pg 212] so. I feel satisfaction, however, in being able to record the observations here set down.
The notes on the origin, customs, and character of the Pawnees that follow have been collected over twenty years of getting to know this people. They are exactly what they claim to be; not a history of the people, but a series of notes focusing on their way of life in the old wild days, an attempt to provide some insights into their ways of thinking and, in turn, to reflect the character of the people. These notes may be useful for some future historian who has the time and interest to explore the history of the Pawnees more deeply and to share, as it deserves to be shared, the story of a people who were once great. I wish it could be my privilege to take on this rewarding task, but the ever-increasing demand of other responsibilities makes it unlikely that I will be able to do [Pg212] so. I do feel satisfied, however, to record the observations presented here.
In the collection of this material I had for years the assistance and coöperation of the late Major Frank North, who always placed at my disposal his great store of Pawnee lore. Luther H. North, his brother, has given me a vast deal of assistance, and last spring accompanied me to the Pawnee reservation. Without his aid this book would never have been written. Mr. John B. Dunbar has been most kind in reading over the chapter on the Pawnees, and has aided me with many suggestions, besides giving me help on certain linguistic points.
In gathering this material over the years, I had the support and collaboration of the late Major Frank North, who generously shared his extensive knowledge of Pawnee culture. His brother, Luther H. North, provided me with significant assistance and even joined me on a trip to the Pawnee reservation last spring. Without his help, this book would not have been possible. Mr. John B. Dunbar was very kind to review the chapter on the Pawnees and offered many valuable suggestions, in addition to helping me with specific linguistic details.
Nothing is said in this volume about the Pawnee language—a subject which is sufficiently important to deserve a volume by itself.
Nothing in this book discusses the Pawnee language—a topic that's important enough to warrant its own book.
To every intelligent student of North American aborigines it must be a matter of keen regret that nothing is known of the language of this people. That a distinct linguistic stock like the Pawnee should pass away unrecorded would be a serious misfortune, and the Bureau of Ethnology of the Smithsonian Institution ought certainly to take some steps to preserve a record of the Pawnee language.
To every insightful student of North American Indigenous peoples, it’s really unfortunate that we know nothing about the language of this group. The fact that a unique language like Pawnee could disappear without documentation would be a significant loss, and the Bureau of Ethnology at the Smithsonian Institution should definitely do something to preserve a record of the Pawnee language.
[Pg 213] Major Frank North was undoubtedly more conversant with the spoken Pawnee tongue than any other white man has ever been. Since his death, there is no one who is so familiar with the language as Mr. John B. Dunbar, who has devoted much time to its study, and has made himself acquainted not only with its vocabulary, but also with its grammar. Born and reared among the Pawnees, familiar with them until early manhood, a frequent visitor to the tribe in later years, he is well fitted by interest and association to undertake the task of recording in permanent form the unwritten speech of this people. Add to this a long training as a student of language and history and a keen logical mind, and we have in Mr. Dunbar the man more than all others best fitted to undertake this difficult but most delightful task. The Director of the Bureau of Ethnology could not easily perform a greater service to aboriginal linguistics than to intrust to Mr. Dunbar the labor of preparing an extended work on the Pawnee language.
[Pg213] Major Frank North was definitely more knowledgeable about the spoken Pawnee language than any other white man has ever been. Since his passing, no one knows the language as well as Mr. John B. Dunbar, who has dedicated a lot of time to studying it and has familiarized himself with not just its vocabulary but also its grammar. Born and raised among the Pawnees, he was close to them until early adulthood and continued to visit the tribe frequently in later years. He is well-equipped by his interest and background to take on the task of documenting the unwritten language of this people. Adding to this is his extensive training as a student of language and history, along with a sharp logical mind, making Mr. Dunbar the person best suited to take on this challenging yet rewarding task. The Director of the Bureau of Ethnology could hardly perform a greater service to the study of native languages than to assign Mr. Dunbar the job of preparing an extensive work on the Pawnee language.
THE PAWNEES.
I. RELATIONSHIPS.
UNTIL within a few years the home of the Pawnees was in southern Nebraska and northern Kansas. This group of tribes may be called the main stock of the family; from them it took its name; they are its best and longest known members. In the earlier accounts of this people, the Pawnee Picts or Wichitas are often confounded with their more northern relatives.
UNTIL a few years ago, the Pawnees lived in southern Nebraska and northern Kansas. This group of tribes can be considered the main part of the family; it's where they got their name, and they are the best-known and longest-recognized members. In earlier descriptions of these people, the Pawnee Picts or Wichitas are often confused with their more northern relatives.
The Pawnees proper consisted at one time of three bands or tribes, federated under a single head chief. These bands, in the order of their importance, were: The Chau-i, the Kit-ke-hahk´-i and the Pita-hau-erat. To these three was subsequently added—after the northern migration of the tribes, and their settlement in northern Kansas and Nebraska, but probably [Pg 216] long anterior to the advent of the whites, and by conquest—the large, powerful and intelligent allied tribe, known as the Skidi or Pawnee Loups. These four have always been known in the writings of the earlier explorers in the West as respectively the Grand, the Republican, the Tapage and the Wolf Pawnees, and they constituted the Pawnee Nation.
The Pawnees consisted at one time of three bands or tribes united under a single head chief. These bands, in order of their significance, were: the Chau-i, the Kit-ke-hahk´-i, and the Pita-hau-erat. After the northern migration of the tribes and their settlement in northern Kansas and Nebraska, but likely long before the arrival of white settlers and through conquest, a large, powerful, and smart allied tribe known as the Skidi or Pawnee Loups was added. These four bands have always been referred to in the accounts of early Western explorers as the Grand, the Republican, the Tapage, and the Wolf Pawnees, and together they made up the Pawnee Nation.
The three tribes first named have always been together, and their Pawnee names, according to Major North, denoted the relative situations of the three villages. Thus Kit-ke-hahk´-i means “on a hill;” Chau-i, “in the middle;” Pita-hau-erat, “down the stream,” or east; and in the olden times these were the relative positions of the different villages when the three bands were camping together. The Kit-ke-hahk´-i village was always the westernmost of the three, the Chau-i were next to them, and the Pita-hau-erat were furthest east. After the incorporation of the Skidi with the Pawnees, the village of that tribe was always placed furthest to the west, and it was spoken of as the Upper Village, while the other bands were termed the Lower Village Tribes.
The three tribes mentioned have always been together, and their Pawnee names, according to Major North, reflected the locations of the three villages. So, Kit-ke-hahk´-i means “on a hill;” Chau-i means “in the middle;” and Pita-hau-erat means “down the stream,” or east. In the past, these described the relative positions of the different villages when the three bands camped together. The Kit-ke-hahk´-i village was always the westernmost of the three, the Chau-i were next to them, and the Pita-hau-erat were farthest east. After the Skidi joined the Pawnees, that tribe's village was always placed farthest to the west and was referred to as the Upper Village, while the other bands were called the Lower Village Tribes.
GOOD CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I.
GOOD CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I.
Of the three original bands, the Chau-i has always been first in importance, and the head chief has been [Pg 218] chosen from it. The Kit-ke-hahk´-i band in numbers, importance and intelligence appear to rank about with the Chau-i, while, on the other hand, the Pita-hau-erat are regarded as less intelligent, responsible and worthy than the other bands.
Of the three original groups, the Chau-i has always been the most important, and the head chief has been chosen from it. The Kit-ke-hahk´-i group in terms of numbers, significance, and intelligence seems to be on par with the Chau-i, while, on the other hand, the Pita-hau-erat are seen as less intelligent, responsible, and capable than the other groups.
The Skidi are usually looked upon as more intelligent than the Pawnees, and also as fiercer in their nature, and as making better soldiers. The Skidi traditions, though such testimony, of course, is not of much value, speak rather contemptuously of the prowess of the other bands in war, and the superiority of the Skidi is grudgingly acknowledged by the others. This is contrary to the view held by Mr. J. B. Dunbar, who speaks of the Skidi as more intelligent than the other bands, but as not being so good as warriors.
The Skidi are generally seen as more intelligent than the Pawnees and also as fiercer by nature, making them better soldiers. While Skidi traditions often dismiss the combat skills of other bands, claiming superiority for themselves, the other groups reluctantly acknowledge this. This contrasts with the perspective of Mr. J. B. Dunbar, who considers the Skidi to be more intelligent than the other bands, but not as effective as warriors.
Besides this main group of tribes, the members of the Pawnee family, as given by Mr. Dunbar, are the Arickaras, known also as the Arickarees, Ricarees or Rees, the Caddos, the Huecos or Wacos, the Keechies, the Tawaconies, and the Wichitas or Pawnee Picts. To these may be added with some confidence the Tonkaways and the Lipans. The Caddos, Huecos, Keechies and Tawaconies are regarded by the Pawnees as closely connected with the [Pg 219] Wichitas. They had but one name, Kiri-ku´ruks, for all these tribes, and knew no distinction between them. There is no doubt that the Arickaras were recently—perhaps within a century—either a band of the Skidi tribe, or at least allied to them as closely as the Chau-i have always been to the Kit-ke-hahk´-i and the Pita-hau-erat. The relationship of the Tonkaways and the Lipans has only recently been discovered, and has come to light through the removal of the Pawnees from their home in Nebraska to their present reservation in the Indian Territory.
Besides this main group of tribes, the members of the Pawnee family, as mentioned by Mr. Dunbar, include the Arickaras, also known as the Arickarees, Ricarees, or Rees, the Caddos, the Huecos or Wacos, the Keechies, the Tawaconies, and the Wichitas or Pawnee Picts. With some confidence, we can also add the Tonkaways and the Lipans. The Pawnees view the Caddos, Huecos, Keechies, and Tawaconies as closely related to the Wichitas. They referred to all these tribes with a single name, Kiri-ku´ruks, and did not see any distinction between them. There is no doubt that the Arickaras were recently—perhaps within a century—either a band of the Skidi tribe or at least closely allied with them, similar to how the Chau-i have always been with the Kit-ke-hahk´-i and the Pita-hau-erat. The connection between the Tonkaways and the Lipans was only recently discovered through the removal of the Pawnees from their home in Nebraska to their current reservation in the Indian Territory.
In a note appended to his article on the Pawnees, published in the Magazine of American History for November, 1880, Mr. Dunbar says, “A friend, who has had much experience with the Indians of the Southwest, informs me that he is inclined to believe that the Lipans of Mexico are of Pawnee stock. They have, in times past, exchanged frequent hospitalities with the Wichitas, or Pawnee Picts, and the two understand each other’s dialects readily. The name Lipans he explains as li’panis, that is, the Pawnees.” While this suggestion is very interesting, so far as it goes, it scarcely furnishes sufficient ground on which to base a genetic connection of the Lipans with the Pawnee family. I have recently [Pg 220] secured additional and more satisfactory evidence of such a connection.
In a note added to his article on the Pawnees, published in the Magazine of American History for November 1880, Mr. Dunbar states, “A friend, who has considerable experience with the Indians of the Southwest, tells me he thinks the Lipans of Mexico are related to the Pawnees. They have historically exchanged hospitality with the Wichitas, or Pawnee Picts, and both groups easily understand each other’s dialects. He explains the name Lipans as li’panis, meaning the Pawnees.” While this suggestion is intriguing, it hardly provides enough evidence to establish a genetic link between the Lipans and the Pawnee family. I have recently [Pg220] obtained additional and more convincing evidence of such a connection.
It is generally believed by the Pawnees, especially by those who are most intelligent, and have had most intercourse with the southern tribes, that the Lipans are allied to them, and that this relationship is traceable through the Wichitas and the Tonkaways. The evidence consists of (1) statements by the Wichitas and Tonkaways, (2) an alleged similarity of language and personal names, and (3) a similarity in the songs of the tribes. A Pawnee Indian, who has lived for seven seasons with the Wichitas, gave me the following story which he had gathered from that people. They say that long ago they did not know the Tonkaways, but that when the tribes met they found that they could understand each other’s speech. Their languages were not the same, but they were not more unlike than were the tongues spoken by the Skidi and the three other Pawnee bands long ago; in other words, they were dialects of the same language. After that meeting, the Tonkaways and the Wichitas lived together for a time. But the Tonkaways had bad ways. They would eat human flesh. When they could find a Wichita boy out away from the camp, they would capture him, and strangle [Pg 221] and eat him. Sometimes they would kill a man of the Wichitas, if they could catch him away off on the prairie. Therefore the Wichitas drove the Tonkaways off south, and soon afterward moved up across the Arkansas River, and into southern Kansas. Since then the Wichitas and the Tonkaways have never lived together. A Tonkaway chief named Charlie told Ralph J. Weeks, an educated Pawnee, “I have heard that my people are Pawnees, but that we separated long ago.” I am informed that the personal names of the Tonkaways are the same as those of the Pawnees, and are readily comprehended by the latter. Ralph Weeks, while in a Tonkaway lodge, heard a man call out to a girl, addressing her as Tsi-sah-ru-rah-ka´-ri-ku, which means “Woman Chief’s House.” Ralph inquired about this name, and found that it was the same in sound as Pawnee, and had the same meaning. The Tonkaways say that some of the Pawnee words are the same as those used by their relations to the south, the Lipans and others. The songs of the Tonkaways are the same as those of the Pawnees, and the latter at once recognize them. The old songs of the Lipans are the same as those of the Pawnees, according to both Pawnee and Tonkaway testimony. Finally, the [Pg 222] Tonkaways and Lipans claim close relationship. They speak different dialects of the same language.
It is commonly believed among the Pawnees, especially those who are more knowledgeable and have engaged more with the southern tribes, that the Lipans are connected to them, and this relationship can be traced back through the Wichitas and the Tonkaways. The evidence includes (1) accounts from the Wichitas and Tonkaways, (2) a supposed similarity in language and personal names, and (3) similarities in the songs of the tribes. A Pawnee Indian who lived for seven seasons with the Wichitas shared the following story he learned from them. They say that a long time ago, they didn’t know the Tonkaways, but when the tribes met, they realized they could understand each other's language. Although their languages weren't the same, they were not more different than the languages spoken by the Skidi and the three other Pawnee bands in the past; in other words, they were dialects of the same language. After that meeting, the Tonkaways and the Wichitas lived together for a while. However, the Tonkaways had bad habits. They would eat human flesh. If they found a Wichita boy away from the camp, they would capture him, strangle him, and eat him. Sometimes they would kill a Wichita man if they could catch him alone on the prairie. As a result, the Wichitas drove the Tonkaways south and soon after moved up across the Arkansas River into southern Kansas. Since then, the Wichitas and the Tonkaways have never lived together. A Tonkaway chief named Charlie told Ralph J. Weeks, an educated Pawnee, “I have heard that my people are Pawnees, but that we separated a long time ago.” I have been informed that the personal names of the Tonkaways are the same as those of the Pawnees and can easily be understood by the latter. While in a Tonkaway lodge, Ralph Weeks heard a man call out to a girl, using the name Tsi-sah-ru-rah-ka´-ri-ku, which means “Woman Chief’s House.” Ralph asked about this name and found it sounded the same as in Pawnee and had the same meaning. The Tonkaways say that some of the Pawnee words are identical to those used by their relatives to the south, the Lipans and others. The songs of the Tonkaways are the same as those of the Pawnees, who recognize them immediately. According to both Pawnee and Tonkaway accounts, the old songs of the Lipans are the same as those of the Pawnees. Lastly, the Tonkaways and Lipans claim a close relationship. They speak different dialects of the same language.
The Pawnees, however, say that they never knew of the existence of the Tonkaways until they came down into the Indian Territory, and, of course, never met them until after that time. Neither did they know the Caddos. As the Pawnees knew nothing of the Caddos and Tonkaways, so the Wichitas knew nothing of the Arickaras until recently, and were greatly surprised to learn that far to the north there was another tribe which spoke their language.
The Pawnees, however, say they never knew about the Tonkaways until they moved into the Indian Territory, and obviously, they didn't meet them until after that. They also didn't know the Caddos. Just as the Pawnees knew nothing of the Caddos and Tonkaways, the Wichitas were unaware of the Arickaras until recently and were really surprised to find out that far to the north there was another tribe that spoke their language.
The Wichitas claim that they and the Caddos are one people. Their languages are said to differ somewhat, but only dialectically.
The Wichitas say they and the Caddos are one people. Their languages are said to differ a bit, but only in dialects.
The southern members of the Pawnee family appear always to have lived on excellent terms with the other wild tribes which inhabited their country. They were allies of the Kiowas, Comanches, and Cheyennes, tribes with which the northern Pawnees were long at war.
The southern members of the Pawnee family always seemed to have lived in good relations with the other wild tribes in their territory. They were allies of the Kiowas, Comanches, and Cheyennes, groups that the northern Pawnees were in conflict with for a long time.
II. ORIGIN AND MIGRATIONS.
The Pawnees came from the south. All the information bearing on their origin, which has as yet been secured, points to the conclusion that the primitive home of this family was in the south.
The Pawnees came from the south. All the information regarding their origin that has been gathered so far suggests that this group's original home was in the south.
Although Mr. Dunbar has carefully traced out the later history of several of the members of this group, his researches carry us back scarcely further than the beginning of the present century, and we have no actual knowledge of the origin and early history of the Pawnees. Except the Arickaras, none of the tribes belonging to this family have ever dwelt much north of the Platte River, and in this we have an indication of their southern origin. The traditions of the tribe confirm this suggestion, and Mr. Dunbar has given other reasons, derived from his study of this people, which abundantly justify us in regarding them as migrants from the south.
Although Mr. Dunbar has carefully mapped out the later history of several members of this group, his research takes us back to barely the beginning of the current century, and we have no actual knowledge of the origin and early history of the Pawnees. Aside from the Arickaras, none of the tribes in this family have ever lived much north of the Platte River, which suggests their southern origins. The tribe's traditions support this idea, and Mr. Dunbar has provided other reasons from his study of this people that fully justify our view of them as migrants from the south.
There are still current among the Pawnees two traditions as to the region from which they came, but both of these are vague, and so lacking in detail as to be of little value except as suggestions which need confirmation before being accepted as having any solid basis of fact. The first of these traditions, [Pg 224] now half forgotten, is known only to the very oldest men. It is to the effect that long ago they came from the far southwest, where they used to live in stone houses. This might point to an original home for the Pawnees in Old Mexico, and even suggests a possible connection with the so-called Pueblo tribes, who still live in houses made of stone, and entered from above.
There are still two traditions among the Pawnees about the region they came from, but both are pretty vague and lack enough detail to be useful, other than as suggestions that need to be verified before being considered fact. The first tradition, [Page224], which is now mostly forgotten, is known only to the very oldest men. It suggests that long ago they came from the far southwest, where they lived in stone houses. This could indicate that the Pawnees originally came from Old Mexico and even hints at a possible connection to the Pueblo tribes, who still live in stone houses with entrances from above.
Secret Pipe Chief, a very old Chau-i, the High Priest of the tribe, gave me the history of their wanderings in these words: “Long ago,” he said, “very far back, all of one color were together, but something mysterious happened so that they came to speak different languages. They were all together, and determined that they would separate into different parties to go and get sinew. They could not all go in company, there were too many of them. They were so numerous that when they traveled, the rocks where their lodge poles dragged were worn into deep grooves. Then they were far off in the southwest, and came from beyond two ranges of mountains. When they scattered out, each party became a tribe. At that time the Pawnees and the Wichitas were together. We made that journey, and went so far east that at last we came to the Missouri [Pg 225] River, and stopped there for a time. When the season came round, we made out of the shoulder blade of a buffalo an implement to cultivate the ground. There we made our fields.”
Secret Pipe Chief, an ancient Chau-i and the High Priest of the tribe, shared the history of their travels with me: “Long ago,” he said, “very far back, everyone was of one color and lived together, but then something mysterious happened, causing them to start speaking different languages. They decided to split up into different groups to gather sinew because there were too many of them to travel as one. They were so large in number that the rocks where their lodge poles were dragged became deeply grooved. At that point, they were far to the southwest, having come from beyond two mountain ranges. As they spread out, each group became a tribe. Back then, the Pawnees and the Wichitas were united. We made that journey and went so far east that we finally reached the Missouri [Pg225] River, where we stayed for a while. When the season came around, we created a tool to cultivate the land from a buffalo shoulder blade. That’s where we built our fields.”
Another very old man, Bear Chief, a Skidi, said, “Long ago we were far in the southwest, away beyond the Rio Grande. We came north, and settled near the Wichita Mountains. One summer there we planted our corn. So we came from the south. After we left the Wichita Mountains, that summer we came north as far as the Arkansas River, and made our fields, and raised corn. Afterward we went to the Mississippi River where the Missouri runs into it. My father was born while we lived on the Mississippi.” As Bear Chief must be nearly or quite eighty years old, it would seem likely that the Skidi, or some village of that tribe, may have been established on the Mississippi one hundred years ago, but this was not a permanent location.
Another very old man, Bear Chief, a Skidi, said, “Long ago we were far in the southwest, beyond the Rio Grande. We came north and settled near the Wichita Mountains. One summer there, we planted our corn. So we came from the south. After we left the Wichita Mountains, that summer we moved north to the Arkansas River, where we created our fields and grew corn. Later, we went to the Mississippi River, where the Missouri flows into it. My father was born while we lived on the Mississippi.” Since Bear Chief is nearly or almost eighty years old, it seems likely that the Skidi, or a village of that tribe, might have been established on the Mississippi a hundred years ago, but this was not a permanent settlement.
The second of these traditions tells of a migration from the southeast. It states that the tribe originally came from somewhere in the southeast, that is from what is now Missouri or Arkansas. They started north after sinew—to hunt buffalo—and followed up the game, until they reached the northern [Pg 226] country—the region of the Republican and the Platte rivers. They found this a pleasant country, abounding in game, and they liked it, and remained there. The Wichitas accompanied them part way on their journey, but turned aside when they had reached southern Kansas, and went south again.
The second of these traditions describes a migration from the southeast. It says that the tribe originally came from somewhere in the southeast, specifically from what is now Missouri or Arkansas. They headed north in search of food—to hunt buffalo—and followed the game until they reached the northern [Pg226] region, the area of the Republican and Platte rivers. They found this area pleasant, rich in game, and they liked it, so they stayed. The Wichitas traveled with them for part of the journey but turned back when they reached southern Kansas and went south again.
All the traditions agree that up to the time of the journey which brought the Pawnees to their homes on the Solomon, Republican, Platte and Loup rivers, the Wichitas were considered a part of the Pawnee tribe. They agree also that after this separation, the two divisions of the tribe lost sight of each other for a very long time, and that each was entirely ignorant as to what had become of the other. We know that for a long time they were at war, and the difference of the dialects spoken by these two divisions of the family shows that the period of separation was a long one.
All the traditions agree that until the journey that brought the Pawnees to their homes along the Solomon, Republican, Platte, and Loup rivers, the Wichitas were considered part of the Pawnee tribe. They also agree that after this split, the two branches of the tribe lost contact with each other for a very long time, and each was completely unaware of what had happened to the other. We know that for a long time they were at war, and the differences in the dialects spoken by these two branches of the family indicate that their period of separation was significant.
The tradition of the migration of the Pawnees from the southwest is evidently much older than the one which tells of their coming from the southeast. Most of the younger men know the latter; but for the account of the journey over the mountains from the southwest and across the Rio Grande, it is necessary to go to the very old men. It is quite [Pg 227] possible that both stories are founded on fact; and, if this is the case, the migration from the southeast may have taken place only a few generations ago. Such a supposition would in part explain its general currency at the present time.
The tradition of the Pawnees migrating from the southwest clearly dates back much further than the one about their arrival from the southeast. Most of the younger guys are familiar with the latter, but to hear the story of the journey over the mountains from the southwest and across the Rio Grande, you need to talk to the very old men. It's quite [Pg227] possible that both stories have some basis in reality; if that's true, the migration from the southeast might have happened only a few generations ago. This idea could help explain why that story is so commonly known today.
In the existing state of our knowledge of this people, we have no facts to go on, nothing in the nature of evidence as to their early history, and we can only speculate as to the probabilities in regard to their wanderings. It may be conjectured that the Pawnees came from somewhere in Old Mexico, and, either as a number of related tribes, or as a single tribe made up of different bands, they crossed the mountains and the Rio Grande in a body, and wandered eastward across what is now Texas. From this body it seems probable that the ancestors of the Lipans and the Tonkaways were the first to separate themselves. The main tribe perhaps gradually drifted further and further to the east until it had crossed Texas and reached northwestern Louisiana, and perhaps even the neighborhood of the Mississippi River. During this long journey, which must have occupied many years—perhaps many generations—we may imagine that the Huecos and possibly the Keechies dropped behind, and remained on the plains.
In our current understanding of this group of people, we have no concrete facts or evidence regarding their early history, and we can only guess about the likelihood of their movements. It's possible that the Pawnees originated from somewhere in Old Mexico, and as either a collection of related tribes or a single tribe with various bands, they traveled together across the mountains and the Rio Grande, moving eastward across what is now Texas. From this group, it seems likely that the ancestors of the Lipans and the Tonkaways were the first to branch off. The main tribe may have gradually moved further east until they crossed Texas and reached northwestern Louisiana, and maybe even the area near the Mississippi River. During this extensive journey, which likely took many years—perhaps even many generations—we can imagine that the Huecos and possibly the Keechies lagged behind and settled on the plains.
[Pg 228] How long the Pawnees sojourned in Louisiana no one can say. They now found themselves in a country, which in climate, productions, and topography, differed widely from anything they had before known. Up to this time, these people had always inhabited the high, dry tablelands of Mexico, or the almost equally arid plains of Texas, and now they had come to a country having a heavy rainfall, abounding in swamps, and overgrown with deciduous timber. The traditions of both Skidi and Pawnees speak of a time when they lived in a country where grows the cane which the white men use for fishing poles. We may imagine that this forest country was a barrier to their further progress eastward, and that it turned their steps in a new direction.
[Pg228] No one knows how long the Pawnees stayed in Louisiana. They found themselves in a place that was completely different from anything they had experienced before in terms of climate, resources, and landscape. Until then, they had always lived in the high, dry plateaus of Mexico or the similarly arid plains of Texas, and now they were in an area with heavy rainfall, plenty of swamps, and dense, leafy forests. Both Skidi and Pawnee traditions mention a time when they lived in a region with cane that white men use for fishing poles. We can imagine that this forested land served as a barrier to their movement eastward and prompted them to change course.
When the Pawnees left Louisiana, the Caddos certainly, and perhaps the Keechies and the Tawaconies, were left behind, and for a very long time lived in and near what is now Caddo Parish, Louisiana, where they were at the time of the Louisiana Purchase. Geographical names in this region indicate that their residence there was a long one, and Caddo Lake, Caddo Fork, Caddo Gap and a town named Keatchie, still bear testimony of the former occupants of the soil. From there the Caddos moved up to the [Pg 229] Brazos River in Texas. They have always kept up a close intimacy with the Wichitas.
When the Pawnees left Louisiana, the Caddos definitely, and maybe the Keechies and the Tawaconies, stayed behind and lived in and around what is now Caddo Parish, Louisiana, where they were during the Louisiana Purchase. Place names in this area show that they lived there for a long time, and Caddo Lake, Caddo Fork, Caddo Gap, and a town called Keatchie still bear witness to the former inhabitants of the land. From there, the Caddos moved up to the [Pg229] Brazos River in Texas. They have always maintained a close relationship with the Wichitas.
Perhaps it was during the sojourn of the Pawnees on the western borders of Louisiana and Arkansas, though it may have been much earlier, that the Skidi and the Arickaras, either as a single tribe, or as already divided into two separate bands, left the Pawnees and moved north and northwest. There appears to be reason for supposing that for a while this section of the tribe lived on the Red River, the Canadian and the Arkansas, and it is quite certain that sometimes they went as far east as the banks of the Mississippi near where St. Louis now is; but their permanent home, since they have been known to the whites, was on the Platte and the Loup rivers in Nebraska.
Maybe it was during the time the Pawnees were on the western edges of Louisiana and Arkansas, but it could have been even earlier, that the Skidi and the Arickaras, either as a united tribe or already split into two separate groups, left the Pawnees and moved north and northwest. There seems to be evidence suggesting that for a time, this part of the tribe lived along the Red River, the Canadian River, and the Arkansas, and it's quite certain that they sometimes traveled as far east as the Mississippi River near where St. Louis is today; however, their permanent home, since they have been known to white settlers, has been along the Platte and the Loup rivers in Nebraska.
The Pawnees with the Wichitas moved northwest into what is now the Indian Territory and southern Kansas, where they separated, the latter turning off to the south, and living at various times on the Canadian and Red rivers and near the Wichita Mountains, while the Pawnees proper slowly continued their march northward and westward, residing for a time on the Arkansas and Solomon, the Republican and Platte rivers. Here they again met the Skidi.
The Pawnees, along with the Wichitas, moved northwest into what is now Indian Territory and southern Kansas, where they split up. The Wichitas headed south, settling at different times along the Canadian and Red rivers and near the Wichita Mountains. Meanwhile, the Pawnees continued their journey north and west, spending some time near the Arkansas, Solomon, Republican, and Platte rivers. It was here that they encountered the Skidi once more.
[Pg 230] It is impossible to conjecture when this settlement in the northern country took place, but it was certainly long ago. Mr. Dunbar has pointed out that “O-kŭt-ut and oku´-kat´ signify strictly above and below (of a stream) respectively. Now their villages have usually been situated upon the banks of the Platte, the general course of which is from west to east. Hence each of these words has acquired a new meaning, i. e., west and east.” In the same way Pŭk-tĭs´-tu—toward the Omahas, has come to mean north; and Ki´ri-ku´ruks-tu—toward the Wichitas, to mean south. The coining of such words points to a long sojourn by the Pawnees in the region of the Platte. It is interesting to note that the Omahas have never in historic times lived north of the Pawnees, but always east of them, though we know that long ago they did live to the north.
[Pg230] It's hard to guess exactly when this settlement in the northern area happened, but it was definitely a long time ago. Mr. Dunbar has noted that “O-kŭt-ut and oku´-kat´ literally mean above and below (in relation to a stream) respectively. Their villages have typically been located along the banks of the Platte, which generally flows from west to east. So, both of these terms have taken on new meanings, i.e., west and east.” Similarly, Pŭk-tĭs´-tu—meaning toward the Omahas—has come to mean north, while Ki´ri-ku´ruks-tu—meaning toward the Wichitas—means south. The creation of such terms suggests that the Pawnees have spent a long time in the Platte region. It's also noteworthy that the Omahas have never lived north of the Pawnees in recorded history, always east of them, even though we know they did live to the north a long time ago.
These remarks on the movements of the Pawnees are, to be sure, very largely speculative, but speculation guided by the hints gathered from conversations with the older men. It is a surmise as to what may have been the wanderings of these people. If it were possible to talk with all the different tribes of the family, something more definite might be reached, but at this late day this seems hopeless. A [Pg 231] study of the Lipans, and an investigation of their relationships with other southwestern tribes, might furnish us clues of the utmost importance in tracing the origin of the Pawnee family.
These observations about the movements of the Pawnees are mostly guesswork, but it's informed by insights from conversations with the older members of the community. It's a hypothesis about what their travels may have been like. If we could talk to all the different tribes related to them, we might come up with something more concrete, but at this point, that seems unlikely. A [Pg231] study of the Lipans and an exploration of their connections with other southwestern tribes could provide us with crucial clues in tracing the origins of the Pawnee family.
III. THE SKIDI.
Ranking high among the Pawnee bands, for their intelligence, energy and courage, stand the Skidi. Their past history is obscure, and we know little about it beyond the fact that it was different from that of the other bands. Although the relationship between them is perfectly well established, still both Pawnee and Skidi traditions agree that the two tribes were originally distinct, and that their first meeting took place long ago, but after the migration of the Pawnees to the northern country. We know, too, that the Arickaras were close neighbors and near relatives of the Skidi, and it is probable that they constituted a band, village, or division of that tribe.
Ranking high among the Pawnee groups for their intelligence, energy, and bravery are the Skidi. Their history is unclear, and we don’t know much about it except that it was different from the other groups. Although the connection between them is well recognized, both Pawnee and Skidi traditions agree that the two tribes were originally separate, and that their first encounter happened a long time ago, after the Pawnees migrated to the northern region. We also know that the Arickaras were close neighbors and relatives of the Skidi, and it’s likely that they made up a band, village, or division of that tribe.
It is believed by those who should be well informed, that the northward migration of the Rees took place not more than a century ago. One tradition of the separation runs in this way: The Skidi started out on a hunt, a part going ahead and the [Pg 232] others following later. The first party were killing buffalo, when they were attacked by a large war party of Sioux. These got between the two parties of the Skidi, driving one of them back to the village, while the other retreated northward. This retreat continued until they had been driven some distance up the Missouri River, where their enemies left them. They remained there through the winter, and planted their corn in the spring, nor did they apparently for some time make any attempt to rejoin their tribe. After some years, however, the two bands came together on the Loup, and for a time lived together. The Rees even went further south, to the neighborhood of the Wichita Mountains, where the Pawnees at that time were living, but soon afterward they went north again, and rejoined the Skidi on the Loup, and lived near them there, and on the Platte near Scott’s Bluffs. It was not long, however, before a disagreement arose between the Rees and the Skidi, and the Rees again moved off north. It is probable that this quarrel may have originated in the fact that the Rees wished to make war on the whites, but there is some reason to believe that there was also jealousy about the head chieftainship of the two bands.
It is believed by those who should know well that the northward migration of the Rees happened no more than a century ago. One version of their separation goes like this: The Skidi set out on a hunt, with some going ahead and the others following later. The first group was hunting buffalo when they were attacked by a large war party of Sioux. The Sioux came between the two groups of the Skidi, pushing one back to the village, while the other retreated northward. This retreat continued until they had been driven quite a distance up the Missouri River, where their enemies left them. They stayed there through the winter and planted their corn in the spring, and it seems they didn’t try to rejoin their tribe for some time. After a few years, however, the two groups reunited on the Loup and lived together for a while. The Rees even moved further south to the area around the Wichita Mountains, where the Pawnees were living at that time, but soon after, they went north again and rejoined the Skidi on the Loup, living near them and on the Platte near Scott’s Bluffs. However, it wasn't long before a disagreement arose between the Rees and the Skidi, and the Rees moved north again. It's likely this conflict started because the Rees wanted to go to war with the whites, but there’s also some reason to believe that there was jealousy regarding the leadership between the two bands.
[Pg 233] The testimony of men still living indicates that about one hundred years ago some of the Skidi lived on the Mississippi River, near the present site of St. Louis, and it is said that it was only the coming in of the white settlers in considerable numbers that caused them to move further westward. I am inclined to regard this location as only a temporary one, and to believe that their real home, prior to this, had been to the west, on the Platte and Loup rivers.
[Pg233] Testimonies from people still alive suggest that about a hundred years ago, some of the Skidi lived along the Mississippi River, near what is now St. Louis. It’s said that it was the arrival of a large number of white settlers that forced them to move further west. I think of this location as merely a temporary one, and I believe that their actual homeland before this was to the west, along the Platte and Loup rivers.
It is, of course, impossible to fix, even approximately, the time when the Pawnees and the Skidi came together, but it probably was soon after the Pawnees had settled on the Republican in their northward migration. It is said that their first meeting was friendly, and that they made a treaty, and smoked together. But no peace between two such warlike tribes could last very long, and there were frequent collisions and disagreements. There was a sharp rivalry between the Chau-i and the Skidi, and their disputes finally culminated in an unprovoked attack by the Skidi upon some Pawnees, while they were hunting buffalo, in which about one hundred of the latter were killed. The Pawnees made ready to avenge this injury, and marshaled all their forces. They made a night march to the [Pg 234] vicinity of the Skidi village, which is said to have been on the north side of the Loup, distant from their own only about twenty miles, and just at daylight sent out about one hundred warriors, all mounted on dark colored horses, to decoy the Skidi from the village. These men, lying down on their horses, and covering themselves with their robes, represented buffalo, and rode over the hill in sight of the Skidi village. The ruse was successful. The Skidi at once started out to kill the buffalo, leaving their village unprotected. The disguised warriors fled, leading the Skidi further away, while the Pawnees who were in reserve rushed into the defenseless village, and captured it, almost without striking a blow. They took all the inhabitants back with them to their own village. The Skidi were forced to sue for peace; and for their breach of faith were heavily fined by the victorious Pawnees. They were incorporated into the tribe, and since that time have lived as a part of the Pawnee nation. This event was probably the culminating point of a series of petty fights and skirmishes, which must have been annoying to the Pawnees. This fighting went on within the memory of men now living, though there are but few who are old enough to remember it.
It’s impossible to determine exactly when the Pawnees and the Skidi came together, but it was likely soon after the Pawnees settled by the Republican River during their northward migration. It’s said their first meeting was friendly, and they made a treaty and smoked together. However, peace between two such warrior tribes didn't last long, leading to frequent clashes and disagreements. A fierce rivalry existed between the Chau-i and the Skidi, and ultimately, this escalated into an unprovoked attack by the Skidi on some Pawnees while they were hunting buffalo, resulting in the deaths of about one hundred Pawnees. The Pawnees prepared to retaliate and gathered all their forces. They executed a night march to the [Pg234] area near the Skidi village, believed to be about twenty miles north of theirs. Just as dawn broke, they sent out about one hundred warriors, all on dark-colored horses, to lure the Skidi away from their village. These warriors laid down on their horses and covered themselves with their robes to mimic buffalo, riding over the hill within sight of the Skidi village. The trick worked. The Skidi rushed out to hunt the buffalo, leaving their village unguarded. The disguised warriors fled, drawing the Skidi further away, while the Pawnees in reserve surged into the defenseless village and captured it with minimal resistance. They took all the inhabitants back to their own village. The Skidi had no choice but to request peace, and for breaking their agreement, they were heavily penalized by the victorious Pawnees. They were absorbed into the tribe and have lived as a part of the Pawnee nation ever since. This incident marked the peak of ongoing petty fights and skirmishes that must have been frustrating for the Pawnees. This fighting occurred within the memory of people still living today, though few are old enough to remember it.
[Pg 235] Curly Chief, who is about 65 years old, can remember a man who took part in these wars, and whose name was “The-Skidi-wounded-him-in-the-leg.” Bear Chief, a very old and decrepit Skidi, and Secret Pipe Chief, an old Chau-i, have both told me that they can remember one or more fights between the Skidi and the other bands.
[Pg235] Curly Chief, who is around 65 years old, recalls a man who fought in these wars, known as “The-Skidi-wounded-him-in-the-leg.” Bear Chief, a very old and frail Skidi, and Secret Pipe Chief, an elderly Chau-i, both said they remember one or more battles between the Skidi and the other groups.
A rather interesting evidence of the feeling once existing between the Skidi and the other bands, and even now surviving among some of the oldest men, is the statement by Bear Chief that the three other bands were known as “Big Shields,” the implication being that as they hid themselves behind these big shields they were not so brave as those who used smaller ones. The existence of such a feeling at the present day indicates that the final conquest of the Skidi and their incorporation into the Pawnee tribe took place not very long ago.
A pretty interesting piece of evidence about the relationship that once existed between the Skidi and the other bands, and that still lingers among some of the oldest men, is Bear Chief's statement that the three other bands were referred to as “Big Shields.” This implies that since they hid behind these large shields, they were not as brave as those who used smaller ones. The fact that this feeling still exists today suggests that the Skidi were fully conquered and incorporated into the Pawnee tribe not too long ago.
Mr. Dunbar sums up the traditions of the meeting of the tribes, their wars and subsequent union, in the following language: “The historic basis of this may be somewhat as follows: In the migration of the Pawnees from the south, the Skidi preceded the other bands perhaps by nearly a century. With them were the Arickaras. These two bands [Pg 236] together possessed themselves of the region of the Loup. When the other bands arrived they were regarded as intruders, and hence arose open hostilities. The result of the struggle was that the two bands were forced to admit the new comers, and aid in reducing the surrounding territory. Subsequently the Arickaras seem to have wandered, or more probably, to have been driven from the confederacy, and to have passed up the Missouri. Later the Skidi, in consequence of some real or fancied provocation, attempted to retrieve their losses, but were sorely punished, and henceforth obliged to content themselves with a subordinate position in the tribe.”
Mr. Dunbar summarizes the traditions of the tribes' meetings, their wars, and later union with the following: “The historical basis for this might be something like this: In the migration of the Pawnees from the south, the Skidi likely arrived before the other groups by almost a century. They were accompanied by the Arickaras. Together, these two groups took control of the Loup region. When the other groups arrived, they were seen as intruders, leading to open conflicts. As a result of the struggle, the two groups had no choice but to accept the newcomers and help claim the surrounding territory. Later, it seems the Arickaras either wandered away or were more likely driven from the alliance and moved up the Missouri River. Eventually, the Skidi, due to some real or perceived slight, tried to regain their lost position but faced severe consequences, and from then on had to settle for a lesser role in the tribe.”
It is said that in the olden time the Skidi were very powerful. The tribe was made up of four bands or villages, each of which numbered 5,000 people, or 20,000 for the whole tribe. This estimate, which is founded merely on the statements of old men now living, is probably excessive. There is no doubt, however, that they were a large and powerful tribe, while their warlike habits and fierce natures caused them to be feared and hated by all their neighbors.
It’s said that back in the day, the Skidi were really powerful. The tribe consisted of four groups or villages, each with about 5,000 people, making a total of around 20,000 for the entire tribe. This estimate, which is based solely on the accounts of elderly men still alive today, is probably inflated. However, it’s clear that they were a large and formidable tribe, and their aggressive behavior and fierce personalities made them feared and disliked by all their neighbors.
The four divisions of the Skidi tribe exist now only in name, and the origin of these names is [Pg 237] almost forgotten. As the result of much effort and inquiry, I have secured the following list:
The four divisions of the Skidi tribe now only exist in name, and the origin of these names is [Pg237] almost forgotten. After a lot of effort and research, I’ve put together the following list:
Names of the Skidi Bands.
Skidi Bands Names.
1. Tuhk-pah-huks-taht—Pumpkin vine village. This name is said to have come from the fact that once, after planting time, this band went off on the summer hunt, and while they were away, the pumpkin vines grew so luxuriantly that they climbed up over the lodges, covering and hiding them.
1. Tuhk-pah-huks-taht—Pumpkin vine village. This name is said to have come from the fact that once, after planting time, this group went off on the summer hunt, and while they were away, the pumpkin vines grew so abundantly that they climbed up over the lodges, covering and hiding them.
2. Skidi rah´ru—Wolves in the pools (of water). The name originated in this way: Long ago one band of the Skidi were camped on the Loup River. It was winter, and the buffalo came to them in great numbers. They killed many and prepared great quantities of dried meat. The buffalo kept coming, and at length they had so much meat that they had room for no more. When they could no longer store dried meat, they stopped taking the flesh of the buffalo and took only the hides. The buffalo continued to come and to cross the river just below the camp, and the men on foot would chase the buffalo on the ice, where the great animals would slip and sprawl, so that the Skidi could run up [Pg 238] close, and stab them. They would skin them there and leave the carcasses on the ice. From far and near great numbers of wolves gathered to feed on the carcasses, and as it was toward spring, and the weather was growing milder, the ice began to melt on top, and little pools of water stood on it. About this time, there came to this village a Skidi from another band who were half starving, for they could find no buffalo at all. When the man saw that this village had so much meat, he wondered at the plenty, and asked how it was. They took him out from the village down to where the dead buffalo lay on the ice, and pointed them out to him, and he saw the wolves standing in the water and feeding on the carcasses. Then they took him back to the village, gave him all the dried meat he could carry, and sent him away to his home, heavily loaded. When he reached his own village he told the people there how those in the other camp had plenty, and when they asked him where it was, he told them, and said that it was Skidi rah´ru—where the wolves stand in the pools of water.
2. Skidi rah´ru—Wolves in the pools (of water). The name originated like this: A long time ago, one group of the Skidi camped on the Loup River. It was winter, and the buffalo came to them in large numbers. They killed many and prepared a lot of dried meat. The buffalo kept arriving until they had so much meat that they couldn’t store any more. When they could no longer keep dried meat, they stopped taking the buffalo's flesh and only took the hides. The buffalo continued to cross the river just below the camp, and the men on foot chased them on the ice, where the massive animals would slip and fall, allowing the Skidi to get close and stab them. They skinned the buffalo there and left the carcasses on the ice. Wolves gathered from far and wide to feast on the carcasses, and as spring approached with milder weather, the ice started to melt, leaving little pools of water on it. Around this time, a Skidi from another band, who were nearly starving because they couldn’t find any buffalo, arrived at this village. When he saw that this village had so much meat, he was amazed by the abundance and asked how it happened. They took him from the village to where the dead buffalo lay on the ice, pointed them out to him, and he saw the wolves standing in the water and feeding on the carcasses. They then brought him back to the village, gave him all the dried meat he could carry, and sent him home heavily loaded. When he arrived at his own village, he told the people there how those in the other camp had plenty, and when they asked him where it was, he told them and mentioned that it was Skidi rah´ru—where the wolves stand in the pools of water.
3. Tuh-wa-hok´-a-sha—Village on a ridge. Tuh—village, wa—the central roach on the head of a man whose hair has been shaved on both sides, [Pg 239] hok´-a-sha—curving over. This village was on a ridge, reaching over on both sides of it.
3. Tuh-wa-hok´-a-sha—Village on a ridge. Tuh—village, wa—the central part on the head of a man whose hair has been shaved on both sides, [Pg239] hok´-a-sha—curving over. This village was situated on a ridge, extending over on both sides.
4. Tu-hi´ts-pi-yet—Village on a point or peninsula. Tuh—village, camp, or band; hits-pi-yu—a point.
4. Tu-hi´ts-pi-yet—Village on a point or peninsula. Tuh—village, camp, or band; hits-pi-yu—a point.
There are yet to be seen on the Loup Fork, in Nebraska, innumerable remains of Skidi villages, some of which are very ancient.
There are still many remnants of Skidi villages along the Loup Fork in Nebraska, some of which are quite old.
IV. NAME AND EMBLEM.
It is probable that the name Pawnee, as Mr. Dunbar has remarked, is an abbreviated form of the word pa-ri´-ki, which means a horn, and referred to the peculiar erect scalp lock which may once have been worn by this tribe. As Mr. Dunbar says, the name probably once embraced the Pawnee Picts or Wichitas, among whom this fashion of wearing the hair seems to have persisted long after it had been abandoned by the Pawnees. The same writer gives the name Arickara as from “ŭr´-ik-i, a horn; with a verbal or plural suffix, being thus simply a later and exact equivalent of Pa´-ni itself.”
It’s likely that the name Pawnee, as Mr. Dunbar noted, is a shortened version of the word pa-ri´-ki, which means horn, and referred to the unique upright scalp lock that this tribe might have worn. According to Mr. Dunbar, the name probably included the Pawnee Picts or Wichitas, among whom this hairstyle seems to have lasted much longer after it was dropped by the Pawnees. The same writer states that the name Arickara comes from “ŭr´-ik-i, a horn; with a verbal or plural suffix, making it essentially a later and precise equivalent of Pa´-ni itself.”
The name Pawnee Picts, so commonly applied to the Wichitas, appears to mean Pawnee Picked, or tattooed Pawnees; and refers to the markings upon [Pg 240] the faces and breasts of these people, which are picked in with a sharp instrument. The northern Indians speak of the Pawnees as Pa-na´-na, while the southern tribes call them Pi-ta´-da, and the Dakotas call the Arickaras Pa-da´-ni. All these appear to be merely attempts to reproduce the name by which the Pawnees call themselves, Pa´-ni.
The term Pawnee Picts, often used for the Wichitas, seems to mean Pawnee Picked, or tattooed Pawnees; it refers to the markings on the faces and chests of these people, which are created with a sharp tool. The northern tribes refer to the Pawnees as Pa-na´-na, while the southern tribes call them Pi-ta´-da, and the Dakotas refer to the Arickaras as Pa-da´-ni. All of these seem to be attempts to replicate the name that the Pawnees use for themselves, Pa´-ni.
The English names of the four bands of the Pawnees are, as has been already stated, for the Skidi, the Wolf; for the Chau-i, the Grand; for the Kit-ke-hahk´-i, the Republican, and for the Pita-hau-erat, the Tapaje, Pawnees.
The English names of the four bands of the Pawnees are, as mentioned earlier, for the Skidi, the Wolf; for the Chau-i, the Grand; for the Kit-ke-hahk´-i, the Republican; and for the Pita-hau-erat, the Tapaje, Pawnees.
An old French trader, who has known these people for many years, states that the Skidi are called Wolf Pawnees from the river Loup, on which they lived; that Grand is an abbreviation for Grand-pas, because the Chau-i were mostly tall men and took long steps; that the Kit-ke-hahk´-i were called Republican from the river of that name, and the Pita-hau-erat Tapaje (Fr. noisy), because they are noisy and restless, and are continually moving about from place to place. This explanation of these English names is not altogether satisfactory. Mr. Dunbar informs me that he believes that the Chau-i were called Grand from the appellation given them by the [Pg 241] Spaniards, who called them Los Grandes, referring to their physical stature.
An old French trader, who has known these people for many years, says that the Skidi are called Wolf Pawnees because of the river Loup, where they lived; that Grand is short for Grand-pas, since the Chau-i were mostly tall men who took long strides; that the Kit-ke-hahk´-i were named Republican after the river of that name, and the Pita-hau-erat Tapaje (French for noisy), because they are loud and restless, constantly moving around from place to place. This explanation of these English names isn’t entirely satisfactory. Mr. Dunbar tells me he believes that the Chau-i were called Grand based on the name given to them by the [Pg241] Spaniards, who referred to them as Los Grandes, highlighting their large stature.
In the chapter on the Skidi the names of the four bands of that tribe have been given, and their origin and derivation. The other tribes were divided into bands, or gentes, but these divisions have almost been forgotten. Of the Chau-i there is now said to be only one band; of the Kit-ke-hahk´-i three; the Great Kit-ke-hahk´-i, Little Kit-ke-hahk´-i, and Blackhead Kit-ke-hahk´-i; while of the Pita-hau-erat there were two bands, the Pita-hau-erat proper and the Ka-wa-ra´-kish. This last-named division appears to have had some customs peculiar to itself, and quite different from anything known to the other Pawnees.
In the chapter about the Skidi, the names of the four bands of that tribe have been mentioned along with their origin and meaning. The other tribes were split into bands, or groups, but these divisions have mostly been forgotten. It's now said that the Chau-i have just one band; the Kit-ke-hahk´-i have three: the Great Kit-ke-hahk´-i, Little Kit-ke-hahk´-i, and Blackhead Kit-ke-hahk´-i; while the Pita-hau-erat had two bands, the Pita-hau-erat proper and the Ka-wa-ra´-kish. This last division seems to have had some unique customs that were quite different from anything known to the other Pawnees.
The Pawnees call the Wichitas and the other related southern tribes Kiri-kur´uks—Bear’s-eyes. The reason for this appellation is obscure. The only explanation of it that I have been able to obtain, is that when the Pawnees first saw the Wichitas they thought they had eyes like a bear. As Mr. Dunbar has suggested to me, the allusion may have been to the ring sometimes painted or tattooed about the eyes of the Wichitas.
The Pawnees call the Wichitas and other related southern tribes Kiri-kur´uks—Bear’s-eyes. The reason for this name isn’t entirely clear. The only explanation I've been able to find is that when the Pawnees first saw the Wichitas, they thought they had eyes like a bear. As Mr. Dunbar pointed out to me, the reference might have been to the rings that were sometimes painted or tattooed around the eyes of the Wichitas.
It is generally supposed that an Indian receives his personal name from some peculiarly memorable [Pg 242] act that he has performed, or from some incident that has happened to him. This is not now commonly the case in the tribes with which I am best acquainted. Personal names formerly originated in this way among the Indians, but at the present day I question much if they are often given for such reasons. Most of the names borne by the warriors have been long known in the tribe, and I believe the coining of new names to fit a special set of circumstances to be now quite unusual. Children were named soon after they were born, and retained their childish names until well grown. Ta´-ka—white, was a common boy’s name, as was Ka-tit—black; Ki-ri´ki—bright eyes, was often given to little girls. Nicknames referring to personal peculiarities were common.
It's generally believed that an Indian gets his personal name from some memorable act he has done or an event that has happened to him. However, this isn’t really the case anymore among the tribes I'm most familiar with. Personal names used to come from this tradition among the Indians, but nowadays, I seriously doubt they’re often given for those reasons. Most of the names held by the warriors have been known in the tribe for a long time, and I think the creation of new names to suit specific situations is now quite rare. Children were named shortly after birth and kept their childhood names until they grew up. Ta´-ka—white, was a common name for boys, as was Ka-tit—black; Ki-ri´ki—bright eyes, was often given to young girls. Nicknames based on personal traits were common.
Here is a list which will give some notion of the general character of the Pawnee names: Lucky Hawk, Good Fox, Turn-your-robe-hair-out, Chief of Men, Pipe Chief, Lone Chief, Leader, Brave Chief, Leading Fox, Still Hawk, Hunting Chief, Yellow Fox, Charging-the-camp, Angry Chief, Little Warrior, Good Bear, Eagle Chief, Sun Chief, White Horse, He-gives-away-many-horses-and-others-ride-them, Riding-up, Good Sky, Walking Bear, Proud [Pg 243] Eagle, Seven Stars, Sitting Bull, Big Mountain, Fancy Horse, Fox Chief, Good Sun, Curly Hair, Blue Hawk, Mad Wolf, White Elk, Young Hawk, War Chief, Good Chief, Curly Chief, Sitting Eagle, Running Eagle, Mad Bear, Walking Sun, See-the-eagle-flying, etc.
Here’s a list that gives you an idea of the general character of the Pawnee names: Lucky Hawk, Good Fox, Turn-your-robe-hair-out, Chief of Men, Pipe Chief, Lone Chief, Leader, Brave Chief, Leading Fox, Still Hawk, Hunting Chief, Yellow Fox, Charging-the-camp, Angry Chief, Little Warrior, Good Bear, Eagle Chief, Sun Chief, White Horse, He-gives-away-many-horses-and-others-ride-them, Riding-up, Good Sky, Walking Bear, Proud Eagle, Seven Stars, Sitting Bull, Big Mountain, Fancy Horse, Fox Chief, Good Sun, Curly Hair, Blue Hawk, Mad Wolf, White Elk, Young Hawk, War Chief, Good Chief, Curly Chief, Sitting Eagle, Running Eagle, Mad Bear, Walking Sun, See-the-eagle-flying, etc.
Mr. Dunbar states that “the tribal mark of the Pawnees in their pictographic or historic painting was the scalp lock dressed to stand nearly erect, or curving slightly backward something like a horn.” I have never met a Pawnee who knew of this manner of dressing the hair in his own tribe, but all unite in stating that the Wichitas used to wear the lock in this manner. If this is the case, no doubt in ancient times it was common to the Pawnees as well, but with them it has become obsolete, and is now forgotten.
Mr. Dunbar says that “the tribal mark of the Pawnees in their pictographic or historic painting was the scalp lock styled to stand almost straight up, or curving slightly back like a horn.” I’ve never met a Pawnee who knows about this way of styling hair in his own tribe, but everyone agrees that the Wichitas used to wear their locks this way. If that's true, it probably was common among the Pawnees in ancient times as well, but now it's become outdated and is forgotten.
In books the sign for “Pawnee” is sometimes given as the forefinger of the right hand held at the back of the crown of the head, and pointing upward to represent this erect scalp lock, but I conceive that this sign is really that of the Pawnee Picts or Wichitas, who have been so constantly confused with the true or northern Pawnees.
In some books, the sign for “Pawnee” is shown as the index finger of the right hand placed at the back of the crown of the head, pointing upward to symbolize the upright scalp lock. However, I believe this sign actually represents the Pawnee Picts or Wichitas, who have often been mistaken for the true or northern Pawnees.

SIGN FOR PAWNEE.
SIGN FOR PAWNEE.
The only sign for “Pawnee” that I have ever seen [Pg 244] employed among Indians in the West is that for “wolf,” which is the name under which the Pawnees are, or at least were formerly, known to most other tribes. This sign is made in two ways, (1) by holding the two hands, palm forward, the first and middle fingers extended close together upward and a little forward, thumb and other fingers closed, close to the head, about opposite the temple; (2) the right hand alone may be held palm forward at the height of, and just in front of, the shoulder, the first and middle fingers extended, separated and pointing upward, the thumb and others closed; the hand is then moved forward and downward from the wrist, [Pg 245] so that the extended fingers point almost to the front. Both these signs represent the pricked ears of a wolf, and, so far as my experience goes, are universally understood to mean “Pawnee.” The one last described is now much the more common of the two. The first of these signs is shown in the frontispiece, which is copied from an engraving in the First Annual Report of the Bureau of Ethnology.
The only sign for “Pawnee” that I have ever seen [Pg244] used among Native Americans in the West is the one for “wolf,” which is the name under which the Pawnees are, or at least were previously, known to most other tribes. This sign can be made in two ways: (1) by holding both hands, palms facing forward, with the index and middle fingers extended close together, pointing slightly up and forward, while the thumb and other fingers are closed, positioned near the head, roughly at the temple; (2) the right hand alone can be held palm forward at shoulder height and just in front of it, with the index and middle fingers extended, separated, and pointing upward, while the thumb and other fingers are closed; then the hand is moved forward and downward from the wrist, [Pg245] so that the extended fingers point almost straight ahead. Both these signs represent the pricked ears of a wolf and, based on my experience, are universally understood to mean “Pawnee.” The last described sign is now much more commonly used of the two. The first of these signs is illustrated in the frontispiece, which is copied from an engraving in the First Annual Report of the Bureau of Ethnology.
The Pawnees have always been called by their neighbors to the south “Wolves.” It has been suggested that this term was applied to them by their enemies in contempt, but there seems no reason for believing this to have been the case, since it may be doubted that an Indian feels contempt for a wolf any more than he does for a fox, a rabbit, or an elk.
The Pawnees have always been referred to by their neighbors to the south as “Wolves.” Some have suggested that this term was given to them by their enemies out of contempt, but there’s no real reason to believe this is true, as it’s doubtful that an Indian feels contempt for a wolf any more than he does for a fox, a rabbit, or an elk.
An Indian going into an enemy’s country is often called a wolf, and the sign for “a scout” is made up of the signs “wolf” and “look.” The Pawnees were most adroit scouts, warriors and stealers of horses; and it seems perfectly natural that they should have received from the neighboring tribes, who had such frequent evidences of their skill as scouts and horse takers, the appellation Wolf. The Pawnees themselves believe that the term was applied to them because of their great endurance, [Pg 246] as well as of their skill in imitating wolves so as to escape detection by the enemy either by day or night. The Cheyennes, Wichitas and Comanches all testify that they call the Pawnees Wolves because they prowl like wolves; because, too, they have the endurance of wolves, and can travel all day, and dance all night, and can make long journeys, living on the carcasses they find on their way, or on no food at all.
An Indian entering an enemy territory is often referred to as a wolf, and the sign for “a scout” is created using the signs for “wolf” and “look.” The Pawnees were exceptionally skilled scouts, warriors, and horse thieves; it seems perfectly natural that neighboring tribes, who often witnessed their expertise as scouts and horse raiders, would call them Wolves. The Pawnees believe this name was given to them because of their impressive endurance and their ability to mimic wolves to avoid being spotted by the enemy, whether during the day or at night. The Cheyennes, Wichitas, and Comanches all confirm that they refer to the Pawnees as Wolves because they stalk like wolves, possess the stamina of wolves, can travel all day, dance all night, and undertake long journeys, surviving on carcasses they find along the way or even without any food at all. [Pg246]
The Pawnees, when they went on the warpath, were always prepared to simulate wolves. This was one of their regular practices, and this no doubt was one reason for their remarkable success in taking horses, for it enabled them to escape observation and to reconnoitre at close quarters without danger of discovery. Wolves on the prairie were too common to excite remark, and at night they would approach close to the Indian camps, and often venture into them. The Pawnee who was disguised as a wolf could trot up close to the village of his enemy, see where the horses were tied, and perhaps even hear what was being said, and lay his plans accordingly. The Pawnee starting off on the warpath usually carried a robe made of wolf skins, or in later times a white blanket or a white sheet; and, at [Pg 247] night, wrapping himself in this, and getting down on his hands and knees, he walked or trotted here and there like a wolf, having thus transformed himself into a common object of the landscape. This disguise was employed by day as well. To escape observation when traveling in daylight, the Pawnee war party always chose the ravines and lower ground to march in. Sometimes, especially in a country where there was danger of coming unexpectedly on the enemy, it was important that a reconnoissance should be made from some commanding point. A man walking up to the top of a hill might be seen, and recognized as a suspicious object, a long way off, but no one would look a second time at a wolf. While the party remained hidden in some ravine or hollow, therefore, the man who was to ascend the hill would put his white robe over him and gallop to the top on all fours, and would sit there on his haunches looking all over the country, and any one at a distance who saw him, would take him for a wolf. It was acknowledged on all hands that the Pawnees could imitate wolves best. In one of the stories already given, an instance is mentioned in which two Pawnees in the United States service made use of this device to recover captured animals.
The Pawnees, when heading into battle, were always ready to act like wolves. This was a regular tactic for them, and it likely contributed to their notable success in capturing horses, as it allowed them to avoid detection and scout nearby without the risk of being discovered. Wolves were so common on the prairie that they didn't attract much attention, and at night they would get close to Indian camps, sometimes even entering them. A Pawnee disguised as a wolf could sneak up near his enemy's village, see where the horses were tied, and maybe even hear conversations to help him plan his attack. When setting out on the warpath, a Pawnee typically carried a robe made of wolf skins, or later, a white blanket or sheet. At night, he would wrap himself in this and crawl around like a wolf, blending into the landscape. This disguise was also used during the day. To stay unnoticed while traveling in daylight, the Pawnee war party always chose to march through ravines and lower ground. Sometimes, especially in areas where they might unexpectedly encounter the enemy, it was crucial to scout from a high point. A person walking to the top of a hill could easily be seen and identified as suspicious from far away, but no one would think twice about a wolf. While the group hid in a ravine or dip, the designated scout would put on his white robe and crawl to the top, sitting there on his haunches, scanning the area. Anyone from a distance would just see a wolf. It was widely recognized that the Pawnees were the best at mimicking wolves. In one previously mentioned story, there's an example where two Pawnees in the United States service used this tactic to retrieve stolen animals.
[Pg 248] The name “Wolf,” as given to the Pawnees, is probably merely a translation of the word Skiri´ki, meaning wolf, from which the name of the Skidi band may be supposed to be derived. Mr. Dunbar says: “The emblem probably originated from the Skidi band. They being in advance of the other bands in the northern migration, became known to the tribes about them as wolves; and as the other bands arrived the sign was naturally made to include them also, and in this enlarged use was at length accepted by the Pawnees themselves.”
[Pg248] The name “Wolf,” which is used for the Pawnees, is likely just a translation of the word Skiri´ki, meaning wolf, and it may be where the Skidi band got their name. Mr. Dunbar says: “The emblem probably started with the Skidi band. Since they were ahead of the other bands during the northern migration, other tribes began to refer to them as wolves; and as the other bands caught up, the term naturally expanded to include them too, eventually becoming accepted by the Pawnees themselves.”

BUFFALO HORN LADLE AND SPOON.
Buffalo horn ladle and spoon.
PAWNEE CUSTOMS.
I. EARLY DAYS.
PAWNEE history goes back to a time when the tribe knew nothing of horses. In those early days they went on foot, and depended for animal food on their bows and arrows. At that time their bows did not differ from those recently in use, but the heads of their arrows were made of stone, and their knives were of flint. With this simple equipment they set out on the hunt.
PAWNEE history goes back to a time when the tribe didn't know anything about horses. In those early days, they traveled on foot and relied on their bows and arrows for meat. Their bows were similar to those used today, but the arrowheads were made of stone, and their knives were made of flint. With this basic gear, they went out to hunt.
Choosing a still day, they would surround a small bunch of buffalo, stretching out in a long line whose extremities would gradually draw together, as the hunters, perhaps disguised as wolves, stole from hill to hill, around the unconscious prey. When the circle was complete, some one man would shout and startle the buffalo, and then as they turned to run, [Pg 250] another man would show himself before them, and call out, and turn them, and whichever way they ran, some one would appear before them, and turn them back. The buffalo, becoming each moment more frightened, would run now this way, now that, and gradually the Pawnees would close in on them, but would still keep the buffalo from breaking through the line by yelling, and by tossing their robes in the air. As the prey became more and more terror-stricken and confused, they would run here and there, and round and round within the ring of men; and as they grew more tired, the men would close in on them still more, and first one, and then another, would shoot an arrow, until at last the arrows were flying fast, and some of the great beasts were down, and others were staggering along with the blood pouring from their mouths; and soon the buffalo were so worn out that they could run no longer, and it was an easy matter for the Indians to dispatch them. Even those which were only slightly wounded were secured, for it is said that when the animals were hit by the arrows, even if it were only in the leg, they would soon swell up and die. This statement refers to a belief, which I find quite widespread among plains Indians, that the ancient stone arrow [Pg 251] heads were peculiarly deadly, and possessed this property, that even a slight touch with them made a wound which was likely to be fatal. The Blackfeet Indians have often told me the same thing about the stone arrow heads which they used in early times.
Choosing a calm day, they would surround a small group of buffalo, forming a long line that gradually closed in as the hunters, perhaps disguised as wolves, moved silently from hill to hill around the unaware prey. Once the circle was complete, one man would shout to startle the buffalo, and as they turned to run, another man would step in front of them, calling out and redirecting them. No matter which direction they ran, someone would appear ahead of them to turn them back. The buffalo, growing increasingly panicked, would dash this way and that, while the Pawnees continued to close in, using shouts and tossing their robes in the air to keep the buffalo from breaking through the line. As the prey became more frightened and confused, they would run here and there, circling within the ring of men; and as they grew more exhausted, the men would close in even tighter. One by one, they would shoot arrows, until soon arrows were flying rapidly, some of the massive animals were down, and others staggered along with blood pouring from their mouths. Eventually, the buffalo were so worn out they could no longer run, making it easy for the Indians to finish them off. Even those that were only slightly wounded were captured, as it is said that when the animals were hit by arrows—even if just in the leg—they would soon swell up and die. This belief is quite common among plains Indians, that ancient stone arrowheads were exceptionally deadly and had the property that even a minor injury from them was likely to be fatal. The Blackfeet Indians have often told me the same thing about the stone arrowheads they used in the past.
Game, which inhabited the underbrush or the forest, was captured by a method similar to that employed to secure the buffalo. If the Pawnees discovered that deer or elk were in a piece of timber, they would surround it, and then alarm the game, and keep them from breaking through the line of men. The animals, frightened and confused, would run round and round in a circle until exhausted, when the Pawnees would close in, and kill them with their arrows.
Game, which lived in the underbrush or forest, was captured using a method similar to that used for buffalo. If the Pawnees found deer or elk in a section of woods, they would surround it, scare the animals, and prevent them from breaking through the line of men. The frightened and confused animals would run in circles until they were exhausted, at which point the Pawnees would close in and kill them with their arrows.
It must be remembered in this connection, that in those days game animals were enormously abundant and comparatively tame, and also, that the Pawnees, from the necessities of their lives, were tremendously active, very swift runners, and as tireless as the wolves from which they took their name. Their endurance was something astonishing. In their long journeys on the warpath they often traversed on foot six or eight hundred miles of country, carrying, during a part of the time, very heavy loads. Instances [Pg 252] are not uncommon where runners have traveled one hundred miles in twenty-four hours. I myself know of a case where two men ran over seventy miles in eleven hours. We may imagine that in the old days when the Pawnees made all their journeys on foot, and were thus constantly exercising, their speed and activity were greater, and their powers of endurance still more remarkable.
It should be noted that back then, game animals were incredibly plentiful and relatively tame. The Pawnees, driven by their lifestyle needs, were extremely active, very fast runners, and as tireless as the wolves they were named after. Their endurance was truly impressive. During long journeys for war, they often walked six to eight hundred miles, sometimes carrying heavy loads. There are many cases where runners have covered one hundred miles in twenty-four hours. I personally know of a situation where two men ran over seventy miles in eleven hours. We can imagine that in the past, when the Pawnees traveled exclusively on foot and were constantly active, their speed and agility were even greater, and their endurance was even more remarkable.
Although their ancient arrows were usually headed with flint, they sometimes used bone or the sharpened tine of a deer’s horn. No one now alive can remember when these were in common use, but there are men who have heard their fathers and their grandfathers tell of them, and who say that these arrows were good for war and for the chase. “You could drive them through a thick shield,” said Bear Chief. As soon as they began to trade with the whites, arrow heads of sheet-iron came into use. They say that, so long as the Pawnees used flint for making arrow heads, they used to find plenty of these stones lying on the prairie, but that when the whites brought them iron, Ti-ra´-wa said to himself, “The Pawnees no longer need these flint stones; I will make no more of them.” This shows an odd confusion of ideas, for, of course, the reason that they did not [Pg 253] find the stones was that they no longer looked for them, their use having been abandoned.
Although their ancient arrows were usually tipped with flint, they sometimes used bone or a sharpened deer antler. No one alive today can remember when these were commonly used, but there are men who have heard their fathers and grandfathers talk about them, saying that these arrows were effective for both war and hunting. “You could drive them through a thick shield,” said Bear Chief. Once they began trading with white settlers, arrowheads made of sheet iron became popular. They say that as long as the Pawnees relied on flint for their arrowheads, they would find plenty of these stones on the prairie, but when the whites brought them iron, Ti-ra´-wa thought to himself, “The Pawnees no longer need these flint stones; I will make no more of them.” This reflects a strange misunderstanding, since the real reason they stopped finding the stones was that they no longer searched for them, having given up their use.
Although these stone arrow heads must have passed out of general use toward the end of the last century, yet some of them were preserved much later, and it is possible that there may even now be some among the Pawnees, hidden away in the sacred bundles. After they ceased to be used for general purposes, they took on a sacred character and were employed to slay the sacrifices; among the Skidi to kill the captive, and in the Lower Village tribes the buffalo and deer, for sacrifice. There was a time when it was deemed essential that the animals to be sacrificed to Ti-ra´-wa, should be killed by one of these ancient—and so sacred—arrows.
Although these stone arrowheads likely fell out of common use toward the end of the last century, some were kept much longer, and it’s possible that there are still a few among the Pawnees, tucked away in the sacred bundles. Once they were no longer used for everyday purposes, they took on a sacred significance and were used for sacrifices; among the Skidi, they were used to kill captives, and in the Lower Village tribes, they were used to sacrifice buffalo and deer. There was a time when it was considered crucial for the animals being sacrificed to Ti-ra´-wa to be killed with one of these ancient—and thus sacred—arrows.
In the early days the Pawnees did not depend for food wholly—perhaps not even largely—on the flesh of the animals which they killed by hunting. They have always been an agricultural people, cultivating the ground, and raising corn, beans, pumpkins, and squashes. They also dug up many edible roots, and collected and dried various berries and other fruits. Besides this, they captured birds and smaller mammals by means of snares and traps. It is said that before they obtained horses, they killed but few [Pg 254] buffalo, only enough to provide themselves with clothing and with sinew for sewing, backing bows, and other uses.
In the early days, the Pawnees didn’t rely entirely—maybe not even mostly—on the meat of the animals they hunted for food. They have always been an agricultural people, farming the land and growing corn, beans, pumpkins, and squashes. They also dug up many edible roots and gathered and dried various berries and other fruits. Additionally, they caught birds and smaller mammals using snares and traps. It’s said that before they got horses, they killed very few [Pg254] buffalo, just enough to meet their needs for clothing and the sinew required for sewing, making bows, and other purposes.
The Pawnees aver that they have cultivated the corn as far back as they can remember. They say also that this is their corn, that it is not the corn of the whites, but is different from it—which is true—and that they did not get it from the whites. It is their own. On this they insist strenuously. I have found it impossible to obtain any clue as to where the corn came from or how they obtained it. To all inquiries on this point, they reply that it must have been “handed down from above;” that it was given them by “the Ruler.” Various stories are told about it, but none of them are very pointed or satisfactory.
The Pawnees claim they've been growing corn for as long as they can remember. They also say that this is their corn, not the corn of the white people, and that it's different—which is true—and that they didn't get it from the whites. It's theirs. They insist on this strongly. I've found it impossible to discover any clues about where the corn originated or how they got it. Whenever I ask about this, they say it must have been "handed down from above;" that it was given to them by "the Ruler." There are various stories about it, but none of them are very clear or satisfying.
They call the corn a-ti´ra, “mother.” It has a sacred character, and plays an important part in many of their religious ceremonies. This name which they give it, the mother corn, no doubt refers to the fact that it nourishes and supports them; that by it they are made strong. I have also heard it said that it is called mother because it produces others; it has young ones like a woman; “you put it in the ground and it brings forth others.”
They call the corn a-ti´ra, “mother.” It has a sacred meaning and plays a key role in many of their religious ceremonies. The name they give it, mother corn, likely refers to the fact that it nourishes and supports them; it makes them strong. I’ve also heard that it’s called mother because it produces others; it has young ones like a woman; “you put it in the ground and it gives birth to others.”
The Pawnees cultivated their fields with hoes [Pg 255] made from the shoulder blade of the buffalo. Taking the ligament from the back of a buffalo’s neck, they lashed a stick firmly to the articulation of the shoulder blade, nearly at right angles to the plane of the bone and to its length. Then, dipping the joint into hot water, the ligament would shrink, and bind the bone and the handle together as firmly as iron.
The Pawnees farmed their fields using hoes [Pg255] crafted from buffalo shoulder blades. They used the ligament from the back of a buffalo's neck to secure a stick tightly to the joint of the shoulder blade, almost at a right angle to both the bone’s surface and its length. Then, by dipping the joint into hot water, the ligament would shrink, bonding the bone and handle together as securely as iron.
Years ago, on the sites of abandoned Pawnee villages, on the Loup Fork and on the Platte, fragments of pottery used to be found among the débris of the fallen lodges. The manufacture of this pottery was no doubt abandoned long ago, and has probably not been practiced to any considerable extent since they met the whites. A man about fifty years of age stated to me that he had never seen these pots in use, but that his grandmother had told him that in her days they made and used them. He said that they were accustomed to smooth off the end of a tree for a mould. A hot fire was then built, in which stones were roasted, which were afterward pounded into fine powder or sand. This pounded stone they mixed with fine clay, and when the material was of the proper consistency, they smeared it over the rounded mould, which was perhaps first [Pg 256] well greased with buffalo tallow. After the clay had been made of even thickness throughout, and smooth on the outside, they took a small, sharp stone, and made marks on the outside to ornament it. When the material was sufficiently dry, they lifted it from the mould and burned it in the fire, and while it was baking, “put corn in the pot and stirred it about, and this made it hard as iron.” This may mean that it gave the pot a glaze on the inside. In these pots they boiled food of all kinds. Mr. Dunbar informs me that these pots were also made in later times within a frame-work of willow twigs. The clay, made very stiff, was smeared on this frame, the inside being repeatedly smoothed with the moistened hand, and but little attention being given to the appearance of the outside. After they had been sun-dried, such pots were baked without removing the frame, which burned away in the fire, leaving the marks of the twigs visible on the outside of the pot.
Years ago, on the sites of abandoned Pawnee villages, along the Loup Fork and the Platte rivers, pieces of pottery used to be found among the remains of fallen lodges. The making of this pottery was likely stopped a long time ago and probably hasn't been done much since they encountered white settlers. A man around fifty years old told me he had never seen these pots in use, but his grandmother had said that in her time, they made and used them. He mentioned that they used to smooth out the end of a tree to create a mold. They would then build a hot fire, roasting stones that were later crushed into fine powder or sand. They mixed this crushed stone with fine clay, and when the mix had the right consistency, they spread it over the rounded mold, which was likely greased first with buffalo tallow. After ensuring the clay was an even thickness and smooth on the outside, they used a small, sharp stone to make decorative marks on the surface. Once the material dried enough, they removed it from the mold and baked it in the fire. While it was cooking, they “put corn in the pot and stirred it around, and this made it hard as iron.” This might indicate that it created a glaze on the inside of the pot. They used these pots to boil all sorts of food. Mr. Dunbar told me that in later times, these pots were also made within a frame of willow twigs. The clay, made very stiff, was spread over this frame, with the inside being smoothed repeatedly with a wet hand while little attention was given to how the outside looked. After sun-drying, these pots were baked without removing the frame, which burned away in the fire, leaving the marks of the twigs visible on the outside of the pot.
Corn was, and is still, crushed in wooden mortars, hollowed out by fire, and the pestle is also of wood, about four feet long, with an enlargement at the upper end to give added weight.
Corn was, and still is, crushed in wooden mortars, carved out by fire, and the pestle is also made of wood, about four feet long, with a thicker part at the top to add weight.
Dishes and bowls were made of wood, or of large gourds; spoons and ladles were fashioned from the [Pg 257] horns of the buffalo; mats were woven of rushes, ropes of buffalo hair, and lariats of rawhide.
Dishes and bowls were made of wood or large gourds; spoons and ladles were crafted from the horns of buffalo; mats were woven from rushes, ropes were made of buffalo hair, and lariats were made of rawhide.
Fire in the early days was obtained by means of fire sticks, the point of one being twirled on a hollow in the other, until the charred dust at first smoked and then ignited. It is said that sometimes it would take four men to make a fire, one relieving another as they grew tired. It was hard, slow work, but sometimes one man, if he was stout, could make a fire alone. The use of fire sticks on war parties has continued till within a short time, perhaps within twenty years.
Fire in the early days was made using fire sticks, where the tip of one was spun against a hollow in the other until the charred dust started to smoke and then catch fire. It’s said that sometimes it would take four men to start a fire, with each one taking turns as they got tired. It was tough and slow work, but sometimes a strong enough man could start a fire by himself. The practice of using fire sticks in war parties has continued until very recently, maybe within the last twenty years.
As their clothing was manufactured wholly from skins, sewing occupied a considerable part of the time of the women. This was done by means of a bone needle—often the metacarpal or metatarsal bone supporting the accessory hooflets on the deer—and a thread twisted of sinews. Such sewing was extremely durable.
As their clothing was made entirely from animal skins, sewing took up a significant amount of the women’s time. They used a bone needle—often the metacarpal or metatarsal bone from the deer’s small toes—and a thread made from twisted sinews. This type of sewing was very durable.
The other implements and utensils of the Pawnees did not differ materially from those of other plains Indians.
The other tools and utensils of the Pawnees didn't differ significantly from those of other Plains Indians.
It is a long time since they first began to use articles and implements manufactured by the whites. Curly Chief related to me the story of what was [Pg 258] perhaps the first official visits from the whites ever received by the Pawnees. He said:
It’s been a while since they first started using tools and equipment made by white people. Curly Chief shared with me the story of what was [Pg258] probably the first official visits from white people ever received by the Pawnees. He said:
“I heard that long ago there was a time when there were no people in this country except Indians. After that the people began to hear of men that had white skins; they had been seen far to the east. Before I was born they came out to our country and visited us. The man who came was from the Government. He wanted to make a treaty with us, and to give us presents, blankets and guns, and flint and steel, and knives.
“I heard that a long time ago, this country was only inhabited by Native Americans. Then, people started hearing about men with white skin who were seen far to the east. Before I was born, they came to our country and met with us. The man who arrived was from the Government. He wanted to make a treaty with us and offered us gifts like blankets, guns, flint and steel, and knives.
“The Head Chief told him that we needed none of these things. He said, ‘We have our buffalo and our corn. These things the Ruler gave to us, and they are all that we need. See this robe. This keeps me warm in winter. I need no blanket.’
“The Head Chief told him that we didn't need any of these things. He said, ‘We have our buffalo and our corn. These things the Ruler gave us, and they are all we need. Look at this robe. It keeps me warm in winter. I don't need a blanket.’”
“The white men had with them some cattle, and the Pawnee Chief said, ‘Lead out a heifer here on the prairie.’ They led her out, and the Chief, stepping up to her, shot her through behind the shoulder with his arrow, and she fell down and died. Then the Chief said, ‘Will not my arrow kill? I do not need your guns.’ Then he took his stone knife and skinned the heifer, and cut off a piece of fat meat. When he had done this he said, ‘Why should I take [Pg 259] your knives? The Ruler has given me something to cut with.’
“The white men had some cattle with them, and the Pawnee Chief said, ‘Bring out a young cow here on the prairie.’ They brought her out, and the Chief stepped up to her, shot her behind the shoulder with his arrow, and she fell down and died. Then the Chief said, ‘Does my arrow not kill? I don’t need your guns.’ He then took his stone knife, skinned the young cow, and cut off a piece of fat meat. After doing this, he said, ‘Why should I take your knives? The Ruler has given me something to cut with.’”
“Then taking the fire sticks, he kindled a fire to roast the meat, and while it was cooking, he spoke again and said, ‘You see, my brother, that the Ruler has given us all that we need; the buffalo for food and clothing; the corn to eat with our dried meat; bows, arrows, knives and hoes; all the implements which we need for killing meat, or for cultivating the ground. Now go back to the country from whence you came. We do not want your presents, and we do not want you to come into our country.’
“Then, grabbing the fire sticks, he started a fire to roast the meat, and while it cooked, he spoke again and said, ‘You see, my brother, the Ruler has provided us with everything we need; the buffalo for food and clothing; the corn to eat with our dried meat; bows, arrows, knives, and hoes; all the tools we need for hunting or farming the land. Now go back to the place you came from. We don’t want your gifts, and we don’t want you coming into our territory.’”
“Afterward, however, a treaty was made. The first treaties were not to purchase land. The Government made presents, and bought the right to pass through the country. Roads were made up the Republican, the Platte and the Solomon rivers.”
“Afterward, though, a treaty was signed. The initial treaties weren’t about buying land. The Government provided gifts and secured the right to travel through the area. Roads were constructed along the Republican, Platte, and Solomon rivers.”
II. EVERY-DAY LIFE.
In these hasty remarks upon the ways of the Pawnees, which are in fact no more than a series of rough notes supplementary to Mr. Dunbar’s fuller history of this people, I shall not attempt to give [Pg 260] any general account of their habits. These can be learned by reference to the papers, so often quoted. My object is to give a picture of the Pawnee ways of thought rather than of their material life.
In these quick thoughts about the Pawnees, which are really just a set of rough notes to go along with Mr. Dunbar’s more detailed history of this group, I won’t try to provide a complete overview of their habits. You can find that information in the frequently cited documents. My goal is to illustrate the Pawnee mindset instead of their material existence.
Their government was semi-republican. They were ruled by a head chief, in later times always the head chief of the Chau-i band; and this title was hereditary, but the chief, if he had not the requisite strength of character, might lose all his influence, and his position be practically, though not in name, held by a sub-chief or even warrior of his own or another band. As has been well said, “The office itself was hereditary, but authority could be gained only by acknowledged personal accomplishments.” Each band was ruled as to its own affairs by four chiefs—a head chief, second chief, third and fourth chiefs—but often some warrior who held no office, and bore no title, might wield more power and influence than any of these. In minor matters, the chief gave his orders without consultation with any one, but more important affairs were usually discussed in council by chiefs, head men and warriors, and the opinion of the assemblage prevailed, even if it were opposed to the opinion of the chief. Among the Pawnees, as elsewhere, a man’s personal character [Pg 261] determined the position he should occupy and the influence he should wield. Bravery, wisdom, and personal popularity were the important factors in acquiring and retaining influence and authority.
Their government was semi-republican. They were led by a head chief, who was always the chief of the Chau-i band in later times; this title was passed down through families. However, if the chief lacked the necessary strength of character, he could lose all his influence, and his position might be effectively, though not officially, held by a sub-chief or even a warrior from his band or another band. As it's been said, “The position itself was hereditary, but authority could only be earned through recognized personal achievements.” Each band was governed in its own matters by four chiefs—a head chief, second chief, third chief, and fourth chief—but sometimes a warrior without any official title could have more power and influence than any of them. In minor matters, the chief would give orders without consulting anyone, but for more significant issues, discussions usually took place in a council with chiefs, respected leaders, and warriors, and the group’s opinion mattered, even if it contradicted the chief's viewpoint. Among the Pawnees, as in other cultures, a man's personal character determined the role he would have and the influence he would carry. Bravery, wisdom, and personal popularity were key factors in gaining and keeping influence and authority.
Mr. Dunbar alludes to one matter which is little understood in general; that is the existence among the Pawnees of a class of servants. These were for the most part young men, or boys growing up, who had not yet acquired any special standing. They lived in the family of men of position and influence, from whom they received support, and for whom they performed many offices, which were almost menial. The relation which they held to the head of the family was not altogether unlike that of a page or a squire to his knight in mediæval times. These young men drove in and saddled the horses, made the fires, ran errands, and carried messages for the leaders whom they followed. The same menial offices were often performed by other, older men, who were too lazy and too worthless to make positions for themselves, and who were willing to continue to serve for their support. This relation of servant persisted even among the Pawnee Scouts after their enlistment, and, while among the privates in this body all were of course equal in name, it was [Pg 262] yet common, as the camp prepared to start in the morning, to see the younger men saddling up the horses, and performing other duties for the chiefs and the proved warriors, whose military standing was no higher than those who were serving them.
Mr. Dunbar mentions something that isn't really understood by most people: the existence of a class of servants among the Pawnees. These were mostly young men or boys who hadn’t yet established their own status. They lived with influential families who provided for them, and in return, they did many tasks that were almost menial. Their relationship with the head of the family was somewhat similar to that of a page or squire to a knight in medieval times. These young men would help saddle the horses, start the fires, run errands, and deliver messages for the leaders they followed. Older men sometimes did the same menial tasks, often because they were too lazy or unworthy to create their own positions, so they chose to keep serving in exchange for support. This servant relationship continued even among the Pawnee Scouts after they enlisted, and although all the privates were technically equal, it was common to see the younger men saddling up the horses and doing other tasks for the chiefs and seasoned warriors, even if their military rank was the same as those they served. [Pg262]
The dress of the old-time Pawnee male consisted of a breech clout, leggings, fringed at the side, and reaching from ankle to thigh, and moccasins. Over all this, when the weather demanded it, was worn the buffalo robe, the hair side being turned in. The dress of the women consisted of a sort of sleeveless shirt, and a skirt of dressed buffalo cow skin, reaching to below the knee, with leggings of cloth or buckskin, laced above the knee, and moccasins. They also wore the robe or blanket. No head covering was used, though in war and on great occasions the men wore bonnets or chaplets of eagle feathers, and sometimes both men and women wove wreaths out of cottonwood or willow twigs, with the green leaves left on, to shade their eyes from the fierce rays of the sun. The children were at first scantily clad. The boy, after he was released from his board, went naked, except perhaps for a string of beads around his neck, until he was ten or twelve years old, though usually he assumed the breech [Pg 263] clout before that age. Girls were clad in a shirt or smock almost as soon as they could walk.
The traditional outfit of the old-time Pawnee man included a breech clout, leggings that were fringed along the sides and extended from the ankle to the thigh, and moccasins. When the weather required it, a buffalo robe, with the fur side facing in, was worn over everything. The women wore a type of sleeveless shirt and a skirt made from dressed buffalo cowhide that reached below the knee, along with leggings of cloth or buckskin that were laced above the knee, and moccasins. They also had robes or blankets. They didn’t wear head coverings, although during war and special occasions, men donned bonnets or chaplets made of eagle feathers. Sometimes both men and women would weave wreaths out of cottonwood or willow twigs, leaving the green leaves on to shield their eyes from the harsh sunlight. Young children were dressed minimally. A boy, after being weaned, typically went without clothes, except for maybe a string of beads around his neck, until he was about ten or twelve years old, although he usually put on a breech clout before that age. Girls would start wearing a shirt or smock almost as soon as they could walk.
At the present time but few of the Pawnees wear their hair cut in the ancient fashion, but twenty years ago a large proportion of the older men had the whole head shaved, except a narrow roach which ran from the forehead to the back of the head. This roach, on which the hair was usually left less than an inch long, was sometimes stiffened at the sides with grease and paint to make it stand up well. From this roach the scalp lock fell back in its natural position. At the present day many of the men cut their hair short, like the whites. The women usually wore their hair in two braids, one on each side, falling behind the ears, and the younger ones were careful in tending it.
Right now, very few Pawnees wear their hair in the traditional style, but twenty years ago, many older men had their heads shaved except for a narrow line of hair that ran from their foreheads to the backs of their heads. This strip of hair, usually kept less than an inch long, was sometimes stiffened on the sides with grease and paint to make it stand up. From this strip, the scalp lock hung down naturally. Nowadays, many men cut their hair short, like white people. The women typically wore their hair in two braids, one on each side, falling behind their ears, and the younger ones paid special attention to how they cared for it.
All hair upon the face and on other parts of the body was usually plucked out, but I have seen a Pawnee with a heavy beard under his chin.
All the hair on the face and other parts of the body was usually removed, but I've seen a Pawnee with a thick beard under his chin.
Paint was freely used in ornamentation, especially on the face and breast. Black, as is the case with most tribes, was the color for war. Red, white and yellow, were used merely for ornament.
Paint was used extensively for decoration, especially on the face and chest. Black, like in most tribes, represented war. Red, white, and yellow were used just for decoration.
As already indicated, the arms of the Pawnees were the bow and arrow, the lance, the club, and the [Pg 264] hatchet. The bow was almost invariably made of the bois d’arc, and was backed with sinew, and had a string of the same material. The arrows were made with the greatest labor, care and exactness, and those manufactured by each individual were so marked that they could at once be distinguished from those of every other maker. It is well known that the arrows of each Indian tribe differed from those of every other tribe, but besides this, each man’s arrows bore his private mark. The manufacture of the bow and arrows was a long, slow process, and after they had been completed they were carefully guarded and protected from injury. Although the Pawnees have long been accustomed to use firearms in war, yet the use of the bow and arrow in hunting persisted up to quite recent times, in fact up to the date of the disappearance of the buffalo. A reason for this is readily found in the fact that an arrow cost only time to manufacture, and the Indian has an abundance of time. For cartridges, or for powder and lead, he must pay money, or trade some of his possessions. An arrow, too, may be used over and over again, and may thus account for many head of game, whereas a cartridge can be used but once. In their secret war expeditions, too, the bow was a favorite [Pg 265] weapon, because it was noiseless. An enemy found at a little distance from his camp, could be stealthily approached and silently shot down, without necessarily alarming persons in the neighborhood, when a rifle shot, ringing over the prairie and echoing among the bluffs, would call out every warrior in the village, to learn whence it came. I have been told, by warriors, that on their war parties, they left their rifles at home and carried only their bows, so that they might not be tempted by the sight of an enemy to fire a shot, which might bring themselves and their companions into danger.
As already mentioned, the weapons of the Pawnees were the bow and arrow, the lance, the club, and the [Pg264] hatchet. The bow was usually made of bois d’arc, reinforced with sinew, and had a string made of the same material. The arrows were crafted with great care and precision, and each individual marked theirs in a way that made them easy to identify. It's well known that arrows from different tribes varied, but on top of that, each man's arrows had his personal mark. Making the bow and arrows was a long, slow process, and once finished, they were carefully protected from damage. Although the Pawnees have long been used to firearms in battle, they continued to use the bow and arrow for hunting until very recently, right up until the buffalo disappeared. This can be easily explained by the fact that making an arrow only takes time, and the Indian has plenty of that. For cartridges, or for powder and lead, he needs to spend money or trade something he owns. An arrow can also be reused multiple times, which means it could account for many animals caught, while a cartridge can only be used once. In their secret war missions, the bow was a preferred weapon because it was silent. An enemy located a short distance from camp could be approached quietly and shot without alerting nearby people, which would happen with a rifle shot ringing across the prairie and reverberating off the bluffs, calling every warrior in the village to investigate. I’ve been told by warriors that on their war parties, they would leave their rifles behind and only carry their bows to avoid being tempted to shoot at an enemy, which could endanger themselves and their companions.
The Pawnees were superb horsemen and owned many ponies. I can learn nothing definite as to when they first obtained these animals, nor from what source. A tradition exists, that up to the time of the tribe’s advent into the northern country, their only beast of burden was the dog, which then carried their packs and hauled their travois. The story goes that the Pawnees obtained their first horses soon after their separation from the Wichitas. The three bands were traveling north together, when the scouts who had been sent ahead to overlook the country, hastened back and announced to the chiefs that they had discovered a camp of Indians. A council was [Pg 266] at once held to determine whether they should attack this unknown village as enemies, or should approach them as friends. The majority declared for an attack, and it was so decided. Approaching under cover as near as possible, the horde of dusky footmen poured over the hills and down into the valley where stood the doomed village. The attack was sudden, fierce, and successful. They killed and captured many of the enemy, and took the camp, while the survivors fled in hopeless confusion. Among the plunder taken were a lot of horses; strange beasts then to the rude Pawnees, and at which they wondered greatly. A captive woman explained to the conquerors that these creatures were good to ride, and useful to pack on. Old men still tell, with a smile, of the ludicrous first attempts of the warriors to ride the horses. This occurrence is said to have taken place on the Smoky Hill River, in what is now Kansas, and the Indians from whom the horses were captured, are understood to have been Cheyennes.
The Pawnees were excellent horsemen and owned many ponies. I can't find any definite information about when they first got these animals or where they came from. There’s a tradition that says that until the tribe moved into the northern area, their only pack animal was the dog, which carried their loads and pulled their travois. The story goes that the Pawnees got their first horses soon after separating from the Wichitas. The three groups were traveling north together when the scouts sent ahead to scout the area quickly returned and told the chiefs they had found a camp of Indians. A council was immediately held to decide if they should attack this unfamiliar village as enemies or approach them as friends. The majority voted for an attack, and that was the decision. Sneaking as close as possible, the group of dark-skinned warriors charged over the hills and into the valley where the targeted village stood. The attack was sudden, fierce, and successful. They killed and captured many of the enemy and took over the camp while the survivors fled in chaos. Among the spoils were several horses; strange animals to the primitive Pawnees, who marveled at them. A captive woman explained to the conquerors that these creatures were great for riding and useful for packing. Older men still smile as they tell the ridiculous stories of the warriors' first attempts to ride the horses. This event is said to have happened on the Smoky Hill River, in what is now Kansas, and the Indians from whom the horses were taken are believed to have been Cheyennes.

COW SKIN LODGE.
Cowhide Lodge.
The permanent habitations of the Pawnees were dirt or sod houses, often of very considerable size. The remains of the old medicine lodge of the Skidi, on the Loup, show it to have been two hundred and [Pg 268] ten feet in diameter. The lodges were circular in form, with walls seven or eight feet high, and the roof rose from these walls to the apex above the center of the lodge, where was the hole for the escape of smoke from the fire, which burned on the floor below. A covered passageway led to the entrance. Around the walls the inmates slept, the beds being partitioned off, and protected in front as well, by a curtain which might be a skin, or a mat woven of reeds or coarse grass. The cooking was all done over the fire in the middle of the lodge. Possessions were stowed away behind the beds, or hung up on the posts which supported the roof.
The permanent homes of the Pawnees were dirt or sod houses, often quite large. The remains of the old medicine lodge of the Skidi, located on the Loup, indicate it was two hundred and ten feet in diameter. The lodges were circular, with walls seven or eight feet high, and the roof sloped from these walls to a peak above the center of the lodge, where there was a hole for smoke to escape from the fire that burned on the floor below. A covered walkway led to the entrance. Around the walls, the residents slept, with beds separated by partitions and protected in front by a curtain, which could be a skin or a mat made from reeds or coarse grass. All cooking was done over the fire in the center of the lodge. Belongings were stored behind the beds or hung on the posts that supported the roof.
On their hunts or when traveling, the Pawnees used the ordinary cow skin lodge of the plains Indians. This was composed of neatly dressed buffalo hides, from which the hair had been removed, set up over a frame-work, made up, usually, of sixteen long slender poles. An opening at the top gave exit to the smoke; and wings, projecting at either side of the smoke hole, and so arranged that their positions could be changed by moving two additional poles on the outside of the lodge, served to regulate the draft, and keep the lodge free from smoke. The inmates slept close to the walls, and [Pg 269] the fire, with the inevitable pot hanging over it, burned in the middle. These lodges were warm, and usually dry, and made good shelters. They were occupied for the greater part of the year, for the Pawnees, after the spring planting was fairly over, usually started at once on their summer hunt, from which they only returned in time to harvest their crops. At the beginning of winter, when the robes were at their best, they made the winter hunt, from which they did not return until toward spring. The planting over, they set out again on the hunt.
On their hunts or while traveling, the Pawnees used the typical cowhide lodge of the plains Indians. This was made of neatly prepared buffalo hides, with the hair removed, set up over a frame usually made of sixteen long, slender poles. An opening at the top allowed the smoke to escape; wings extending on either side of the smoke hole, arranged so that their positions could be adjusted by moving two additional poles on the outside of the lodge, helped manage the draft and kept the lodge smoke-free. The residents slept close to the walls, and the fire, with a pot hanging over it, burned in the middle. These lodges were warm and generally dry, providing good shelter. They were occupied for most of the year because the Pawnees, after completing their spring planting, typically set out on their summer hunt, from which they would return just in time to harvest their crops. At the start of winter, when the robes were at their best, they went on their winter hunt, not returning until near spring. After the planting was done, they headed out on the hunt again.
In their personal intercourse with each other, and with strangers, the Pawnees were kindly and accommodating. I have had little kindnesses unostentatiously done me by Pawnee men, such as I should never expect to receive from white persons not connected with me by ties of blood. In the village, the well-to-do gave freely to those who were poor, and all were very hospitable. They were a light-hearted, merry race, keenly alive to the ridiculous, and very fond of a joke. They were great chatterers, and had about them nothing of the supposed taciturnity of the Indian. Of modesty or delicacy in conversation, as we know it, they had none. Both sexes spoke freely to each other of [Pg 270] matters which are never mentioned in civilized society, and much of their conversation, as well as many of their stories, could not well be printed.
In their interactions with each other and with strangers, the Pawnees were friendly and accommodating. I've received little acts of kindness from Pawnee men that I wouldn't expect from white people who aren't related to me. In the village, those who were well-off generously helped the poor, and everyone was very welcoming. They were a cheerful, fun-loving people, very aware of the absurd, and loved a good joke. They were big talkers and didn’t fit the stereotype of the quiet Indian. There was no modesty or delicacy in their conversations as we know it; both men and women openly discussed topics that would never be brought up in civilized society, and much of their talk, along with many of their stories, wouldn’t be suitable for print.
III. A SUMMER HUNT.
It was in the month of July, 1872. The Pawnees were preparing to start on their semi-annual buffalo hunt, and only the last religious rites remained to be performed before the nation should leave the village for the buffalo range.
It was July 1872. The Pawnees were getting ready to head out on their biannual buffalo hunt, and only the final religious ceremonies needed to be completed before the tribe could leave the village for the buffalo territory.
“Eh, idadi, whoop,” came from without the lodge; and as I replied, “Ehya, whoop,” the sturdy figure of Le-ta-kats-ta´-ka appeared in the doorway.
“Eh, idadi, whoop,” came from outside the lodge; and as I responded, “Ehya, whoop,” the strong figure of Le-ta-kats-ta´-ka showed up in the doorway.
“Lau, idad, tŭt-tū-ta-rik ti-rah-rēk—Come, brother, they are going to dance,” he said, and then he turned and went out.
“Lau, idad, tŭt-tū-ta-rik ti-rah-rēk—Come on, brother, they’re going to dance,” he said, and then he turned and went out.
I rose from the pile of robes on which I had been dozing, and, after rolling them up, strolled out after him. The village seemed deserted, but off toward the medicine lodge, which stood upon its outskirts, I could see a throng of Indians; and a low murmur of voices and of footsteps, the hum which always accompanies any large assemblage, was borne to my ears on the evening breeze. The ceremonies, which [Pg 271] comprised the consecration of the buffalo staves and the buffalo dance, were about to begin. The great dirt lodge was crowded. I pushed my way through the throng of women and boys, who made up the outer circle of spectators, and soon found myself among the men, who made way for me, until I reached a position from which I could see all that was going on within the circle about which they stood.
I got up from the pile of robes I had been napping on, rolled them up, and walked after him. The village felt empty, but over by the medicine lodge at the edge, I could see a crowd of Indians. A low murmur of voices and footsteps, the usual buzz that comes with a big gathering, floated to my ears on the evening breeze. The ceremonies, which included the blessing of the buffalo staves and the buffalo dance, were about to start. The large dirt lodge was packed. I made my way through the crowd of women and boys, who formed the outer circle of onlookers, and soon found myself among the men, who stepped aside for me until I reached a spot where I could see everything happening inside the circle they formed.
For several days the priests and the doctors had been preparing for this solemn religious ceremonial. They had fasted long; earnest prayers had been made to Ti-ra´-wa, and sacrifices had been offered. Now the twelve buffalo skulls had been arranged on the ground in a half-circle, and near them stood the chiefs and doctors, reverently holding in their hands the buffalo staves and sacred bows and arrows, and other implements of the chase. For a little while they stood silent, with bowed heads, but presently one and then another began to murmur their petitions to A-ti-us Ti-ra´-wa, the Spirit Father. At first their voices were low and mumbling, but gradually they became more earnest and lifted their eyes toward heaven. It was impossible to distinguish what each one said, but now and then disjointed [Pg 272] sentences reached me. “Father, you are the Ruler—We are poor—Take pity on us—Send us plenty of buffalo, plenty of fat cows—Father, we are your children—help the people—send us plenty of meat, so that we may be strong, and our bodies may increase and our flesh grow hard—Father, you see us, listen.” As they prayed they moved their hands backward and forward over the implements which they held, and at length reverently deposited them on the ground within the line of buffalo skulls, and then stepped back, still continuing their prayers.
For several days, the priests and doctors had been getting ready for this important religious ceremony. They had fasted for a long time; sincere prayers had been offered to Ti-ra´-wa, and sacrifices had been made. Now, the twelve buffalo skulls were laid out on the ground in a half-circle, and nearby stood the chiefs and doctors, respectfully holding the buffalo staves, sacred bows and arrows, and other hunting gear. They stood silently for a moment, with their heads bowed, but soon, one by one, they began to murmur their requests to A-ti-us Ti-ra´-wa, the Spirit Father. At first, their voices were soft and indistinct, but gradually they became more passionate as they looked up toward the sky. It was hard to make out what each person was saying, but occasionally, fragmented [Pg272] phrases reached me. “Father, you are the Ruler—We are poor—Have mercy on us—Send us lots of buffalo, lots of fat cows—Father, we are your children—help the people—give us plenty of meat, so that we can be strong, our bodies can grow, and our muscles can get tough—Father, you see us, listen.” As they prayed, they moved their hands back and forth over the items they held, and eventually placed them respectfully on the ground within the line of buffalo skulls, then stepped back while continuing their prayers.
It was a touching sight to witness these men calling upon their God for help. All of them had passed middle life, and some were gray-haired, blind and tottering; but they prayed with a fervor and earnestness that compelled respect. They threw their souls into their prayers, and as a son might entreat his earthly father for some great gift, so they plead with Ti-ra´-wa. Their bodies quivered with emotion, and great drops of sweat stood upon their brows. They were thoroughly sincere.
It was a moving sight to see these men calling on their God for help. All of them were middle-aged or older, with some being gray-haired, blind, and unsteady; yet they prayed with a fervor and sincerity that demanded respect. They poured their hearts into their prayers, pleading with Ti-ra´-wa just as a son might ask his earthly father for a significant gift. Their bodies trembled with emotion, and beads of sweat formed on their foreheads. They were completely sincere.
After the last of the articles had been placed upon the ground, their voices grew lower and at length died away. A moment later a drum sounded, and a dozen or twenty young warriors sprang into the circle [Pg 273] and began the buffalo dance. This was kept up without intermission for three days, and as soon as it was over, the tribe moved out of the village on the hunt.
After the last of the items were set on the ground, their voices became quieter and eventually faded away. A moment later, a drumbeat echoed, and a dozen or so young warriors jumped into the circle [Pg273] and started the buffalo dance. This continued non-stop for three days, and as soon as it wrapped up, the tribe left the village to go hunting.
From the village on the Loup, we traveled southward; for in those days the region between the Platte and the Smoky rivers swarmed with buffalo. With the Pawnees were a few Poncas, Omahas and Otoes, so that there were about four thousand Indians in the camp. It was the summer hunt of the tribe. Twice each year the agent permitted them to visit the buffalo range. The meat which they killed and dried on these hunts, the corn and squashes which they grew on their farms, and the small annuities received from the Government, were all they had to subsist on from season to season. Thus the occasion was one of importance to the Indians. Perhaps only the older heads among them fully appreciated its economic interest; but for all it was a holiday time; a temporary escape from confinement. Life on the reservation was monotonous. There was nothing to do except to sit in the sun and smoke, and tell stories of the former glories of the nation; of successful fights with the Sioux and Cheyennes, and of horse stealing expeditions, from [Pg 274] which the heroes had returned with great herds of ponies and much glory. Now, for a little while, they returned to the old free life of earlier years, when the land had been all their own, and they had wandered at will over the broad expanse of the rolling prairie. Now, for a time, it was as it had been before the cornfields of the white man had begun to dot their river bottoms, before the sound of his rifle had made wild their game, before the locomotive’s whistle had shrieked through the still, hot summer air. Half a year’s provision was now to be secured. The comfort—almost the existence—of the tribe for the next six months depended on the accumulation of an abundant supply of dried buffalo meat, and no precaution was omitted to make the hunt successful. It would not do to permit each individual to hunt independently. Indiscriminate buffalo running by six or eight hundred men scattered over the prairie, each one working for himself alone, would result in the killing of some few buffalo, but would terrify and drive away all the others in the neighborhood. This matter was too important to be trusted to chance. The hunting was systematized.
From the village on the Loup, we headed south; back then, the area between the Platte and the Smoky rivers was filled with buffalo. Along with the Pawnees were a few Poncas, Omahas, and Otoes, totaling about four thousand Indians in the camp. It was the tribe's summer hunt. Twice a year, the agent allowed them to visit the buffalo range. The meat they killed and dried during these hunts, along with the corn and squash they grew on their farms, and the small payments from the Government, were all they had to survive from season to season. So, this event was significant for the Indians. Maybe only the older leaders fully understood its economic importance, but for everyone, it was a festive time; a brief escape from confinement. Life on the reservation was dull. There was nothing to do except sit in the sun, smoke, and share stories of the nation’s past victories; of successful battles against the Sioux and Cheyennes, and of horse-stealing missions, where the heroes returned with large herds of ponies and much honor. Now, for a little while, they went back to the old free life of earlier days, when the land was all theirs, and they roamed freely over the vast rolling prairie. It was like it had been before the white man’s cornfields started to cover their river bottoms, before the sound of his rifle scared away their game, and before the whistle of the locomotive pierced the still, hot summer air. They needed to secure half a year’s worth of provisions. The well-being—almost the survival—of the tribe for the next six months depended on gathering a plentiful supply of dried buffalo meat, and every possible measure was taken to ensure a successful hunt. It wouldn’t work to let everyone hunt independently. Randomly chasing buffalo by six or eight hundred men spread out over the prairie, each acting on their own, would result in only a few buffalo being killed but would scare off all the others nearby. This was too important to leave to chance. The hunting was organized.
The government of the hunt was intrusted to the Pawnee soldiers. These were twenty-four warriors [Pg 275] of mature age, not so old as to be unfitted for active work, yet with the fires of early youth somewhat tempered by years of experience; men whose judgment and discretion could at all times be relied on. These soldiers acted under the chiefs, but the practical guidance of the hunt was wholly in their hands. They determined the direction and length of each day’s march, and the spot for camping. They selected the young men who should act as scouts, and arranged all the details of the approach and the charge when a herd of buffalo was discovered large enough to call for a general surround. All the men were under their control, and amenable to their discipline. They did not hesitate to exercise their authority, nor to severely punish any one who committed an act by which the success of the hunt might be imperilled.
The responsibility for the hunt was given to the Pawnee soldiers. These were twenty-four warriors, not too old to be unfit for active duty, but with the enthusiasm of youth balanced by years of experience; men whose judgment and discretion could always be trusted. These soldiers operated under the chiefs, but the practical management of the hunt was entirely in their hands. They decided the direction and distance of each day's march, as well as where to set up camp. They chose the young men to serve as scouts and coordinated all the details of the approach and the charge when a large enough herd of buffalo was found to warrant a full surround. All the men were under their control and subject to their discipline. They didn’t hesitate to assert their authority or to punish anyone who took an action that could jeopardize the hunt's success.
The scouts sent out by the soldiers were chosen from among the younger men. They acted merely as spies, their office was to find the buffalo. They moved rapidly along, far in advance of the marching column, and from the tops of the highest hills carefully scanned the country before them in search of buffalo. If a herd was discerned, they were not to show themselves, nor in any way to alarm it. Having [Pg 276] found the game, their duty was to observe its movement, learn where it was likely to be for the next few hours, and then to report as quickly as possible to the camp. The soldiers then determined what action should be taken. If the news was received late in the day, and the buffalo were at some distance, the camp would probably be moved as near as practicable to where the herd was feeding, and the chase would take place in the early morning. If, on the other hand, the scouts found the herd in the morning, the men would start off at once for the surround, leaving the women to follow, and make camp as near as possible to where the dead buffalo lay.
The scouts sent out by the soldiers were chosen from among the younger men. They acted as spies, with the job of finding the buffalo. They moved quickly ahead of the marching group and from the tops of the highest hills carefully scanned the area before them in search of buffalo. If they spotted a herd, they were not to reveal themselves or alarm the animals. Once they found the game, their duty was to observe its movements, learn where it might be in the next few hours, and then report back to the camp as quickly as possible. The soldiers would then decide what action to take. If they received the news late in the day and the buffalo were far away, the camp would likely be moved as close as possible to where the herd was feeding, and the hunt would happen early in the morning. On the other hand, if the scouts found the herd in the morning, the men would head out immediately to surround it, leaving the women to follow and setting up camp as close as possible to where the dead buffalo lay.
Day after day we traveled southward, crossing the Platte River, and then the Republican about due south of the present flourishing town of Kearney. South of the Platte a few scattering buffalo were found, but no large herds had been met with—nothing that called for a surround. At length we camped one night on the Beaver, a small affluent of the Republican, emptying into it from the south.
Day after day, we traveled south, crossing the Platte River and then the Republican River, straight south of what is now the thriving town of Kearney. South of the Platte, we spotted a few scattered buffalo, but there weren't any big herds—nothing that needed a surround. Finally, one night we set up camp by the Beaver, a small tributary of the Republican that flows into it from the south.
With the gray dawn of morning, the camp, as usual, is astir. By the time our little party have turned out of our blankets, some of the Indians have already [Pg 277] finished eating, and are catching up their horses and preparing to ride off over the bluffs, leaving the squaws to take down the lodges, pack the ponies, and pursue the designated line of march. Before we are ready to “pull out,” most of the ponies have been packed, and a long, irregular line of Indians is creeping across the level valley, and beginning to wind up the face of the bluffs. The procession moves slowly, proceeding at a walk. Most of those who remain with the column are on foot, the squaws leading the ponies, and many of the men, wrapped in their blankets, and with only their bows and arrows on their backs, walking briskly over the prairie, a little to one side. These last are the poorer Indians—those who have but few horses. They travel on foot, letting their horses run without burdens, so that they may be fresh and strong, whenever they shall be needed for running the buffalo.
With the gray dawn of morning, the camp is bustling as usual. By the time our small group has gotten out of our blankets, some of the Indians have already finished eating, and are catching their horses and getting ready to ride off over the bluffs, leaving the women to take down the tents, pack the ponies, and follow the planned route. Before we are ready to leave, most of the ponies have been packed, and a long, uneven line of Indians is moving across the flat valley, starting to wind up the face of the bluffs. The procession moves slowly, at a walk. Most of those who stay with the group are on foot, with the women leading the ponies, while many of the men, wrapped in their blankets and carrying only their bows and arrows, walk briskly over the prairie, a little to one side. These last are the poorer Indians—those with only a few horses. They travel on foot, letting their horses run unburdened, so they can be fresh and strong whenever they are needed for chasing buffalo.
Side by side, at the head of the column, walk eight men who carry the buffalo staves. These are slender spruce poles, like a short lodge-pole, wrapped with blue and red cloth, and elaborately ornamented with bead work, and with the feathers of hawks, and of the war eagle. These sticks are carried by men selected by the chiefs and doctors in private council, [Pg 278] and are religiously guarded. Upon the care of these emblems, and the respect paid to them, depends, in a great measure, the success of the hunt. While borne before the moving column, no one is permitted to cross the line of march in front of them.
Side by side, at the front of the group, walk eight men carrying the buffalo staves. These are slender spruce poles, similar to short lodge poles, wrapped in blue and red cloth, and beautifully decorated with beadwork, as well as feathers from hawks and the war eagle. These staffs are carried by men chosen by the chiefs and medicine men in a private council, [Pg278] and are carefully protected. The success of the hunt greatly relies on how well these symbols are cared for and the respect shown toward them. While they are being carried in front of the moving group, no one is allowed to cross the path in front of them.
Close behind the staff bearers follow a number of the principal men of the tribe; the head chief, old Pi´ta Le-shar, and a dozen or fifteen sub-chiefs or head men, all mounted on superb horses. Behind them comes the camp at large, a fantastically mingled multitude, marching without any appearance of order. Here most of the individuals are women, young girls and children, for the men who accompany the camp usually march singly, or by twos and threes, a little apart from the mob. Most of those rich enough in horses to be able to ride at all times, are scattered over the prairie for miles in every direction, picking up the small bands of buffalo, which have been passed by the scouts as not large enough to call for a general surround. The hunters are careful, however, not to follow too close upon the advance line, whose movements they can readily observe upon the bare bluffs far ahead of them.
Close behind the staff bearers are a number of the tribe's principal men; the head chief, old Pi'ta Le-shar, and about a dozen or fifteen sub-chiefs or leaders, all mounted on magnificent horses. Following them is the main camp, a wildly mixed crowd marching without any sense of order. Here, most of the individuals are women, young girls, and children, while the men who accompany the camp usually walk alone, or in pairs and threes, slightly apart from the crowd. Most of those who are wealthy enough to ride are scattered across the prairie for miles in every direction, tracking small herds of buffalo that the scouts have deemed too small to warrant a full surround. The hunters are careful not to trail too closely behind the advance line, whose movements they can easily see on the bare bluffs far ahead of them.
At the time of which I am writing, the Pawnees [Pg 279] had no wagons, all their possessions being transported on pack horses. The Indian pack pony is apt to be old and sedate, requiring no special guidance nor control. A strip of rawhide, knotted about the lower jaw, serves as a bridle, and is either tied up to the saddle or held in the rider’s hand. In packing the animals a bundle of lodge-poles is tied on either side of the saddle, one end projecting forward toward the horse’s head, the other dragging on the ground behind. This is the travois. Cross poles are often tied between these two dragging bundles, and on these are carried packages of meat and robes. Often, too, on a robe stretched between them, a sick or wounded Indian, unable to ride, is transported. The lodge-poles having been fastened to the saddle, the lodge is folded up and placed on it between them, and blankets, robes, and other articles are piled on top of this, until the horse has on its back what appears to be about as much as it can carry. The pack is then lashed firmly in position, and pots, buckets and other utensils are tied about it wherever there is room.
At the time I'm writing, the Pawnees [Pg279] didn't have any wagons; all their belongings were carried on pack horses. The Indian pack pony tends to be older and calm, needing no special guidance or control. A strip of rawhide, knotted around the lower jaw, acts as a bridle, and is either tied to the saddle or held in the rider's hand. When packing the animals, a bundle of lodge-poles is tied on each side of the saddle, with one end sticking out forward toward the horse's head and the other dragging on the ground behind. This is the travois. Cross poles are often tied between these two dragging bundles, and packages of meat and robes are carried on them. Additionally, a sick or injured Indian, who can't ride, is often transported on a robe stretched between them. Once the lodge-poles are secured to the saddle, the lodge is folded up and placed on it between them, and blankets, robes, and other items are piled on top until the horse looks like it can hardly carry any more. Then the pack is tightly secured, and pots, buckets, and other utensils are tied around it wherever there's space.
On top of the load so arranged one or two women, or three or four children, clamber and settle themselves comfortably there, and the old horse is turned [Pg 280] loose. Each rider carries in her hand a whip, with which she strikes the horse at every step, not cruelly at all, but just from force of habit. If the pack is low, so that her feet reach down to the animal’s sides, she keeps up also a constant drumming on his ribs with her heels. The old horse pays not the slightest attention to any of these demonstrations of impatience, but plods steadily along at a quiet walk, his eyes half closed and his ears nodding at each step. If the riders are women, each one holds a child or two in her arms, or on her back, or perhaps the baby board is hung over the end of a lodge-pole, and swings free. If the living load consists of children, they have in their arms a lot of puppies; for puppies occupy with relation to the small Indian girls the place which dolls hold among the white children. Many of the pack animals are mares with young colts, and these last, instead of following quietly at their mothers’ heels, range here and there, sometimes before and sometimes behind, their dams. They are thus constantly getting lost in the crowd, and then they charge backward and forward in wild affright, neighing shrilly, until they have again found their proper place in the line of march. Many of the yearling colts have very small and light packs [Pg 281] tied on their backs, while the two-year-olds are often ridden by the tiniest of Indian boys, who are now giving them their first lesson in weight-carrying. Loose horses of all ages roam about at will, and their continual cries mingle with the barking of dogs, the calls of women and the yells of boys, and make an unceasing noise.
On top of the arranged load, one or two women, or three or four children, climb up and settle in comfortably, while the old horse is set free. Each rider holds a whip in her hand, giving the horse a tap with it at every step—not out of cruelty, but more out of habit. If the load is low enough for her feet to touch the horse's sides, she also keeps drumming her heels against his ribs. The old horse doesn't pay attention to any of these signs of impatience; he just keeps plodding along at a steady pace, his eyes half-closed and his ears nodding with each step. If the riders are women, each one is holding a child or two in her arms or on her back, or maybe the baby board is hanging over the end of a lodge pole, swinging freely. If the load is made up of children, they're usually holding a bunch of puppies, since puppies take the place of dolls for the little Indian girls. Many of the pack animals are mares with young colts, and instead of staying close to their mothers, the colts wander around haphazardly, sometimes ahead and sometimes behind. They often get lost in the crowd, then rush around in panic, neighing loudly, until they find their place in the line again. Many of the yearling colts have small and light packs tied to their backs, while the two-year-olds are often ridden by the smallest Indian boys, who are now giving them their first lesson in carrying weight. Loose horses of all ages roam around freely, and their constant cries blend with the barking of dogs, the calls of women, and the shouts of boys, creating an almost nonstop noise.
The boys are boiling over with animal spirits, and, like their civilized brothers of the same age, are continually running about, chasing each other, wrestling, shooting arrows and playing games, of which the familiar stick game seems the favorite.
The boys are filled with energy, and, like their civilized peers of the same age, are always running around, chasing each other, wrestling, shooting arrows, and playing games, with the familiar stick game being the favorite.
Whenever the column draws near any cover, which may shelter game, such as a few bushes in a ravine, or the fringe of low willows along some little watercourse, the younger men and boys scatter out and surround it. They beat it in the most thorough manner, and any game which it contains is driven out on the prairie, surrounded and killed. The appearance even of a jackass rabbit throws the boys into a fever of excitement, and causes them to shriek and yell as if in a frenzy.
Whenever the group gets close to any cover that might hide game, like some bushes in a ravine or the edge of low willows by a small stream, the younger men and boys spread out and surround it. They search it thoroughly, and any game inside is pushed out onto the prairie, surrounded, and killed. Even the sight of a jackrabbit sends the boys into a frenzy of excitement, making them scream and shout as if they’re in a wild frenzy.
All the morning I rode with the Indians, either at the head of the column, chatting as best I could with Pi´ta Le-shar and other chiefs, or falling back and [Pg 282] riding among the women and children, whom I never tired of watching. Frequently during the day I saw at a distance, on the prairie, small bunches of buffalo in full flight, hotly pursued by dark-skinned riders, and occasionally two or three men would ride up to the marching columns with heavy loads of freshly-killed meat. The quick-heaving, wet flanks of the ponies told a story of sharp, rapid chases, and their tossing heads and eager, excited looks showed how much interest they took in the hunt.
All morning, I rode with the Indians, either at the front of the group, chatting as best I could with Pi´ta Le-shar and other chiefs, or falling back to ride among the women and children, whom I never got tired of watching. Throughout the day, I frequently spotted small groups of buffalo in full flight on the prairie, being hotly chased by dark-skinned riders. Occasionally, two or three men would ride up to the marching columns, carrying heavy loads of freshly killed meat. The quick, wet flanks of the ponies told a story of fast, intense chases, and their tossing heads and eager, excited expressions showed how much they were invested in the hunt.
The report of firearms was seldom heard. Most of the Indians hunted with the primitive weapon of their forefathers—the bow and arrow. For buffalo running an arrow is nearly as effective as lead. The power of the bow in expert hands is tremendous. Riding within half a dozen yards of the victim’s side, the practiced bowman will drive the dart so far through the body of the buffalo that its shaft may project a foot or more from the opposite side—sometimes indeed may pass quite through. Besides, the bow can be used very rapidly and accurately. I have seen an Indian take a sheaf of six arrows in his hand, and discharge them at a mark more rapidly and with more certainty of hitting his target than I could fire the six barrels of a revolver.
The sound of gunfire was rarely heard. Most of the Indigenous people hunted with the traditional weapon of their ancestors—the bow and arrow. For buffalo, an arrow is almost as effective as a bullet. The power of the bow in skilled hands is incredible. Riding within a few yards of the buffalo, an experienced bowman can drive the arrow deep enough that its shaft may stick out a foot or more on the other side—sometimes even passing right through. Additionally, the bow can be shot very quickly and accurately. I've seen an Indigenous person take a bundle of six arrows in hand and shoot them at a target faster and with more accuracy than I could fire six shots from a revolver.
[Pg 283] It was nearly noon, and I was riding along at the head of the column. I had but one horse, and did not care to wear him out by chasing around over the prairie, preferring to save him for some great effort. We were traveling along a smooth divide between two sets of ravines, which ran off, one to the east and the other to the west. Pi´ta Le-shar had just informed me by signs that we should make camp about two miles further on, by a stream whose course we could trace from where we then were. Suddenly, without the slightest warning, the huge dark bodies of half a dozen buffalo sprang into view, rising out of a ravine on our left not a hundred yards distant. When they saw the multitude before them, they stopped and stared at us.
[Pg283] It was almost noon, and I was riding at the front of the group. I had only one horse with me, and I didn’t want to tire him out by running around on the prairie, so I preferred to save him for something important. We were traveling along a smooth ridge between two sets of ravines, one leading east and the other west. Pi´ta Le-shar had just communicated to me through gestures that we should set up camp about two miles ahead, by a stream that we could see from where we were. Suddenly, without any warning, the large dark shapes of half a dozen buffalo appeared, rising up from a ravine to our left, less than a hundred yards away. When they saw the crowd in front of them, they stopped and stared at us.
They were too close for me to resist the temptation to pursue. As I lifted the reins from my pony’s neck and bent forward, the little animal sprang into a sharp gallop toward the game, and as he did so I saw half a dozen Indians shoot out from the column and follow me. The buffalo wheeled, and in an instant were out of sight, but when I reached the edge of the bank down which they had plunged, I could see through the cloud of dust, which they left behind them, their uncouth forms dashing down the ravine. [Pg 284] My nimble pony, as eager for the race as his rider, hurled himself down the steep pitch, and sped along the narrow broken bed of the gully. I could feel that sometimes he would lengthen his stride to leap wide ditches, where the water from some side ravine had cut away the ground, but I never knew of these until they were passed. My eyes were fixed on the fleeing herd; my ears were intent on the pursuing horsemen. Close behind me I could hear the quick pounding of many hoofs, and could feel that one of the horses, nearer than the rest, was steadily drawing up to me—but I was gaining on the buffalo. Already the confused rumble of their hoof-beats almost drowned those of the horses behind me, and the air was full of the dust and small pebbles thrown up by their hurrying feet. But they were still ahead of me, and the gulch was so narrow that I could not shoot. The leading horseman drew nearer and nearer, and was now almost at my side. I could see the lean head and long, slim neck of his pony under my right arm, and could hear the rider speak to his horse and urge him forward in the race. My horse did his best, but the other had the most speed. He shot by me, and a moment later was alongside the last buffalo.
They were too close for me to resist chasing them. As I lifted the reins from my pony's neck and leaned forward, the little animal took off at a sharp gallop toward the game, and as he did, I saw half a dozen Indians break away from the group and follow me. The buffalo turned, and in an instant, they were out of sight, but when I reached the edge of the bank they had plunged down, I could see through the cloud of dust they left behind, their awkward forms racing down the ravine. [Pg284] My eager pony, just as excited for the chase as I was, hurled himself down the steep slope and sped along the narrow, rocky bed of the gully. I could feel him sometimes stretch his stride to jump wide ditches, where the water from some side ravine had eroded the ground, but I never noticed these until we had already passed them. My eyes were focused on the fleeing herd, and my ears were tuned to the horsemen pursuing us. Close behind, I could hear the rapid pounding of many hooves and could feel that one of the horses, closer than the others, was steadily catching up to me—but I was gaining on the buffalo. Already, the chaotic sound of their hoofbeats nearly drowned out the horses behind me, and the air was filled with the dust and small pebbles kicked up by their hurried feet. However, they were still ahead of me, and the gulch was so narrow that I couldn't shoot. The leading horseman closed in closer and closer, almost alongside me now. I could see the lean head and long, slim neck of his pony under my right arm, and I could hear the rider speaking to his horse and urging him on in the race. My horse gave it his all, but the other had more speed. He shot past me, and a moment later was alongside the last buffalo.
As he passed me the young Indian made a laughing [Pg 285] gesture of triumph, slipped an arrow on his bowstring, and drew it to its head; but just as he was about to let it fly, his horse, which was but a colt, took fright at the huge animal which it had overtaken, and shied violently to the right, almost unseating its rider. At the same moment the buffalo swerved a little to the left, and thus lost a few feet. Truly, the race is not always to the swift. As I passed the Indian, I could not restrain a little whoop of satisfaction, and then swinging my rifle around, I fired. The buffalo fell in its stride, tossing up a mighty cloud of the soft yellow earth, and my pony ran by him fifty yards before he could be checked. Then I turned and rode back to look at the game. The other Indians had passed me like a whirlwind, and, close at the heels of the herd, had swept around a point of bluff and out of sight. Only my rival remained, and he was excitedly arguing with his horse. The logic of a whip-handle, applied with vigor about the creature’s ears, convinced it that it must approach the dead buffalo; and then the rider dismounting, and passing his lariat about the animal’s horns, drew the pony’s head to within a few feet of the terrifying mass, and fastened the rope. When he had accomplished this, he grinned pleasantly at [Pg 286] me, and I responded in kind, and in dumb show transferred to him all my right and title in the dead buffalo. At this he smiled still more cheerfully, and set to work “butchering.”
As he passed me, the young Indian made a laughing gesture of triumph, slipped an arrow onto his bowstring, and drew it back; but just as he was about to let it go, his horse, still just a colt, got scared by the huge animal it had caught up to and suddenly jumped to the right, almost throwing him off. At the same time, the buffalo shifted slightly to the left and lost a few feet of ground. Truly, the race doesn't always go to the swift. As I passed the Indian, I let out a little whoop of satisfaction, then swung my rifle around and took a shot. The buffalo fell as it ran, kicking up a huge cloud of soft yellow earth, and my pony ran past it for about fifty yards before I could pull it back. Then I turned and rode back to check out my catch. The other Indians had sped past me like a whirlwind and, closely following the herd, swept around a bluff and out of sight. Only my rival was left, and he was excitedly arguing with his horse. The convincing logic of a whip-handle, applied energetically around the animal’s ears, made it feel it had to approach the dead buffalo; then, dismounting, he looped his lariat around the animal’s horns, pulled his pony’s head within a few feet of the frightening mass, and tied the rope. Once he had done this, he flashed me a friendly grin, and I smiled back, silently transferring all my rights to the dead buffalo to him. At this, he smiled even more cheerfully and got to work “butchering.”
The animal was a superb specimen, just entering his prime, and was fat, round and sleek. His horns were symmetrically curved and beautifully polished. Not a scratch marred their shining surfaces, nor a splinter was frayed from their sharp points. The sweeping black beard was long and full, and the thick curls upon his hump and massive shoulders were soft and deep, while the short hair of his sides and hips was smooth as the coat of a horse. His size was enormous. It seemed that he would have turned the scale at quite two thousand pounds. Certainly his weight exceeded that of both the fifteen-hand ponies that stood beside him.
The animal was an impressive specimen, just entering its prime, and was fat, round, and sleek. Its horns were symmetrically curved and beautifully polished. Not a scratch marred their shiny surfaces, nor was there a frayed splinter from their sharp points. The long, full black beard swept down, and the thick curls on its hump and massive shoulders were soft and deep, while the short hair on its sides and hips was as smooth as a horse's coat. Its size was enormous. It seemed like it would weigh close to two thousand pounds. Definitely, its weight surpassed that of both the fifteen-hand ponies standing beside it.
A few moments later, I was again in the saddle, and riding on along the course taken by the remaining buffalo, for I was anxious to see what had become of them. On rounding the point of the bluff, where I had last seen them, my curiosity was satisfied. The valley here widened out until it was perhaps sixty yards across, and on either side rose vertical bluffs of yellow chalk to a height of forty [Pg 287] feet. Scattered about over the little plain, lay half a dozen buffalo, over each of which bent one or two Indians busily plying the knife. At the foot of the bluff at one side of the valley stood four or five others, looking at a cow, perched on a narrow shelf ten feet below the top. I shall never understand how that animal reached the position it occupied. There was evidently no way of getting to it except by jumping up from below, which was obviously impossible—or down from above, which seemed out of the question. The shelf was so short that the animal could move neither backward nor forward, and was just wide enough for it to stand on. As I rode up and joined the little group below it, the head and shoulders of a middle-aged Indian appeared over the top of the bluff, above the cow. He lay down flat on his breast, and holding in both hands an old-fashioned muzzle-loading pistol, attempted to shoot the cow from above, but his old arm would not go off. He snapped it half a dozen times, and then, discouraged, called out something to us below. One of the boys turned to me, and said very slowly and distinctly, “He say, you shoot.” I therefore dismounted, and fired at the cow, which responded by shaking her head angrily, and whisking her short tail. Another [Pg 288] call came from the old fellow on top of the bluff, and the young man said to me, “He say, you hit her; right spot.” A moment later, the cow bent forward and fell on her knees, and the Indian above dropped down on her back.
A few moments later, I was back in the saddle, riding along the path taken by the remaining buffalo, eager to see what had happened to them. As I rounded the point of the bluff where I had last spotted them, my curiosity was satisfied. The valley here widened to about sixty yards across, and on both sides rose steep bluffs of yellow chalk, reaching forty feet high. Scattered across the small plain were half a dozen buffalo, with one or two Indians each, busy using their knives. At the foot of the bluff on one side of the valley stood four or five others, looking at a cow that was perched on a narrow ledge ten feet below the top. I'll never understand how that animal ended up there. There was clearly no way for it to get to its position except by jumping up from below, which was obviously impossible, or down from above, which seemed out of the question. The ledge was so small that the animal couldn't move backward or forward—it was just wide enough for it to stand on. As I rode up and joined the small group below, the head and shoulders of a middle-aged Indian appeared over the top of the bluff, above the cow. He lay flat on his stomach, holding an old-fashioned muzzle-loading pistol, trying to shoot the cow from above, but the gun wouldn’t fire. He snapped the trigger a half dozen times, and then, frustrated, called out something to us below. One of the boys turned to me and said slowly and clearly, “He says you shoot.” So I dismounted and fired at the cow, which responded by shaking her head angrily and swishing her short tail. Another call came from the old man on top of the bluff, and the young man said to me, “He says you hit her; right spot.” A moment later, the cow bent forward and fell to her knees, and the Indian above dropped down onto her back.
Turning my horse’s head in the direction from which I had come, I rode up through a side ravine on to the high prairie. A mile away I could see the column of marching Indians, plodding along at their old slow pace. Here and there, over the rolling hills, dark forms were visible, some of them in rapid motion, others apparently stationary. Often it was impossible to determine whether these figures were horsemen or buffalo, but sometimes, far away, I could see a mimic chase in which pursuer and pursued appeared no larger than ants.
Turning my horse's head back toward where I'd come from, I rode up through a side ravine onto the high prairie. A mile away, I could see a group of marching Indians, moving along at their usual slow pace. Here and there, over the rolling hills, dark shapes were visible, some moving quickly while others seemed to be still. Often, it was tough to tell if these figures were horsemen or buffalo, but sometimes, in the distance, I could see a mock chase where the pursuer and the pursued looked no bigger than ants.
As I came up with the Indians, they were just descending into the stream bottom, where camp was to be made. The small boys had, as usual, dispersed themselves over the valley and among the underbrush. Many of the squaws, leaving the ponies and packs to their sister-wives or children, were hurrying up or down the stream to gather wood. Already the leading ponies were being relieved of their loads. Suddenly, from the mouth of a little ravine coming [Pg 289] down into the stream bottom, rose a chorus of shrill yelps and shrieks from childish throats, and a gang of wild turkeys were seen, running rapidly through the high grass toward the hills. A moment later, with a loud quit-quit of alarm, they took wing, but not before several of their number had fallen before the missiles of the boys. Most of them went up or down the creek, but one inexperienced bird took its course directly over our heads.
As I met up with the Native Americans, they were just heading down into the creek area where they planned to camp. The young boys had, as usual, spread themselves throughout the valley and among the bushes. Many of the women, leaving the ponies and supplies to their sister-wives or kids, were rushing up or down the creek to collect some firewood. Already, the lead ponies were being unloaded. Suddenly, from the mouth of a small ravine that led into the creek, a loud chorus of high-pitched yelps and screams erupted from the children’s voices, and a group of wild turkeys was spotted, scurrying quickly through the tall grass toward the hills. A moment later, with a loud quit-quit of alarm, they flew away, but not before several of them fell to the boys' throws. Most of the turkeys flew up or down the creek, but one inexperienced bird flew directly over us.
Those who have seen the Indian only on dress parade, talk of his stolidity, impassiveness, and his marvelous control over his countenance and his emotions. This demeanor he can and does assume, and when he is with white men, or among strangers, he is usually all that he has been pictured; but take him by himself, and he expresses his feelings with as little restraint as a child. So it was now. No grave chief, nor battle-scarred warrior, nor mighty worker of ti-war´-uks-ti (magic) was too dignified to express his interest at the appearance of this great bird sailing laboriously along, thirty or forty feet above him. It was as if the turkey had flown over a great company of schoolboys, and the utter abandonment of the excited multitude, the entire absence of restraint, the perfect naturalness of the expression of feeling, [Pg 290] had in them something very delightful and infectious. Every Indian, who held in his hand anything that was light enough to throw, hurled it at the bird, and a cloud of whips, sticks, hatchets, fleshers, and arrows, rose to meet it as it passed along. One missile knocked from its tail a few long feathers, which drifted slowly down on the heads of the people. It kept on, but before it had passed beyond the long line of Indians extending back over the plain, its strength became exhausted, it came to the ground, and was at once dispatched by those nearest to it.
Those who have only seen the Indian during formal events talk about his calmness, emotionless expression, and amazing ability to control his face and feelings. He can maintain this demeanor, especially around white people or strangers; however, when he's alone, he shows his emotions as freely as a child. This was evident now. No serious chief, battle-hardened warrior, or powerful magic practitioner was too proud to show his excitement at the sight of this large bird slowly flying overhead, about thirty or forty feet up. It was like a turkey passing over a group of enthusiastic schoolboys; the sheer enthusiasm of the crowd, their total lack of restraint, and the completely natural way they expressed their feelings had a truly delightful and contagious quality. Every Indian who had something light enough to throw launched it at the bird, creating a cloud of whips, sticks, hatchets, and arrows that soared toward it. One object knocked several long feathers from its tail, which floated gently down onto the heads of the crowd. The bird continued flying, but before it passed the long line of Indians stretching back across the plain, it became exhausted, landed, and was quickly taken down by those closest to it.
Almost before the turkey’s fate had been decided, many of the lodges had been pitched, and now the slender gray columns from a hundred camp-fires began to climb up through the still air toward the blue above. The women were hard at work cooking, or spreading out freshly killed robes, or putting up drying scaffolds, while the men lounged in the shade and smoked or chatted. Our wagon was halted at one side of the camp, and the tired horses and mules stripped of saddles and harness, and picketed near at hand. The Indian pack ponies were collected and driven off on the upland in charge of several boys.
Almost before the turkey’s fate was decided, many of the lodges were set up, and now the thin gray columns from a hundred campfires began to rise into the still air toward the blue sky above. The women were busy cooking, spreading out freshly killed animal skins, or setting up drying racks, while the men relaxed in the shade, smoking or chatting. Our wagon was parked on one side of the camp, with the tired horses and mules stripped of their saddles and harnesses, tied up nearby. The Indian pack ponies were gathered together and taken off to the upland, supervised by several boys.
[Pg 291] We had invitations to eat meat at several lodges that day. Usually we did not accept these freely proffered hospitalities, because we had no means of returning them, but one of these invitations came from a particular friend, and to-day we broke through our rule. We feasted on roast ribs, ka´wis, and dried meat, and really had a delightful time. It was about three o’clock when we finished the meal, and we were lounging about the lodge, smoking and chatting, in lazy after-dinner fashion, when we were startled by a series of yells and shouts, among which I distinguished the words “Cha´-ra-rat wa-ta´—The Sioux are coming.” Our Indian companions snatched up their arms, and rushed out of the lodge, and we were not slow in following. “Sūks-e-kitta-wit wĭs-kūts—Get on your horses quick,” shouted our host. The camp was in a state of wild excitement. Naked men were running to their horses, and jerking their lariats from the picket pins, sprang on their backs and rode hard for the hills; while women and boys rushed about, catching horses, and bringing them in among the lodges, where they were securely fastened. Less than a mile away, we saw the horse herd dashing along at top speed, and a little to one side of it a horseman [Pg 292] riding in circles, and waving his blanket before him. It was evident that the Sioux were trying to run off the herd. We ran as hard as we could to the wagon, caught up rifles and cartridge belts, and buckling on the latter as we ran, kept on to the horses. There was no time to saddle up. We looped the ropes around their jaws, sprang on their naked backs, and were off. As we rode up on the prairie, the herd of ponies thundered by, and swept down the bluffs to the camp. The rolling expanse before us was dotted with Indians, each one urging forward his horse to its utmost speed. Many of them were already a long way in advance, and were passing over the furthest high bluff, which seemed to rise up and meet the sky. Hard as we might push our ponies, there was little hope that we would be in time to have any hand in the encounter—if one took place—between the Pawnees and their hereditary foes.
[Pg291] That day, we received multiple invitations to have meat at various lodges. Normally, we didn't accept these generous offers because we couldn't reciprocate, but one of the invitations was from a close friend, so we decided to break our rule. We enjoyed a feast of roast ribs, ka´wis, and dried meat, and had an amazing time. It was around three o'clock when we finished the meal and were relaxing in the lodge, smoking and chatting lazily after lunch, when we were jolted by a series of loud yells and shouts. I recognized the words “Cha´-ra-rat wa-ta´—The Sioux are coming.” Our Indian friends grabbed their weapons and rushed out of the lodge, and we quickly followed. “Sūks-e-kitta-wit wĭs-kūts—Get on your horses fast,” shouted our host. The camp was in chaos. Naked men were sprinting to their horses, pulling their lariats from the picket pins, jumping onto their backs, and galloping hard for the hills. Meanwhile, women and boys were running around, catching horses and bringing them into the lodges, where they secured them. Less than a mile away, we saw the herd of horses racing at full speed, and slightly off to the side, a rider was circling around, waving his blanket. It was clear that the Sioux were trying to steal the herd. We sprinted to the wagon, grabbed our rifles and cartridge belts, and buckled the belts on while running towards the horses. There was no time to saddle them up. We looped ropes around their jaws, jumped onto their bare backs, and took off. As we rode onto the prairie, the herd of ponies thundered by and rushed down the bluffs toward the camp. The vast landscape ahead was filled with Indians, each urging their horse to run as fast as possible. Many were already far ahead, crossing over the distant high bluff that seemed to touch the sky. No matter how hard we pushed our ponies, there was little chance we would arrive in time to take part in the potential encounter between the Pawnees and their long-time enemies. [Pg292]
We kept on until we reached the crest of the high bluff. From here we could see far off over the plain, dozens of black dots strung out after one another. Nearer at hand, other Indians, whose steeds, like ours, had proved too slow for the swift pursuit, were riding back toward us, showing in their faces the disappointment which they felt at being left behind. [Pg 293] With these we turned about, and rode toward the camp. Among them was one of the herd boys, for the moment a hero, who had to repeat his story again and again. He had been sitting on top of a hill, not far from the horses, when he discovered several Sioux stealing toward them through a ravine. Signaling his comrades, they succeeded in getting the herd in motion before the robbers had approached very close to them. Eight of the slowest horses had dropped behind during the flight, and had no doubt fallen into the hands of the enemy.
We kept going until we reached the top of the high bluff. From there, we could see far across the plain, dozens of black dots lined up in a row. Closer to us, other Indians, whose horses, like ours, were too slow for the fast chase, were riding back toward us, their faces showing the disappointment of being left behind. [Pg293] With them, we turned around and rode back to the camp. Among them was one of the herd boys, momentarily a hero, who had to tell his story over and over. He had been sitting on top of a hill, not far from the horses, when he spotted several Sioux sneaking toward them through a ravine. By signaling his fellow riders, they managed to get the herd moving before the robbers got too close. Eight of the slowest horses had fallen behind during the escape and were likely captured by the enemy.
One by one, the Indians came straggling back to camp during the afternoon and evening, but it was not until late that night that the main body of the pursuers came in. They had ten extra horses, two of which they had taken in turn from the Sioux. They had no scalps, however, for they had been unable to overtake the enemy.
One by one, the Indians returned to camp throughout the afternoon and evening, but it wasn't until late that night that the main group of pursuers arrived. They brought back ten extra horses, two of which they had taken from the Sioux. However, they had no scalps since they weren't able to catch up to the enemy.
Long we sat that night by the fire in Pi´ta Le-shar’s lodge, talking over the exciting event of the afternoon; and as we rose to go to our wagons, and said good night, the old man, who had been silently gazing into the coals for some time, looked up at me and smiled, saying, “Wa-ti-hes ti-kōt-it ti-ra-hah—To-morrow we will kill buffalo.”
Long we sat that night by the fire in Pi´ta Le-shar’s lodge, talking about the exciting events of the afternoon; and as we got up to head to our wagons and said goodnight, the old man, who had been quietly staring into the coals for a while, looked up at me and smiled, saying, “Wa-ti-hes ti-kōt-it ti-ra-hah—Tomorrow we will kill buffalo.”
[Pg 294] When we turned out of our blankets the next morning, a heavy mist hung over the prairie. This was unfortunate, for so long as the fog lasted it would be impossible for the scouts to see far enough to discover the buffalo. The first few hours of the march were uneventful. Once or twice the huge bodies of a small band of buffalo loomed up through the white mist about us, their size and shape greatly exaggerated and distorted by its deceptive effect. As the sun climbed toward the zenith, the air grew brighter, and by mid-day the fog had risen from the ground, and though still clinging in white cottony wreaths about the tops of the higher bluffs near us, we now could see for quite a long distance over the prairie. A little later the sun burst forth, and the sky became clear. Soon after noon we went into camp.
[Pg294] When we crawled out of our blankets the next morning, a thick mist hung over the prairie. This was unfortunate because as long as the fog lasted, the scouts wouldn't be able to see far enough to spot the buffalo. The first few hours of the march were uneventful. Once or twice, the massive figures of a small group of buffalo appeared through the white mist around us, their size and shape significantly exaggerated and distorted by its misleading effect. As the sun rose higher in the sky, the air became brighter, and by midday, the fog had lifted from the ground. Although it still clung in white, fluffy clouds around the tops of the higher bluffs nearby, we were now able to see a considerable distance over the prairie. A little later, the sun broke through, and the sky cleared up. Soon after noon, we set up camp.
We had but just begun our dinner, when a runner was seen coming at full gallop down the bluffs. It was one of the scouts. He dashed through the village, and did not check his pony’s speed until he had reached old Pi´ta Le-shar’s lodge. Here he stopped, and bending from his horse spoke a few words very earnestly, gesticulating and pointing back over the prairie in the direction whence he had [Pg 295] come. As he rode on and past us, he called out, “Te-co´di tŭt-tu-ta-rik ti-ra-hah—I saw many buffalo,” and we shouted back to him, “Tū-ra-heh—It is good.”
We had just started our dinner when we saw a runner coming down the bluffs at full speed. It was one of the scouts. He raced through the village and didn’t slow his pony until he reached old Pi´ta Le-shar’s lodge. Here, he stopped, leaned down from his horse, and spoke a few words very earnestly, gesturing and pointing back over the prairie in the direction he had come from. As he rode past us, he called out, “Te-co´di tŭt-tu-ta-rik ti-ra-hah—I saw many buffalo,” and we shouted back to him, “Tū-ra-heh—It is good.”
At once the women began to take down the lodges and pack the ponies. Buffalo had been discovered about fifteen miles to the southwest, and orders had been issued to move the village to the creek on which they were feeding, while the men should go on at once and make the surround. Our teamster, to whom the Indians had already, from his occupation, given the name “Jackass Chief,” was directed to move with the camp; and leaving everything save guns and ammunition belts in the wagons, we joined the crowd of men who were riding out of the village.
At once, the women began taking down the lodges and packing the ponies. Buffalo had been found about fifteen miles to the southwest, and orders were given to move the village to the creek where they were feeding, while the men would head out immediately to set up the surround. Our teamster, who had already earned the nickname “Jackass Chief” from the Indians because of his job, was instructed to move with the camp. Leaving everything behind except for guns and ammunition belts in the wagons, we joined the group of men riding out of the village.
The scene that we now beheld was such as might have been witnessed here a hundred years ago. It is one that can never be seen again. Here were eight hundred warriors, stark naked, and mounted on naked animals. A strip of rawhide, or a lariat, knotted about the lower jaw, was all their horses’ furniture. Among all these men there was not a gun nor a pistol, nor any indication that they had ever met with the white men. For the moment they had put aside whatever they had learned of civilization. Their bows and arrows they held in [Pg 296] their hands. Armed with these ancestral weapons, they had become once more the simple children of the plains, about to slay the wild cattle that Ti-ra´-wa had given them for food. Here was barbarism pure and simple. Here was nature.
The scene we were witnessing looked like something that could have been seen a hundred years ago. It’s something that will never be seen again. There were eight hundred warriors, completely naked, riding bareback on their animals. The only thing their horses had was a strip of rawhide or a lariat tied around their lower jaw. Among all these men, there wasn’t a gun or a pistol, nor any sign that they had ever encountered white people. For that moment, they had set aside everything they had learned about civilization. They held their bows and arrows in their hands. Armed with these traditional weapons, they had transformed back into the simple children of the plains, ready to hunt the wild cattle that Ti-ra´-wa had given them for food. This was pure and simple barbarism. This was nature.
A brief halt was made on the upper prairie, until all the riders had come up, and then, at a moderate gallop, we set off. A few yards in advance rode the twenty-four soldiers, at first curbing in their spirited little steeds, till the horses’ chins almost touched their chests, and occasionally, by a simple motion of the hand, waving back some impetuous boy, who pressed too close upon them. Many of the Indians led a spare horse, still riding the one that had carried them through the day. Often two men would be seen mounted on the same animal, the one behind having the lariats of two led horses wound about his arm. Here and there a man, with his arm over the horse’s neck, would run along on foot by the side of the animal which was to serve him in the charge.
A brief stop was made on the upper prairie until all the riders caught up, and then, at a steady gallop, we took off. A few yards ahead rode the twenty-four soldiers, initially holding back their eager little horses, until the horses’ chins were almost touching their chests, and occasionally, with a simple wave of the hand, signaling back an eager boy who got too close. Many of the Indians led an extra horse while still riding the one they had used throughout the day. Often, two men would be seen riding the same horse, with the one behind having the ropes of two led horses wrapped around his arm. Here and there, a man, with his arm over the horse’s neck, would run alongside the animal that was to carry him into the charge.
As we proceeded, the pace became gradually a little more rapid. The horses went along easily and without effort. Each naked Indian seemed a part of his steed, and rose and fell with it in the rhythmic swing of its stride. The plain was peopled with [Pg 297] Centaurs. Out over each horse’s croup floated the long black hair of his rider, spread out on the wings of the breeze. Gradually the slow gallop became a fast one. The flanks of the horses showed here and there patches of wet, which glistened in the slanting rays of the westering sun. Eight, ten, a dozen miles had been left behind us, and we were approaching the top of a high bluff, when the signal was given to halt. In a moment every man was off his horse, but not a pony of them all showed any sign of distress, nor gave any evidence of the work he had done, except by his wet flanks and his slightly accelerated breathing. Two or three of the soldiers rode up nearly to the top of the hill, dismounted and then peered over, and a moment later, at another signal, all mounted and the swift gallop began again. Over the ridge we passed, down the smooth slope, and across a wide level plain, where the prairie dogs and the owls and the rattlesnakes had their home. Through the dog town we hurried on thundering hoofs, no doubt amazing the dogs, and perhaps even arousing some slight interest in the sluggish, stupid snakes. Bad places these to ride through at such a pace, for a little carelessness on your horse’s part might cost him a broken leg and you an ugly tumble. But no one took much [Pg 298] thought of dog town or horse or possible accident, for the minds of all were upon the next high ridge, behind which we felt sure that the buffalo would be found.
As we moved along, the pace gradually picked up a bit. The horses cruised effortlessly. Each barebacked Indian seemed connected to his horse, rising and falling in sync with its rhythm. The plains were filled with [Pg297] Centaurs. The long black hair of each rider flowed behind them in the breeze. Slowly, the steady gallop turned into a fast one. Here and there, the horses' sides glistened with wetness under the slanting rays of the setting sun. We had covered eight, ten, a dozen miles, and as we neared the top of a high bluff, we were signaled to stop. In an instant, every man was off his horse, but all the ponies showed no signs of distress or evidence of their exertion, other than their damp flanks and slightly quicker breathing. A few soldiers rode close to the hilltop, got off, and looked over. Moments later, at another signal, everyone got back on, and the swift gallop resumed. We crossed over the ridge, down the smooth slope, and across a wide, flat plain where prairie dogs, owls, and rattlesnakes lived. We thundered through the dog town, likely surprising the dogs and maybe even catching the sluggish snakes’ attention. It wasn't the safest place to ride at such speed; a little mistake from your horse could result in a broken leg for it and a nasty fall for you. But nobody thought much about the dog town, the horses, or any potential accidents; everyone was focused on the next high ridge, beyond which we were sure the buffalo would be found.
And so it proved. Just before reaching it we were again halted. Two of the soldiers reconnoitered, and then signaled that the buffalo were in sight. The tired horses were now turned loose and the extra ones mounted. As we rode slowly up over the ridge, we saw spread out before us a wide valley black with buffalo. Two miles away, on the other side, rose steep ragged bluffs, up which the clumsy buffalo would make but slow progress, while the ponies could run there nearly as fast as on level ground. It was the very place that would have been chosen for a surround.
And that's exactly what happened. Just before we got there, we were stopped again. Two soldiers scouted ahead and then signaled that they spotted buffalo. The tired horses were let loose, and the extras were saddled up. As we slowly rode over the ridge, we saw a wide valley before us, filled with buffalo. Two miles away, on the other side, steep, jagged bluffs rose, which the heavy buffalo would struggle to climb, while the ponies could sprint up there almost as quickly as they would on flat ground. It was the perfect spot for a surround.
At least a thousand buffalo were lying down in the midst of this amphitheater. Here and there, away from the main herd on the lower hills, were old bulls, singly and by twos and threes, some of them quietly chewing the cud, others sullenly pawing up the dust, or grinding their battered horns into the yellow dirt of the hillsides. Not the slightest notice was taken of us as we rode down the slope at a pace that was almost a run, but still held in check by the soldiers. [Pg 299] The orders for the charge had not yet been given. Our line was now much more extended than it had been; each man pressing as far forward as he dared, and those on either flank being so far ahead of the center that they were almost on a line with the soldiers. We had covered perhaps half the distance between the hilltop and the buffalo, when some of the outlying bulls seemed to observe us, and after looking for a moment or two, these started in rapid flight. This attracted the attention of the herd, and when we were yet half a mile from them, they took the alarm. At once all were on their feet. For a moment they gazed bewildered at the dark line that was sweeping toward them, and then, down went every huge head and up flew every little tail, and the herd was off in a headlong stampede for the opposite hills. As they sprang to their feet, the oldest man of the soldiers, who was riding in the center of the line, turned back toward us, and uttered a shrill Loo´-ah! It was the word we had waited for.
At least a thousand buffalo were lying down in the middle of this natural arena. Here and there, away from the main herd on the lower hills, were old bulls, some alone and others in pairs or small groups, with some quietly chewing their food, while others sullenly kicked up the dust or rubbed their worn horns into the yellow dirt of the hillsides. Not a single buffalo paid any attention to us as we rode down the slope at a pace that was almost a run, but still held back by the soldiers. [Pg299] The orders for the charge hadn't been given yet. Our line was now much more spread out than it had been; each man pushing forward as far as he dared, and those on the sides so far ahead of the center that they were almost level with the soldiers. We had covered about half the distance between the hilltop and the buffalo when some of the outlying bulls seemed to notice us, and after looking for a moment or two, they took off in a quick flight. This caught the attention of the herd, and when we were still half a mile away, they panicked. Instantly, all were on their feet. For a moment, they stared confusedly at the dark line rushing toward them, and then every massive head went down and every little tail went up, and the herd took off in a wild stampede toward the opposite hills. As they jumped to their feet, the oldest soldier, who was riding in the center of the line, turned back toward us and let out a sharp Loo´-ah! It was the signal we had been waiting for.
Like an arrow from a bow each horse darted forward. Now all restraint was removed, and each man might do his best. What had been only a wild gallop became a mad race. Each rider hoped to be the first to reach the top of the opposite ridge, and [Pg 300] to turn the buffalo back into the valley, so that the surround might be completely successful. How swift those little ponies were, and how admirably the Indians managed to get out of them all their speed! I had not gone much more than half-way across the valley when I saw the leading Indians pass the head of the herd, and begin to turn the buffalo. This was the first object of the chase, for in a stampede, the cows and young are always in the lead, the bulls bringing up the rear. This position is not taken from chivalric motives on the part of the males, but simply because they cannot run so fast as their wives and children. Bulls are never killed when cows and heifers can be had.
Like an arrow from a bow, each horse shot forward. Now that all restraint was lifted, every man could give it his all. What had once been a wild gallop turned into a mad race. Each rider aimed to be the first to reach the top of the opposite ridge and turn the buffalo back into the valley so that the whole process could be a complete success. How fast those little ponies were, and how skillfully the Indians pushed them to their limits! I hadn't gone much more than halfway across the valley when I saw the leading Indians pass the front of the herd and start to turn the buffalo. This was the main goal of the chase, as in a stampede, the cows and young ones always lead, with the bulls trailing behind. This isn’t out of chivalry on the males' part, but simply because they can’t run as fast as their wives and kids. Bulls are never killed when cows and heifers are available.
Back came the herd, and I soon found myself in the midst of a throng of buffalo, horses and Indians. There was no yelling nor shouting on the part of the men, but their stern set faces, and the fierce gleam of their eyes, told of the fires of excitement that were burning within them. Three or four times my rifle spoke out, and to some purpose; and one shot, placed too far back, drew on me a quick savage charge from a vicious young cow. My pony, while a good cattle horse, was new at buffalo running, and his deliberation in the matter of dodging caused me [Pg 301] an anxious second or two, as I saw the cow’s head sweep close to his flank. It was far more interesting to watch the scene than to take part in it, and I soon rode to a little knoll from which I could overlook the whole plain. Many brown bodies lay stretched upon the ground, and many more were dashing here and there, closely attended by relentless pursuers. It was sad to see so much death, but the people must have food, and none of this meat would be wasted.
Back came the herd, and I quickly found myself in the middle of a crowd of buffalo, horses, and Native Americans. There was no yelling from the men, but their serious expressions and the fierce glint in their eyes showed the excitement boiling inside them. My rifle fired three or four times, and it was effective; however, one shot, aimed too far back, provoked a swift, aggressive charge from an angry young cow. My pony, although a good cattle horse, was inexperienced with buffalo runs, and his slow reactions in dodging made me anxious for a second or two as I saw the cow’s head sweep too close to his side. It was much more interesting to watch the action than to be in it, so I rode to a little hill where I could see the entire plain. Many brown bodies were sprawled on the ground, and many more were darting around, closely chased by relentless hunters. It was sad to witness so much death, but people need food, and none of this meat would go to waste.
Before I turned my horse’s head toward the camp, the broad disk of the setting sun had rested on the tops of the western bluffs, and tipped their crests with fire. His horizontal beams lit up with a picturesque redness the dusky forms which moved about over the valley. Up the ravines and over the hills were stringing long lines of squaws, leading patient ponies, whose backs were piled high with dark dripping meat, and with soft shaggy skins. Late into the night the work continued and the loads kept coming into the camp. About the flickering fires in and before the lodges there was feasting and merriment. Marrow bones were tossed among the red embers, calf’s head was baked in the hot earth, fat ribs were roasted, ka´wis boiled, and [Pg 302] boudins eaten raw. With laughter and singing and story telling and dance the night wore away.
Before I turned my horse toward the camp, the big disc of the setting sun had settled on the tops of the western hills, lighting their edges with fire. Its horizontal rays painted a vibrant red over the shadowy figures moving through the valley. Up the ravines and over the hills were long lines of women guiding patient ponies, whose backs were loaded with dark, dripping meat and soft, shaggy skins. The work continued late into the night, and the loads kept arriving at the camp. Around the flickering fires in front of the lodges, there was feasting and fun. Marrow bones were tossed into the red embers, a calf’s head was baked in the hot earth, fatty ribs were roasted, ka´wis was boiled, and boudins were eaten raw. With laughter, singing, storytelling, and dancing, the night passed by.
Over the plain where the buffalo had fallen, the gray wolf was prowling, and, with the coyote, the fox and the badger, tore at the bones of the slain. When day came, the golden eagle and the buzzard perched upon the naked red skeletons, and took their toll. And far away to the southward, a few frightened buffalo, some of which had arrows sticking in their sore sides, were cropping the short grass of the prairie.
Over the flatlands where the buffalo had fallen, the gray wolf was stalking around, and along with the coyote, the fox, and the badger, they were picking at the bones of the dead. When daylight arrived, the golden eagle and the buzzard sat on the exposed red skeletons, taking their share. Meanwhile, far off to the south, a few scared buffalo, some with arrows still embedded in their wounded sides, were grazing on the short grass of the prairie.

THE PAWNEE IN WAR.
I. ENEMIES AND METHODS OF WARFARE.
THE Pawnees were a race of warriors. War was their pleasure and their business. By war they gained credit, respect, fame. By war they acquired wealth.
THE Pawnees were a tribe of warriors. Fighting was both their passion and their livelihood. Through war, they earned honor, respect, and fame. By engaging in battle, they accumulated wealth.
On their long journey from their primitive home in the far southwest, they must have met, fought with and conquered many tribes. By conquest—so says tradition—they obtained their first horses, captured no one knows how long ago, in an attack on a Cheyenne village.
On their long journey from their primitive home in the far southwest, they must have met, fought with, and conquered many tribes. By conquest—so says tradition—they got their first horses, captured who knows how long ago, in an attack on a Cheyenne village.
They were brave men, but brave after their own peculiar fashion. Their courage was not displayed in the same way as that of the white man. They thought it folly to expose themselves unnecessarily. An enemy was to be surprised, and killed, while [Pg 304] asleep if possible, or shot through by an arrow from behind. To meet him in what we call fair fight, when there was a chance to kill him from an ambush, would have seemed an insane or desperate proceeding. And yet, as has been shown by some of the stories already narrated, they often faced death with a calmness and an indifference which indicated the highest physical courage.
They were brave men, but in their own unique way. Their courage didn't show up like it does for white men. They believed it was foolish to put themselves in unnecessary danger. An enemy should be surprised and taken out while they were asleep if possible, or shot from behind with an arrow. To confront him in what we consider a fair fight when you could kill him from hiding would have seemed like a crazy or reckless thing to do. Yet, as some of the stories already shared illustrate, they often faced death with a calmness and indifference that showed the highest level of physical courage.
It has been very well said that the purpose of the Indian in his warfare was to inflict the greatest amount of injury on his enemy with the least possible risk to himself.
It has been said that the goal of the Indian in his warfare was to cause the most harm to his enemy while minimizing the risk to himself.
In the old time wars, the participants exercised the greatest prudence and caution. They took no risks, where risks could be avoided. It was more glorious for a war party to kill a single enemy without receiving a wound, than to kill a dozen, if thereby they lost a man. The warrior, who led out a war party, and brought it back without loss, received credit. His skill as a leader was praised, and his influence grew. A leader, who lost men, lost also prestige; the chiefs withdrew their confidence from him, the young men might decline after that to join his party.
In ancient wars, participants showed great caution and carefulness. They avoided risks whenever possible. It was considered more honorable for a war party to take out one enemy without getting hurt than to take out a dozen at the cost of losing a comrade. The warrior who led a war party and returned without casualties gained respect. His leadership skills were admired, and his influence increased. A leader who lost men also lost prestige; chiefs would lose confidence in him, and young warriors might hesitate to join his party afterward.
When the Pawnees came into the northern [Pg 305] country they found it occupied by the Poncas, the Omahas and the Otoes. According to their custom, they attacked these tribes, and, after a resistance more or less prolonged, conquered them. The Poncas appear to have made the most stubborn fight against the invaders, and it is related that they made an alliance with the Sioux against their common enemy. From time to time there would be a cessation of hostilities, and peace would be made, but this never endured long.
When the Pawnees arrived in the northern [Pg305] region, they found it inhabited by the Poncas, the Omahas, and the Otoes. Following their customs, they attacked these tribes and, after varying degrees of resistance, overcame them. The Poncas seem to have put up the fiercest fight against the invaders, and it's said they formed an alliance with the Sioux to combat their shared enemy. Occasionally, there would be a pause in hostilities, and peace would be established, but it never lasted long.
There still exists among the Pawnees a triumph song, composed after a treacherous attack on the Pawnees by the Poncas during a time of peace. Mr. Dunbar’s remarks on this song are so interesting that I quote them in full. He says, “The Pawnee has a song, constituting the finest satirical production in the language, relating to an attempt that the Poncas are said to have once made to recover their independence. Their warriors in a body, so the account states, made a pretended visit of peace to the village of Chau-i, at that time the head band of the Pawnees. After lulling to rest, as they supposed, the suspicions of the Chau-i, according to a preconcerted plan, they made an attack on them, but were signally discomfited. In commemoration of [Pg 306] the victory then achieved, the Pawnees composed this song, and the presumption is that such a remarkable production would not have originated and maintained its position permanently in their minds without a good historic basis.” This is the song:
There’s still a victory song among the Pawnees, created after a surprise attack by the Poncas during a peaceful time. Mr. Dunbar’s comments on this song are so engaging that I’ll share them in full. He says, “The Pawnee has a song that is the finest satirical work in the language, telling about an attempt the Poncas supposedly made to regain their independence. Their warriors, as the story goes, made a fake peace visit to the village of Chau-i, which was the main band of the Pawnees at that time. After easing the suspicions of the Chau-i, according to a planned strategy, they launched an attack on them but were decisively defeated. To remember the victory they achieved, the Pawnees created this song, and it’s likely that such a notable piece wouldn’t have emerged and remained significant in their culture without a solid historical foundation.” This is the song:
A, Li-hit! Ku´s-ke-har-u, Kŭr-ŭ-u-ras,
Aha, you Ponca! It was (pretended) peace. Did you find
id-i, tŭs-ku-ra-wŭsk-u? Laŭ-i-lŭk-u-ru-tŭs.
What you were laughing at me about? You meant fight.
A, Li-hit! Ku's-ke-har-u, Kŭr-ŭ-u-ras,
Hey, Ponca! It was a fake peace. Did you find
id-i, tŭs-ku-ra-wŭsk-u? Laŭ-i-lŭk-u-ru-tŭs.
What were you laughing at me for? You were looking for a fight.
“The keen satire of the interrogation is exquisite. It conceives of the Poncas as quietly laughing in their sleeves, during their ostensibly amicable visit, in anticipation of the summary retribution that they expected to inflict upon their oppressors.”
“The sharp satire of the interrogation is brilliant. It portrays the Poncas as secretly laughing to themselves during their seemingly friendly visit, anticipating the swift revenge they planned to take on their oppressors.”
At last the Poncas, Omahas and Otoes were effectively subjugated, and were permitted to live on the borders of the Pawnee territory, and under the quasi-protection of that tribe.
At last, the Poncas, Omahas, and Otoes were effectively subdued and allowed to live on the edges of Pawnee territory, under the semi-protection of that tribe.
In the old days before the coming of the whites the Pawnees had no enemies near at hand. They had conquered all surrounding nations, and claimed and held the country from the Missouri River to the Rocky Mountains, and from the Niobrara, south to the Arkansas River or to the Canadian. Then, when they wished to go to war, they were forced to journey [Pg 307] either to the Rocky Mountains to fight the Utes, or up the Missouri to attack the Crows, or down into Mexico to plunder the Spaniards, or into Texas to steal horses from the Comanches, the Wichitas and other southern tribes. Then the war parties were great bodies—sometimes one thousand men—and all on foot. Afterward, as settlements approached them and other tribes were driven into their country, and the different Pawnee bands were crowded together, their campaigns diminished in importance, the war parties became smaller and smaller, until at last only half a dozen men would start out, and sometimes a single individual would go off by himself to steal horses.
In the past, before the arrival of white settlers, the Pawnees had no nearby enemies. They had defeated all the neighboring nations and claimed the land from the Missouri River to the Rocky Mountains, and from the Niobrara River down to the Arkansas or Canadian River. When they wanted to go to war, they had to travel to the Rocky Mountains to fight the Utes, head up the Missouri to attack the Crows, venture down into Mexico to raid the Spaniards, or move into Texas to steal horses from the Comanches, Wichitas, and other southern tribes. The war parties were large—sometimes up to a thousand men—all on foot. Later, as settlements encroached on their land and other tribes were pushed into their territory, the various Pawnee bands became crowded together. Their military campaigns lost significance, and the war parties got smaller and smaller, until eventually only a handful of men would set out, and sometimes just one person would leave on his own to steal horses.
The Pawnees were true Ishmaelites. They had no friends upon the prairies save those whom they had conquered and held by fear. Foes swarmed about them. To the north were the different bands of the Dakotas and the Crows; to the west the Utes, with the Arapahoes, the Kiowas and the Cheyennes; and to the south the Comanches, Cheyennes, Kiowas, Kansas, Osages, and their relations the Wichitas. With these last they were long at war; for the Pawnees and Wichitas had forgotten each other’s existence, or rather each tribe was wholly ignorant as to [Pg 308] what had become of the other. Only a tradition of the old relationship still remained. The kinship was rediscovered within the last thirty years, when some Kaws came north on a visit to the Pawnee village, and brought with them a Wichita, who had been visiting at the Kaw agency. The Pawnees found that this man spoke a language nearly like their own, and at length discovered that the Wichitas were a part of their own people. Attempts were made to establish a peace, and to renew their old friendly relations, but the fact that the Wichitas were so closely allied to the Comanches, Kiowas and Cheyennes made it very difficult for the tribes to come together on a friendly footing. Hostilities still continued therefore, nor was a lasting peace made until the visit of Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, already described.
The Pawnees were like true outsiders. They had no friends on the prairies except for the ones they had conquered and kept in fear. Their enemies surrounded them. To the north were various bands of the Dakotas and the Crows; to the west, the Utes, along with the Arapahoes, the Kiowas, and the Cheyennes; and to the south were the Comanches, Cheyennes, Kiowas, Kansas, Osages, and their relatives, the Wichitas. They had been at war with the Wichitas for a long time, having forgotten each other's existence, or rather, each tribe was completely unaware of what had happened to the other. Only a tradition of their old relationship remained. This kinship was rediscovered in the last thirty years when some Kaws visited the Pawnee village and brought along a Wichita who had been visiting the Kaw agency. The Pawnees learned that this man spoke a language very similar to their own, and eventually realized that the Wichitas were part of their people. Efforts were made to establish peace and renew their old friendly relations, but the fact that the Wichitas were closely allied with the Comanches, Kiowas, and Cheyennes made it very challenging for the tribes to connect on friendly terms. Therefore, hostilities continued, and a lasting peace wasn't achieved until the visit of Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, which has been described before.
As a result of this well nigh universal hostility, the Pawnees were constantly being attacked, and were constantly losing men, women and children. Mr. Dunbar, who has taken pains to collect some facts bearing on this point, says:
As a result of this nearly universal hostility, the Pawnees were frequently attacked and were consistently losing men, women, and children. Mr. Dunbar, who has made an effort to gather some facts on this issue, states:
“Probably, not a year in this century has been without losses from this source (warfare), though only occasionally have they been marked with considerable disasters. In 1832 the Skidi band suffered [Pg 309] a severe defeat on the Arkansas from the Comanches. In 1847 a Dakota war party, numbering over seven hundred, attacked a village occupied by two hundred and sixteen Pawnees, and succeeded in killing eighty-three. In 1854 a party of one hundred and thirteen were cut off by an overwhelming body of Cheyennes and Kiowas, and killed almost to a man. In 1873 a hunting party of about four hundred, two hundred and thirteen of whom were men, on the Republican, while in the act of killing a herd of buffalo, were attacked by nearly six hundred Dakota warriors, and eighty-six were killed. But the usual policy of their enemies has been to cut off individual or small scattered parties, while engaged in the chase or in tilling isolated corn patches. Losses of this kind, trifling when taken singly, have in the aggregate borne heavily on the tribe. It would seem that such losses, annually recurring, should have taught them to be more on their guard. But let it be remembered that the struggle has not been in one direction against one enemy. The Dakotas, Crows, Kiowas, Cheyennes, Arapahoes, Comanches, Osages and Kansas have faithfully aided each other, though undesignedly in the main, in this crusade of extermination against the Pawnee. [Pg 310] It has been in the most emphatic sense, a struggle of the one against the many. With the possible exception of the Dakotas, there is much reason to believe that the animosity of these tribes has been exacerbated by the galling tradition of disastrous defeats which Pawnee prowess had inflicted upon themselves in past generations. To them the last seventy years have been a carnival of revenge.”
“Probably, not a year in this century has gone by without losses due to warfare, although only sometimes have these losses been marked by significant disasters. In 1832, the Skidi band suffered [Pg309] a severe defeat on the Arkansas River against the Comanches. In 1847, a Dakota war party of over seven hundred attacked a village of two hundred sixteen Pawnees, resulting in the death of eighty-three. In 1854, a group of one hundred thirteen was ambushed by a large force of Cheyennes and Kiowas, and nearly all were killed. In 1873, a hunting party of about four hundred, including two hundred thirteen men, was attacked by nearly six hundred Dakota warriors while they were in the process of hunting buffalo, resulting in eighty-six deaths. However, the usual strategy of their enemies has been to target individual or small scattered groups while they were hunting or working on isolated corn fields. These individual losses, while minor when viewed alone, have significantly impacted the tribe as a whole. It would seem that such recurring losses should have made them more cautious. But it’s important to remember that the struggle hasn’t been one-sided against a single enemy. The Dakotas, Crows, Kiowas, Cheyennes, Arapahoes, Comanches, Osages, and Kansas have often unwittingly supported each other in this campaign of extermination against the Pawnee. [Pg310] It has been unequivocally a battle of one against many. With the possible exception of the Dakotas, there is good reason to believe that the hostility among these tribes has been fueled by the painful legacy of defeats that the Pawnee inflicted on them in the past. For these tribes, the past seventy years have been a time of relentless revenge.”
Mr. Dunbar regards the constant warfare against their many enemies as one principal cause of the rapid diminution in numbers of the Pawnees, and, no doubt, it was a cause; but a far more important one was the sapping of the tribe’s vitality by contact with the whites. Their villages lay almost directly in the path of trans-continental emigration, and it was the introduction of spirits and the special diseases contracted from the whites which weakened the tribe, and made the tough and sinewy Pawnee a ready prey to sickness and death.
Mr. Dunbar sees the ongoing battles with their numerous enemies as one of the main reasons for the quick decline in the Pawnee population, and he’s probably right; however, an even bigger factor was the draining of the tribe's strength due to their interactions with white settlers. Their villages were almost directly in the way of westward migration, and it was the introduction of alcohol and specific diseases from the whites that weakened the tribe, turning the resilient and strong Pawnee into easy targets for illness and death.
Although so ferocious to people of their own color, the Pawnees have ever been at peace with the whites. Bad men among them have, no doubt, sometimes stolen horses, but the tribe has never carried on an organized war against the Government. While they have often been provoked by wanton outrages [Pg 311] inflicted on them, yet they have always borne themselves peaceably and mildly, and sought redress by legal or persuasive, rather than by hostile measures.
Although fierce towards their own people, the Pawnees have always been at peace with white settlers. There have certainly been bad individuals among them who have stolen horses, but the tribe has never waged an organized war against the government. Even when provoked by senseless attacks against them, they have consistently acted calmly and kindly, seeking justice through legal or diplomatic means instead of resorting to violence.
There is one instance on record which, while it shows their ferocity, exemplifies also their natural justice, and deserves to be repeated. This is the story of the Rawhide.
There is one recorded instance that, while it demonstrates their ferocity, also illustrates their sense of justice and is worth sharing. This is the story of the Rawhide.
In the year 1852, among a small party of emigrants, who were crossing the plains on their way to California, was a man who had frequently asserted that he would kill the first Indian he saw. While the train was camped on a small creek flowing into the Elkhorn, a young squaw was seen, who belonged to the neighboring Pita-hau-erat village. Some accounts say that she came to the camp to beg, others, that she was going to the stream for a bucket of water. At all events, she was seen by the emigrants, who bantered the young man to carry out his boast that he would kill the first Indian he saw. He shot and killed the woman. The train moved on during the night. On the following day the tribe learned of this wanton butchery. They pursued the train, and surrounding it, demanded the murderer. He was at once given up, and a council was held, at which his fate was decided. The train was ordered [Pg 312] back to the scene of the murder, and there, in the presence of his horrified companions, the Pawnees proceeded to flay the murderer alive. After this had been done, the emigrants were permitted to proceed on their journey. The stream on whose banks this act of grim justice took place is still known as Rawhide Creek.
In 1852, among a small group of emigrants crossing the plains to California, there was a man who had often claimed he would kill the first Indian he encountered. While the group was camped by a small creek that flowed into the Elkhorn, a young Native woman from the nearby Pita-hau-erat village was spotted. Some say she came to the camp to ask for food, while others say she was going to get a bucket of water from the stream. Either way, the emigrants saw her and teased the young man to follow through on his boast about killing the first Indian he saw. He shot and killed the woman. That night, the group moved on. The next day, the tribe learned of this senseless murder. They tracked down the train, surrounded it, and demanded the killer. He was immediately handed over, and a council was held to decide his fate. The group was ordered back to the site of the murder, where, in front of his horrified companions, the Pawnees flayed the murderer alive. After this was done, the emigrants were allowed to continue their journey. The stream where this grim act of justice occurred is still known as Rawhide Creek.
Not only have the Pawnees never been at war with the whites, but, for the past twenty-five years, they have been their allies in every serious Indian war which has taken place east of the Rocky Mountains.
Not only have the Pawnees never fought against white people, but for the past twenty-five years, they have been their allies in every major Indian war that has occurred east of the Rocky Mountains.
The Pawnee was taught to deal in ambuscades and surprises, yet he could fight in the open, too, if necessity demanded. Sometimes they had pitched battles with their foes, but their weapons were very primitive, and such combats were—in view of the numbers engaged on either side—comparatively bloodless. Between the years 1860 and 1870 such battles frequently took place near the Pawnee village, when the Sioux, who were far more numerous than the Pawnees, would come down from the north to try to destroy the village. Many a time I have heard from the lips of grizzled warriors the stories of these battles. Sometimes the enemy would come down in [Pg 313] small parties, and steal horses, or kill squaws who were working in the corn patches, but at other times large bodies of warriors would approach the village without any attempt at concealment.
The Pawnee were trained to use ambushes and surprises, but they could also fight openly when necessary. Occasionally, they had direct battles with their enemies, but their weapons were quite basic, and these fights were, considering the number of people involved, relatively bloodless. Between 1860 and 1870, such battles often occurred near the Pawnee village, as the Sioux, who were much more numerous than the Pawnees, would come down from the north to try to attack the village. Many times, I’ve heard the old warriors recount stories of these battles. Sometimes, the enemy would come in small groups to steal horses or attack women working in the corn fields, but at other times, large groups of warriors would approach the village openly.
About sunrise the Sioux would ride up over the hills in a line fronting toward the village. They appeared mounted on their best ponies, clad in their most elaborate war costume, and wearing long war bonnets of the feathers of the war eagle, which almost swept the ground as their horses curveted along to the music of the monotonous but thrilling war chant. At the instant of their appearance the Pawnee village would begin to stir like a disturbed ant hill. The shouts of command by the men, the piercing calls from women, the alarmed and excited shrieks of the children, the neighing and heavy hoof-beats of the horses, the barking and howling of the dogs, as they were kicked out of the way, made a very Babel of sounds. The men snatched their arms, and springing on their horses rode out on to the plain to meet the enemy, while the women and children, after the horses had been secured, mounted to the tops of the dirt lodges to watch the fight. The Sioux, when they had come into full view, stopped, and sat there on their horses, proud of their brave [Pg 314] attire, and courting admiration. The Pawnees, too, if time permitted, would don their finest war dresses, though often they fought naked, and elaborately paint themselves and their horses. As the Pawnees rode toward their enemy, the Sioux slowly advanced toward them, both with extended front. Each party chanted its songs of war, and uttered yells of defiance. While they were still six or seven hundred yards apart they halted, and stood facing each other. After a short wait, a warrior from one side or the other rode out before the line and addressed his party. He opened his speech with some remarks derogatory to the foe, and in praise of his own people. From these generalities, he passed to a consideration of his own excellent qualities, told of what he had done in the past, and what he now intended doing, and when he had finished speaking, he bent low over his horse’s neck, and rode furiously toward one end of the enemy’s line. When he had come within easy bowshot, he usually turned his horse’s head, and rode as hard as he could down along the line, leaning down, half hidden by his horse, and discharging arrow after arrow at the enemy. They also shot at him, as he flew by, and as he rode along, those whom he had passed dashed out in pursuit, [Pg 315] until the whole party were riding after him as hard as they could go. If he passed along the line without injury, he turned his horse toward his own party, and rode back, his pursuers following him but a short distance. If, however, he was wounded by the arrows shot at him, and fell from his horse, or if his horse was hit and disabled, or if, on account of the greater speed of their ponies, it seemed likely that the enemy would overtake him, the whole body of his tribe made a headlong charge to rescue and bring him off. The enemy were as eager to take his scalp as his own people were to save it, and the opposing warriors came together in a hot melee.
About sunrise, the Sioux would ride up over the hills in a line facing the village. They appeared on their best ponies, dressed in their most elaborate war outfits, and wearing long war bonnets made of eagle feathers that nearly brushed the ground as their horses pranced along to the rhythm of a steady but exciting war chant. As soon as they showed up, the Pawnee village would become alive like a disturbed ant hill. The men shouted commands, women let out piercing calls, children shrieked in alarm and excitement, horses neighed and stomped, and dogs barked and howled as they were pushed aside, creating a chaotic din. The men grabbed their weapons, jumped on their horses, and rode out onto the plain to confront the enemy, while the women and children, after securing the horses, climbed to the tops of the dirt lodges to watch the fight. When the Sioux were fully visible, they halted and sat proudly on their horses, displaying their impressive attire and seeking admiration. The Pawnees, if they had time, would also put on their finest war outfits, although they often fought naked, and would paint themselves and their horses in elaborate designs. As the Pawnees rode toward their enemies, the Sioux slowly approached them, both groups expanding their front. Each side chanted war songs and yelled defiant shouts. When they were still about six or seven hundred yards apart, they stopped and faced each other. After a brief pause, a warrior from one side rode out in front of the line to speak to his group. He began with some insulting remarks about the enemy and praise for his own people. Moving from those generalities, he shifted to highlighting his own outstanding qualities, detailing what he had accomplished in the past and what he intended to do now. When he finished speaking, he leaned low over his horse’s neck and charged fiercely toward one end of the enemy line. Once he got within easy bowshot, he usually turned his horse's head and raced along the line, crouched down and firing arrow after arrow at the enemy. They shot at him as he sped by, and those he had passed took off in pursuit, until the entire group was chasing after him as fast as they could go. If he managed to pass the line without being hurt, he would turn his horse back toward his own group, with his pursuers trailing just a little way behind. However, if he was hit by an arrow and fell off his horse, or if his horse was struck and disabled, or if it seemed the enemy was likely to catch him due to their faster ponies, the whole tribe would charge in a desperate effort to rescue him. The enemy was just as eager to take his scalp as his own people were to save it, and the opposing warriors would clash fiercely.
There was little twanging of bow strings, and not much thrusting of lances; for the most part the fighting was at quarters too close for this, and the combatants pounded at each other’s heads with hatchets, war clubs, whip handles, bows and coup sticks. Bruises were given and received, sometimes a few men were gashed with hatchets and lances, and occasionally a man was killed. If the man about whom the struggle was taking place was scalped, his party at once drew off, leaving his body, which had now ceased to have any interest for them, in the hands of the enemy. If, however, he escaped scalping, [Pg 316] his friends and foes soon separated and withdrew to their former positions. Then, after a breathing spell, a man of the other party rode forward, and made his speech, and the charge and general attack might be repeated.
There was little twanging of bowstrings and not much thrusting of lances; for the most part, the fighting happened at distances too close for that, and the combatants went after each other's heads with hatchets, war clubs, whip handles, bows, and coup sticks. Bruises were exchanged, sometimes a few men were cut with hatchets and lances, and occasionally someone was killed. If the man being fought over was scalped, his party would immediately pull back, leaving his body, which no longer mattered to them, in the hands of the enemy. However, if he avoided being scalped, [Pg316] his friends and foes would soon separate and return to their original positions. Then, after a short break, a member of the opposing party would ride forward, make a speech, and the charge and overall attack could start again.
Occasionally a very daring or desperate man, instead of riding down the opposing line, would charge through it, and as he reached it would let fly an arrow at some particular man, and count coup on, and scalp him as he dashed by. He would at once be surrounded by foes, who did their best to kill him, while his own tribesmen would charge upon them, and for a short time the struggle would be very fierce. A brave man, killed and scalped, was mutilated in all conceivable ways by the enemy, and was often cut up into small pieces.
Sometimes, a very bold or desperate person, instead of riding down the enemy line, would charge straight through it. Upon reaching it, he would shoot an arrow at a specific target, count coup, and scalp him as he rushed past. Immediately, he would be surrounded by enemies trying to kill him, while his own tribesmen would charge to support him, leading to a brief but intense struggle. A courageous man who was killed and scalped would be mutilated in every possible way by the enemy and often dismembered into small pieces.
In this way the battle might go on for the greater part of a day with varying fortunes, but without the loss on either side of more than a man or two, until at last one party or the other would become discouraged, and would break and run.
In this way, the battle could continue for most of the day with ups and downs, but neither side would lose more than a man or two, until finally one side would get discouraged and end up breaking and running.
The Sioux in their attacks on the Pawnee village were never the victors. They were always defeated and driven back, and often, in the pursuit, two or three times as many men were killed as in the actual [Pg 317] battle. It was but natural that the Pawnees should have been successful in this defense of their village, for in such fights they felt that they must conquer. Defeat to them there meant the loss of all that they possessed, the slaughter of their women and children, and the destruction of their village. Besides, if defeated, they had no place to retreat to. They would fight to the death.
The Sioux never won in their attacks on the Pawnee village. They were always defeated and pushed back, and often, during the chase, two or three times as many men were killed as in the actual [Pg317] battle. It was only natural for the Pawnees to be successful in defending their village, as they felt they had to win in these fights. For them, defeat meant losing everything they had, the slaughter of their women and children, and the destruction of their village. Plus, if they were defeated, they had nowhere to retreat to. They would fight to the death.
Their fierce courage and their fighting qualities were well shown on one famous occasion. The tribe had gone off south on the buffalo hunt, and there were left in the village only some of the sick, the old men, and a few boys, women and children. Among the sick who remained was Ska-di´ks (Crooked Hand), a Skidi brave, recognized as a leader in battle, and one of the bravest warriors in the tribe. The Sioux had learned of the departure of the Pawnees with all the fighting men, and had planned to come down, kill all the people left at home, and destroy the village.
Their fierce courage and fighting skills were clearly displayed on one famous occasion. The tribe had gone south for a buffalo hunt, leaving only the sick, the elderly, and a few boys, women, and children in the village. Among the sick who stayed behind was Ska-di´ks (Crooked Hand), a Skidi warrior known as a leader in battle and one of the bravest fighters in the tribe. The Sioux had found out that the Pawnees had left with all the able-bodied men, and they planned to come down, kill everyone left behind, and destroy the village.
One morning, to the dismay of those who had been left behind, six hundred of the very best of the Sioux warriors rode slowly into view over the hills, and down on to the plain above the village. They made no charge, for it was unnecessary to hurry [Pg 318] about killing the few women, the old men and the sick who were to be their unresisting victims. They wished to prolong the agony of these wretched Pawnees, whose scalps were already theirs, and whose village would soon be only a few heaps of smoking ruins. As they rode slowly down the hill there was no clink of steel nor rattle of harness, only the soft rustling of the prairie grass under the unshod hoofs of their spirited war ponies, but this sound was drowned by the ominous music of their triumphant war song, which, now loud, now low, was faintly borne on the breeze to the fated village. Very deliberately they came on, singing as they marched, proudly, like conquerors, while the sun glittered on polished lance-head and gleaming hair plate, and the wind blew out the fringes of their white war shirts, or gaily tossed the streaming plumes of their superb war bonnets.
One morning, much to the dismay of those left behind, six hundred of the best Sioux warriors slowly appeared over the hills and rode down to the plain above the village. They didn’t rush, as it was unnecessary to hurry while killing the few women, old men, and sick individuals who would be their helpless victims. They wanted to prolong the suffering of the miserable Pawnees, whose scalps were already theirs, and whose village would soon just be a few heaps of smoking ruins. As they descended the hill, there was no noise of steel or rattling harness, only the gentle rustling of prairie grass under the unshod hooves of their spirited war ponies, but that sound was overshadowed by the chilling music of their victorious war song, which echoed faintly, now loudly and now softly, on the breeze toward the doomed village. They marched on deliberately, singing, proud like conquerors, while the sun shone on shiny lance heads and gleaming hair plates, and the wind blew out the fringes of their white war shirts or playfully tossed the flowing plumes of their magnificent war bonnets.
The news of their appearance was brought to Crooked Hand, where he lay sick in his lodge. At once he threw aside the robe in which he was wrapped, and as he rose to his feet, he cast away from him by the same motion his sickness. His orders were quickly issued, and as promptly obeyed. The village must fight. Tottering old men, whose [Pg 319] sinews were now too feeble to bend the bow, seized their long disused arms and clambered on their horses. Boys too young to hunt, whose bodies had never been toughened by the long journeys of the warpath, whose hearts had not been made strong by the first fast, grasped the weapons that they had as yet used only on rabbits and ground squirrels, flung themselves on their ponies, and rode with the old men. Even squaws, taking what weapons they could—axes, hoes, mauls, pestles—mounted horses, and marshaled themselves for battle.
The news of their arrival reached Crooked Hand, who was lying sick in his lodge. Immediately, he threw off the robe that covered him, and as he stood up, he pushed aside his illness with the same motion. He quickly gave out orders, which were promptly followed. The village had to fight. Unsteady old men, whose limbs were now too weak to pull a bow, grabbed their long-unused weapons and climbed onto their horses. Boys too young to hunt, whose bodies had never toughened up from long journeys on the warpath, and whose hearts hadn't been made strong by fasting, picked up the weapons they had only used for hunting rabbits and ground squirrels, jumped onto their ponies, and rode alongside the old men. Even the women, grabbing whatever weapons they could find—axes, hoes, mauls, pestles—mounted horses and prepared for battle.
The force for the defense numbered two hundred; superannuated old men, boys and women. Among them all were not, perhaps, ten active warriors, and these had just risen from sick beds to take their place in the line of battle. But then this little force had a leader. Crooked Hand, mounted on a superb war pony, was as cool and unconcerned as if he were about to ride out to a band of buffalo, instead of leading a force of old men and children against six hundred of the best warriors that the Sioux could muster.
The defense had two hundred people; they were mostly old men, boys, and women. There were perhaps only ten active fighters among them, and those had just gotten out of bed after being sick to join the battle. But this small group had a leader. Crooked Hand, riding a magnificent war pony, was calm and relaxed as if he were about to head out for a buffalo hunt, not leading old men and children against six hundred of the best warriors the Sioux could gather.
At that time the Pawnee village was encompassed by a high sod wall, and some of Crooked Hand’s people wished to await the charge of the Sioux [Pg 320] behind this shelter, but their leader would not permit this. He said to them, “We can conquer the Sioux anywhere.” So Ska-di´ks led his forces out to meet the attack in fair open combat on the plain, on the same ground where so many times the Pawnees had routed their enemies. As the Pawnees passed out of the village on to the plain, the Sioux saw for the first time the force they had to meet. They laughed in derision, calling out bitter jibes, and telling what they would do when they had made the charge; and, as Crooked Hand heard their laughter, he smiled, too, but not mirthfully. He knew what perhaps the Sioux had forgotten, that his people were single-minded, and that they would fight until they died. Their strokes would be for their homes and lives.
At that time, the Pawnee village was surrounded by a tall sod wall, and some of Crooked Hand’s people wanted to wait for the Sioux to attack from behind this protection, but their leader wouldn't allow it. He told them, “We can defeat the Sioux anywhere.” So Ska-di´ks led his warriors out to face the attack in open battle on the plain, on the same ground where the Pawnees had defeated their enemies many times before. As the Pawnees left the village and headed to the plain, the Sioux saw for the first time the force they would have to confront. They laughed mockingly, shouting insulting remarks and boasting about what they would do when they charged; and as Crooked Hand heard their laughter, he smiled too, but not with joy. He knew what the Sioux might have forgotten: that his people were resolute and would fight to the death. Their fight was for their homes and lives.
The battle began. It seemed like an unequal fight. Surely one charge would be enough to overthrow this motley Pawnee throng, who had ventured out to try to oppose the triumphal march of the Sioux. But it was not ended so quickly. The fight began about the middle of the morning, and, to the amazement of the Sioux, these old men with shrunken shanks and piping voices, these children with their small white teeth and soft round limbs, these women [Pg 321] clad in skirts, and armed with hoes, held the invaders where they were; they could make no advance. A little latter it became evident that the Pawnees were driving the Sioux back. Presently this backward movement became a retreat, the retreat a rout, the rout a wild panic. Then, indeed, the Pawnees made a great killing of their enemies. Many an old man, whose feeble legs had long refused to bear him on the warpath, again quavered his war cry, again counted coup upon his enemy. Many a boy, who had never shed the blood of any creature larger than a prairie chicken, that day struck his enemy, and with shrill childish voice shouted his whoop of triumph, as he tore away the reeking scalp. More than one woman, used only to pounding corn and dressing robes, that day counted her coup, and when the tribe returned, told what she had done, and changed her name like a warrior.
The battle started. It felt like an unfair fight. Surely, one charge would be enough to take down this mixed group of Pawnees, who had dared to challenge the victorious Sioux. But it didn’t end that quickly. The fight kicked off around mid-morning, and, to the surprise of the Sioux, these old men with thin legs and high voices, these children with their small white teeth and chubby limbs, and these women dressed in skirts armed with hoes, held the invaders in place; they couldn’t make any progress. A little later, it became clear that the Pawnees were pushing the Sioux back. Soon, this backward movement turned into a retreat, the retreat into a rout, and the rout into a wild panic. Then, indeed, the Pawnees killed many of their enemies. Many an old man, whose weak legs had long stopped supporting him in battle, once again shouted his war cry and counted coup on his adversary. Many a boy, who had never shed the blood of anything larger than a prairie chicken, struck his opponent that day, and with a high-pitched child’s voice, he shouted his warwhoop of triumph as he pulled away the bloody scalp. More than one woman, accustomed only to pounding corn and making robes, counted her coup that day, and when the tribe returned, she proudly recounted her deeds and took on a warrior’s name.
To the Pawnees that day was like the day of Thermopylæ to the Greeks.
To the Pawnees, that day was like the day of Thermopylae to the Greeks.
Crooked Hand, preëminent among the heroes of that fight, with his own hand killed six of the Sioux, and had three horses shot under him. His wounds were many, but he laughed at them. He was content; he had saved the village.
Crooked Hand, standout among the heroes of that battle, personally killed six Sioux and had three horses shot from under him. He had numerous wounds, but he just laughed them off. He felt satisfied; he had saved the village.
[Pg 322] The same indomitable spirit here shown has characterized the Pawnees always. For generations they fought as their fathers had fought, in their own way, with their native enemies, but when they were enlisted in the Government service, and trained in the white man’s ways of war, they adapted themselves readily to their new conditions.
[Pg322] The same unstoppable spirit displayed here has always defined the Pawnees. For generations, they fought like their ancestors did, in their own style, against their native enemies. However, when they joined the Government service and learned the white man's methods of war, they quickly adjusted to their new circumstances.
A body of men braver than the Pawnee Scouts, under Major Frank North and his brother Luther, never rode on horses. They were far better than any white soldiers that ever fought on the plains; for, besides their natural courage, they had at their finger ends all the wonderful wisdom of the savage. They could tell, as it seemed by instinct, where a trail would lead, where the enemy that they were pursuing would camp, what were his plans. They had the endurance of their prototype, the wolf. No labor was too severe, no journey too long, if its end was a battle with their foes. Their courage, their discipline, their knowledge of the plains, their acquaintance with the habits of their enemies, their endurance, made them superb soldiers; but, perhaps, more than all this, and yet a part of all this, was the absorbing devotion and trust which they felt for Pa´-ni Le-shar, their white leader. Through all the [Pg 323] years that they followed him, he never led them but to victory; through all these years he never lost a man in battle, and the belief of the Pawnees in his ability and his success was like the devotion felt by the Grande Armée for Napoleon.
A group of men braver than the Pawnee Scouts, under Major Frank North and his brother Luther, never rode on horses. They were far better than any white soldiers who ever fought on the plains; they had not only their natural courage but also the unique knowledge of the natives. They seemed to instinctively know where a trail would lead, where the enemy they were chasing would camp, and what their plans were. They had the endurance of their predecessor, the wolf. No task was too tough, no journey too long, if it meant a battle with their foes. Their courage, discipline, knowledge of the plains, understanding of their enemies' habits, and resilience made them exceptional soldiers. But perhaps even more important than all of this, and still part of it, was the deep devotion and trust they felt for Pa´-ni Le-shar, their white leader. Throughout all the [Pg323] years they followed him, he never led them to anything but victory; during all these years, he never lost a man in battle, and the Pawnees' faith in his skill and success was like the loyalty felt by the Grande Armée for Napoleon.
II. PA´-NI LE-SHAR AND HIS SCOUTS.
No account of the Pawnees’ warfare would give any just impression of their prowess if it omitted to mention Pa´-ni Le-shar and the forces which he commanded. The Pawnee Scouts, under the gallant and able leadership of Frank North, did splendid service against hostile Indians. They saved hundreds of lives and millions of dollars’ worth of property, and in their campaigns wiped out in blood the memory of many an injury done to their race by the Sioux, the Cheyennes, the Arapahoes and the Kiowas.
No account of the Pawnees' warfare would accurately reflect their skill if it didn't mention Pa´-ni Le-shar and the troops he led. The Pawnee Scouts, under the brave and capable leadership of Frank North, did an outstanding job against enemy tribes. They saved hundreds of lives and millions of dollars' worth of property, and in their campaigns, they avenged many wrongs done to their people by the Sioux, the Cheyennes, the Arapahoes, and the Kiowas.
Frank North was born in Ohio, March 10, 1840. When about fifteen years of age he accompanied his family westward to Council Bluffs, and a little later across the Missouri River into Nebraska. At about this time, his father, who was a surveyor, was lost in a snow storm, and the responsibility of caring for his [Pg 324] family fell in large measure on the boy. Soon after this he obtained employment as clerk in the trader’s store at the Pawnee agency, and thus made the acquaintance of the tribe. His strong character early brought him to the notice of their principal men, and almost before attaining manhood he had become a person of influence in the councils of the Pawnee Nation.
Frank North was born in Ohio on March 10, 1840. When he was about fifteen, he traveled with his family west to Council Bluffs, and shortly after, they crossed the Missouri River into Nebraska. Around this time, his father, who was a surveyor, got lost in a snowstorm, and the responsibility of taking care of his family largely fell on him. Not long after, he got a job as a clerk in the trader's store at the Pawnee agency, which allowed him to get to know the tribe. His strong character quickly caught the attention of their leaders, and before he even reached adulthood, he had become a person of influence in the councils of the Pawnee Nation.
In the year 1864 Frank North was authorized to enlist a company of Pawnee scouts to be employed against the bands of hostile Indians, whose depredations were at that time becoming very troublesome. The command was organized that autumn, and did some service along the old emigrant trail. It was not until the summer of 1865, however, that it saw any serious fighting. In that year General Connor of California commanded a large expedition to the Powder River country, and the Pawnee scouts accompanied him and rendered brilliant service.
In 1864, Frank North was given the green light to recruit a group of Pawnee scouts to help combat the hostile Indian tribes that were causing significant problems at the time. The unit was formed that fall and provided assistance along the old emigrant trail. However, it wasn't until the summer of 1865 that they faced serious combat. That year, General Connor from California led a large mission to the Powder River area, and the Pawnee scouts joined him, delivering exceptional service.
Later, during the building of the Union Pacific Railway, the depredations of the hostile Sioux, Cheyennes and Arapahoes became so serious along the line of the road that the Government authorized Mr. North to enlist a battalion of scouts from the Pawnee Nation, and offered him the command with [Pg 325] the rank of major. Several companies of these scouts were so enlisted, and for years the battalion did good service on the plains and in the mountains in Nebraska, Kansas and Wyoming, serving under Generals Auger, Emory, Carr, Royal, Mackenzie and Crook, some of the most successful Indian fighters in that Department. The Pawnee scouts were everywhere, and at all times brave men, good soldiers and victorious warriors. The amount of property saved to the Government, the settlers and the railroad through the efforts of Major North’s command can scarcely be computed. In all his service of almost constant fighting, extending over a period of more than ten years, he never lost a man on the battle field, and this caused him to be regarded by the Pawnees as divinely favored.
Later, while the Union Pacific Railway was being built, the attacks by hostile Sioux, Cheyennes, and Arapahoes became so serious along the railroad that the Government authorized Mr. North to recruit a battalion of scouts from the Pawnee Nation and offered him the command with the rank of major. Several companies of these scouts were enlisted, and for years, the battalion served effectively on the plains and in the mountains of Nebraska, Kansas, and Wyoming, working under Generals Auger, Emory, Carr, Royal, Mackenzie, and Crook, who were some of the most successful Indian fighters in that Department. The Pawnee scouts were always brave, good soldiers, and victorious warriors. The amount of property saved for the Government, the settlers, and the railroad through Major North’s efforts is hard to measure. Throughout nearly constant fighting over more than ten years, he never lost a man on the battlefield, which led the Pawnees to see him as divinely favored.
It is impossible within the limits of a few pages to give even a sketch of the services performed by Frank North and his scouts. Two or three isolated episodes in his career will show something of the constant danger and hardship of the life he led, and of the courage, coolness and determination of the leader and his men.
It’s impossible to capture the full scope of the work done by Frank North and his scouts in just a few pages. A couple of specific moments from his journey will highlight the ongoing danger and struggles he faced, as well as the bravery, composure, and resolve of both the leader and his team.
Such an episode, memorable alike for its danger, the completeness of the victory gained, and the fact [Pg 326] that it won for him the title by which he was ever after known among the Pawnees, marked his first campaign. It was in the Powder River country, and Captain North had started with a detachment of his scouts in pursuit of a party of Indians, whose trail he had found. For some weeks his men had been hard worked; and at this time their horses were so jaded that although they had come within sight of the Cheyennes, they were unable to overtake them and force them to a fight. Captain North, who was mounted on a fresh horse, rode far ahead of his men, who were constantly falling further and further behind. At length, realizing the futility of continuing the pursuit, North dismounted, fired a parting shot at the Indians, and was about to ride back toward camp, when the fleeing Cheyennes, about twenty-five in number, turned and charged him. He then discovered that he had outridden all his men. Not one of them was in sight. Hastily dismounting, he prepared to receive the enemy, and firing as they advanced killed one. The rest sheered off, and rode out of rifle shot, and then formed again for another charge. Feeling for a cartridge to reload his rifle, North made the startling discovery that he had but three left, all the others having been lost during his [Pg 327] rapid ride. He found, too, that his horse had been wounded by a ball from the Cheyennes, and was in no condition for running; indeed, it could not be ridden. His situation seemed well nigh hopeless, but he prepared to make the best of it, by retreating on foot, leading his wounded horse as a shelter, from behind which to fight. When the Cheyennes charged him he would face about, raise his gun to his shoulder, as if about to fire, and the Indians, who had already tasted the quality of his lead, would drop down behind their horses, and sheer off, never coming so close to him as to make it necessary for him to use one of his precious cartridges. After a long weary walk of twelve or fifteen miles, during which his moccasin-shod feet were cruelly lacerated by the thorns of the cactus, over which he walked, his pursuers left him, and he reached his command in safety. No sooner had he arrived at the camp than, taking a fresh horse and ordering out a well-mounted detachment of his men, he set out in pursuit of the enemy. All that afternoon they rode hard, and when night fell, dismounting a couple of Pawnees to follow the trail on foot, the pursuit was still kept up. Just after daylight, as they rode out into a little park in the mountains, a tiny column of blue smoke [Pg 328] rising from a clump of cottonwood trees showed where the hostiles were camped. The Pawnees rode steadily forward in double file in military fashion; and the Cheyennes, supposing that they were white soldiers, jumped on their horses and rode out on to the open hillside where they formed a line of battle to meet the enemy. The Pawnees rode quietly onward until they were quite near the Cheyennes, and then loud and clear their ringing war whoop broke out upon the morning air. When the Cheyennes heard this war-cry, which told them that the attacking party were Pawnees, their hearts became like water, and they turned and fled. Already, however, seven of their number had fallen before the Pawnee bullets, and the fresher horses of the Pawnees easily overtook the tired ones ridden by the pursued. Of that party of Cheyennes not one escaped, and with twenty-seven scalps, and all the plunder, the victorious Pawnees returned that afternoon to their command.
Such a memorable event, notable for its danger, the complete victory achieved, and the title it earned him among the Pawnees, marked his first campaign. It took place in the Powder River area, where Captain North led a group of his scouts in pursuit of a party of Indians whose trail he had found. For weeks, his men had been hard at work, and at this point, their horses were so exhausted that even though they had spotted the Cheyennes, they couldn't catch up and force them into a fight. Captain North, riding a fresh horse, had gone ahead of his men, who were continually falling further behind. Eventually, realizing the pursuit was pointless, North dismounted, fired a parting shot at the Indians, and was about to head back to camp when about twenty-five fleeing Cheyennes turned and charged him. He then noticed he had outrun all his men, as none were in sight. Quickly dismounting, he got ready to face the enemy, and as they approached, he fired and hit one. The others pulled back and rode out of rifle range, then regrouped for another charge. As he reached for a cartridge to reload his rifle, North made the shocking discovery that he only had three left; all the rest had been lost during his fast ride. He also realized his horse had been hit by a Cheyenne bullet and was in no shape to run; in fact, it couldn't even be ridden. His situation seemed nearly hopeless, but he decided to make the best of it by retreating on foot, leading his wounded horse for cover to fight from. When the Cheyennes charged him, he would turn to face them, raise his gun as if about to fire, and the Indians, having already felt the sting of his bullets, would drop down behind their horses and pull back, never getting close enough for him to use one of his precious cartridges. After a long, tiring walk of twelve or fifteen miles, during which his moccasin-clad feet were painfully cut by the thorns of the cactus, his pursuers finally gave up, and he reached his unit safely. No sooner had he arrived at camp than he took a fresh horse and sent out a well-mounted group of his men in pursuit of the enemy. They rode hard all afternoon, and when night fell, they dismounted a couple of Pawnees to follow the trail on foot, keeping the pursuit alive. Just after dawn, as they rode into a small clearing in the mountains, a thin column of blue smoke rising from a cluster of cottonwood trees indicated where the hostiles were camped. The Pawnees advanced steadily in double file like soldiers; the Cheyennes, believing they were facing white soldiers, jumped on their horses and rode out to the open hillside to prepare for battle. The Pawnees continued to ride quietly until they were quite close to the Cheyennes, then their loud war whoop broke the morning silence. When the Cheyennes heard this cry, recognizing the attackers as Pawnees, their courage faltered, and they turned to flee. However, by then, seven of their number had already fallen to the Pawnee bullets, and the fresher horses of the Pawnees easily caught up with the weary Cheyennes. None of that group of Cheyennes escaped, and with twenty-seven scalps and all the spoils, the victorious Pawnees returned to their command that afternoon.
Among the captured property were thirty-five horses and mules, some of which had been taken from a party of fifteen soldiers, killed to a man by these Cheyennes but a few days before; there were also the scalps of these soldiers, and wearing apparel [Pg 329] belonging to white women and children, which justified the belief that they had recently massacred a party of emigrants.
Among the captured property were thirty-five horses and mules, some of which had been taken from a group of fifteen soldiers, all killed by these Cheyennes just a few days earlier; there were also the scalps of these soldiers, along with clothing belonging to white women and children, which supported the belief that they had recently killed a group of emigrants. [Pg329]
It was on the occasion of the scalp dance which followed this victory, and when the Scouts were changing their names, as was the custom after a successful encounter with the enemy, that the Pawnees gave to Major North the title Pa´-ni Le-shar (Chief of the Pawnees), a name which has been borne by only one other white man, General John C. Fremont, the Pathfinder.
It was during the scalp dance that followed this victory, and while the Scouts were changing their names, as was the custom after winning against the enemy, that the Pawnees gave Major North the title Pa´-ni Le-shar (Chief of the Pawnees), a name that has only been held by one other white man, General John C. Fremont, the Pathfinder.
The story of the killing of Tall Bull, and the fight with Turkey Leg’s band of Sioux, illustrate the readiness and the daring of Major North in battle. Tall Bull was a chief who commanded a large village of renegade Sioux and Cheyennes, who had given great trouble by their depredations. Major North, with his Pawnees and some white United States troops, had been looking for this village for some time, and at length succeeded in surprising it near Summit Springs. The village was captured in the charge and many of the hostiles killed. Others fled or concealed themselves in the ravines and washouts, which seamed the prairie, and made a desperate fight. The Pawnees were scattered about in little [Pg 330] parties, killing the Indians thus concealed, when Major North and his brother came riding rapidly along, side by side, over the open prairie. They had approached within fifty or sixty yards of a narrow steep-walled ravine, of the existence of which they were ignorant, when an Indian raised his head above its side and fired. The ball whistled between the heads of the two riders; Major North threw up his hands and reeled in the saddle as if about to fall, and the Indian’s head disappeared from sight. Springing from his horse, the Major handed his bridle rein to his brother and directed him to ride away at a gallop. The tramp of the two horses sounded more and more faintly on the hard ground, and the Indian, thinking that the whites were riding off, raised his head to note the effect of his shot. North’s rifle was already leveled at the spot where the head had disappeared, and as the black hair came into view the finger pressed the trigger more and more closely, and as the eyes appeared above the ground, a ball pierced the brain of Tall Bull. A hundred yards up the ravine was found his war pony, stabbed to the heart, and by it sat his squaw, awaiting with Indian patience whatever fate might come to her.
The story of the killing of Tall Bull and the battle with Turkey Leg’s band of Sioux shows Major North's bravery and boldness in combat. Tall Bull was a chief who led a large group of renegade Sioux and Cheyennes, who had caused a lot of trouble with their raids. Major North, along with his Pawnees and some white U.S. soldiers, had been searching for this village for a while and finally managed to surprise it near Summit Springs. They charged in, capturing the village and killing many of the hostiles. Others ran away or hid in the ravines and gullies that crisscrossed the prairie, putting up a fierce fight. The Pawnees were scattered in small groups, taking out the hidden Indians, when Major North and his brother came riding quickly side by side across the open prairie. They got within fifty or sixty yards of a steep-walled ravine they didn't know was there when an Indian popped his head up and fired. The bullet whizzed between the two riders' heads; Major North threw his hands up and swayed in the saddle as if he was going to fall, and the Indian's head vanished from view. Jumping off his horse, the Major handed the reins to his brother and told him to ride away quickly. The sound of the two horses' hooves faded on the hard ground, and the Indian, thinking the whites were leaving, raised his head to see the result of his shot. North's rifle was already aimed at the spot where the head had disappeared, and as the black hair came into view, he tightened his finger on the trigger. As the eyes appeared above the ground, a bullet struck Tall Bull in the brain. A hundred yards up the ravine, they found his war pony, stabbed in the heart, with his squaw sitting beside it, waiting with Indian patience for whatever fate would come her way.
[Pg 331] During one of the summer hunts, on which Major North accompanied the Pawnees, they were one day scattered out over the prairie running buffalo, when all at once North heard the whistle of rifle balls and saw the dirt thrown up about his horse by the bullets. He called to a Pawnee near him to tell those boys to be more careful about shooting. The Pawnee looked in the direction from which the balls were coming, and after an instant called back, “They are Sioux, you had better run.” It was a large party of Sioux under the Chief Turkey Leg.
[Pg331] During one of the summer hunts, where Major North joined the Pawnees, they were spread out over the prairie chasing buffalo when suddenly, North heard the sound of rifle shots and saw dirt flying up around his horse from the bullets. He shouted to a nearby Pawnee to warn the others to be more careful with their shooting. The Pawnee looked toward the source of the shots and, after a moment, shouted back, “They’re Sioux, you’d better run.” It was a large group of Sioux led by Chief Turkey Leg.
North and the Pawnee rode for the bluffs near at hand, and before reaching them were joined by C. D. Morse, his brother-in-law, and half a dozen Pawnees. The little party was surrounded by the Sioux and took refuge in a shallow washout at the head of a ravine, where they were somewhat sheltered from the enemy’s fire by the sunflower stalks and the low edges of the bank. Their horses were at once killed, and the Sioux, who were numerous, became very bold, charging up to the edge of the washout, and shooting down into it.
North and the Pawnee rode towards the nearby bluffs, and before reaching them, they were joined by C. D. Morse, his brother-in-law, and a handful of Pawnees. The small group was surrounded by the Sioux and sought cover in a shallow washout at the top of a ravine, where they had some protection from the enemy’s fire thanks to the sunflower stalks and the low bank. Their horses were immediately killed, and the Sioux, being numerous, grew very aggressive, charging right up to the edge of the washout and shooting down into it.
They were led by an Indian, apparently of some importance, who was conspicuous by a large American flag which he carried. This man was constantly [Pg 332] exhorting his men, and would lead them part way on the charge, turning off, however, before coming within range of the washout, where North and his brother-in-law, with the seven Pawnees, were lying concealed. After each charge he would ride to the top of a hill near at hand, and make a speech to his warriors. It occurred to Major North that if he could kill the man who carried the flag the other Sioux might lose some of their courage. As they were retiring from a charge, therefore, he crept cautiously down the ravine, concealed by the long grass which grew in its bed, until he had come within rifle range of the hill from which the leader was making his speech, and by a careful shot killed him and regained the shelter of the washout without injury.
They were led by an Indian, who seemed quite important, and stood out because he was carrying a large American flag. This man was constantly [Pg332] rallying his men and would lead them partway into the charge, turning away before getting close to the washout where North and his brother-in-law, along with the seven Pawnees, were hiding. After each charge, he would ride to the top of a nearby hill and give a speech to his warriors. Major North thought that if he could take out the guy with the flag, the other Sioux might lose some of their confidence. So, as they were retreating from a charge, he quietly made his way down the ravine, hidden by the tall grass growing along its edge, until he was within rifle range of the hill where the leader was speaking. With a precise shot, he killed him and then slipped back to the safety of the washout without getting hurt.
Disheartened by the fall of their leader, the Sioux made no further attempt to kill the besieged company, but after a little desultory long-range firing drew off, so that North and his little party regained the main village in safety.
Disheartened by the loss of their leader, the Sioux made no further attempts to kill the surrounded group, but after a bit of random long-range shooting, they pulled back, allowing North and his small party to safely return to the main village.
The Pawnee Scouts were last called out in 1876, when General Mackenzie fought the hostile Cheyennes in the Powder River country; and, led by Major North and his brother, they made that famous charge on the village which inflicted on the hostiles the [Pg 333] crushing blow from which they never recovered. How Pa´-ni Le-shar held his men under fire that day, when the bullets were raining on them from the hillsides, was told in a letter written to me by a participant in the fight. “For cool bravery,” it ran, “he beats anything that you ever saw. Why, at one time we were under such hot fire that even our scouts wanted to run, and to tell you the truth, I felt sort of that way myself; but Frank just straightened himself up on the old black horse and said, very quietly, ‘The first one of my men that runs I will kill.’ They didn’t run.”
The Pawnee Scouts were last called out in 1876, when General Mackenzie fought the hostile Cheyennes in the Powder River area; and, led by Major North and his brother, they made that famous charge on the village, delivering a crushing blow that the hostiles never recovered from. How Pa´-ni Le-shar kept his men steady under fire that day, with bullets raining down on them from the hillsides, was described in a letter I received from someone who took part in the fight. “For sheer bravery,” it said, “he surpasses anything you’ve ever seen. There was one moment when we were under such intense fire that even our scouts wanted to flee, and to be honest, I felt that way myself; but Frank just straightened up on the old black horse and said very calmly, ‘The first one of my men that runs I will kill.’ They didn’t run.”
If the full story of Major North’s life were written it would constitute a history of the Indian wars in Nebraska and Wyoming from 1860 to 1876—a history so complete that there would be little left to add to it. Wherever the hostile Indians were worst there Frank North was to be found at the head of his Pawnee Scouts, doing the hardest of the fighting, and accomplishing work that could have been done by no other body of men.
If the complete story of Major North’s life were told, it would be a history of the Indian wars in Nebraska and Wyoming from 1860 to 1876—a history so thorough that there wouldn’t be much left to add. Wherever the hostile Indians were at their fiercest, that’s where Frank North could be found leading his Pawnee Scouts, doing the toughest fighting, and achieving results that no other group of men could have accomplished.
From his long service in the army Major North was known to all officers who have ever been stationed in the field where his operations were conducted, and by all of them he was admired and [Pg 334] respected. He was closely connected with the growth of the State of Nebraska. Several times he represented Platte county in the Legislature, and the strength and uprightness of his character won the confidence of all who knew him. He died at his home in Columbus, Nebraska, March 14, 1885, aged forty-five years.
From his long service in the army, Major North was known to all the officers who had ever been stationed in the field where he operated, and they all admired and respected him. He was closely tied to the growth of the State of Nebraska. He represented Platte County in the Legislature several times, and his strong character and integrity earned him the trust of everyone who knew him. He passed away at his home in Columbus, Nebraska, on March 14, 1885, at the age of forty-five.
His was a singularly lovable nature. If the stronger manly points of his character inspired respect and admiration, not less did his gentleness and consideration for others win the deepest affection. He was modest almost to diffidence, and it was with difficulty that he could be induced to speak of his own heroic achievements. And yet his face told the story of the power within the man.
His nature was uniquely lovable. While the stronger qualities of his character earned respect and admiration, his gentleness and thoughtfulness towards others garnered deep affection. He was so modest that it bordered on shyness, and it took a lot to get him to talk about his own heroic deeds. Yet, his face revealed the strength that lay within him.
The secret of Major North’s success in commanding the Pawnees, who loved him as much as they respected him, lay in the unvarying firmness, justice, patience and kindness with which he treated them. He never demanded anything unreasonable of them, but when he gave an order, even though obedience involved great peril, or appeared to mean certain death, it was a command that must be carried out. He was their commander, but at the same time their brother and friend. Above all, he was [Pg 335] their leader. In going into battle he never said to them, “Go,” but always “Come on.” It is little wonder, then, that the devotion felt for him by all the Pawnee Nation, and especially by the men who had served under him in battle, was as steadfast as it was touching.
The secret to Major North’s success in leading the Pawnees, who loved him just as much as they respected him, was his unwavering firmness, fairness, patience, and kindness while dealing with them. He never asked for anything unreasonable, but when he gave an order—even if following it involved great danger or seemed like a certain death—it was a command that had to be followed. He was their commander, but also their brother and friend. Most importantly, he was their leader. When going into battle, he never told them, “Go,” but always said, “Come on.” It’s no surprise that the loyalty the Pawnee Nation felt for him, especially from the men who had fought alongside him, was as strong as it was heartfelt.
III. WAR PARTIES.
It has already been said that the highest ambition of the Pawnee young man was to be successful in war. His whole training, all his surroundings, caused him to believe that this success was the only thing worth living for. Life at best he regarded as hard enough, and only the fame to be acquired by the performance of brave deeds could sweeten it so as to make it endurable. To convey a notion of the way in which these war parties were originated, and of the manner in which they were led, I give here stories told me by three brave men who in the old days led out many war parties. The three stories were taken down from the lips of the narrators. Only one who is familiar with scenes in an Indian camp can conceive how much these stories lose by being put into cold type. As heard from the lips of the Indian, they have accessories of surroundings, [Pg 336] voice and gesticulation, which add tremendously to their vividness and their interest. Your Indian is a real actor, and in telling a story he throws himself into his tale, and helps out his vocal speech with a sign vocabulary which almost tells the whole story to one who is ignorant of the language.
It has already been noted that the ultimate goal of a Pawnee young man was to achieve success in battle. His entire upbringing and environment led him to believe that this success was the only thing truly worth living for. He viewed life as challenging enough, and only the glory gained from courageous acts could make it bearable. To illustrate how these war parties were organized and led, I will share stories told to me by three brave men who were leaders of many war parties in the past. The three accounts were recorded directly from the narrators. Only someone familiar with the atmosphere of an Indian camp can understand how much these stories lose when transcribed into plain text. When spoken by the Indian, they come with the energy of their surroundings, the nuances of voice, and expressive gestures that greatly enhance their vividness and appeal. The Indian storyteller becomes a true performer; as he narrates, he immerses himself in the story, using a sign language that almost conveys the entire tale to those unfamiliar with the spoken language.
In the middle of the lodge the fire is burning, and over it hangs the pot which is ever bubbling. At the back of the lodge, opposite the doorway, sits the host, and above him to the lodge poles are tied the sacred bundles, their buckskin coverings black with the smoke and wear of years, perhaps of centuries. To the left of the host are the most important guests, and the other inmates of the lodge are scattered about here and there, the women being nearest the door. The host hands the pipe to some young man, who carefully fills it, and soon it is passing around the circle. Then a few remarks are made by the older men, and some question is asked which starts discussion. After that comes a pause, and then a middle-aged warrior begins a story. He is They-know-that-Leader, and he tells how he took the horses:
In the middle of the lodge, the fire is crackling, and above it hangs a pot that’s always bubbling. At the back of the lodge, across from the doorway, sits the host, and above him are the sacred bundles tied to the lodge poles, their buckskin covers darkened by years, maybe even centuries, of smoke and wear. To the left of the host are the most important guests, while the other people in the lodge are scattered around, with the women sitting closest to the door. The host hands the pipe to a young man, who carefully fills it, and soon it’s passed around the circle. Then a few older men share some comments, and a question is raised that sparks a discussion. After a moment of silence, a middle-aged warrior starts to tell a story. He is They-know-that-Leader, and he begins to explain how he captured the horses:
“They tell me that my father was a warrior, and in his time led out many war parties. In my young [Pg 337] days I went out with war parties as a volunteer many times.
“They tell me that my father was a warrior, and during his time, he led many military expeditions. When I was younger, I volunteered to join those expeditions many times."
“In my trips with warriors I had closely watched their ways and movements. I had learned from them how to shoot and how to travel so as to escape discovery. I made three trips as leader. I resolved one time, just as we were setting out on the summer hunt, that during the hunt I would lead a party off on the warpath. I made my plans, but I waited first to make the sacrifice. At that time we did not go far; we came back to the village because the Sioux were about us on the hunt.
“In my journeys with the warriors, I had closely observed their methods and movements. I learned from them how to shoot and how to travel without being noticed. I took charge on three trips. One time, just as we were getting ready for the summer hunt, I decided that during the hunt, I would lead a group on the warpath. I made my plans but waited first to make the sacrifice. At that time, we didn't go far; we returned to the village because the Sioux were around us during the hunt.”
“On a certain day I played all day the stick game (Satsa-wi-kah-tūsh). In the afternoon I had lost everything I had. Late in the afternoon I called a few of the young men to sit down with me. When they had come and sat down with me, there were only a few. I said to them, ‘I have called you together to let you know that I am poor in mind. I want to find out if Ti-ra´-wa will take pity on me and help me. I intend that you and I shall go off somewhere on the warpath. Make your preparations to start in two days. Get your moccasins filled with food, get your awls and sinews, your arrows and your bows.’
“On a certain day, I played the stick game (Satsa-wi-kah-tūsh) all day long. By the afternoon, I had lost everything I owned. Later in the afternoon, I called over a few young men to sit with me. When they came and sat down, there were only a few of them. I said to them, ‘I’ve gathered you here to let you know that I’m struggling mentally. I want to find out if Ti-ra´-wa will take pity on me and help me. I plan for us to go somewhere on the warpath. Start getting ready to leave in two days. Pack your moccasins with food, and bring your awls and sinews, your arrows, and your bows.’”
[Pg 338] “On the day I had set, in the night, we went out from the village, having with us the old man who had performed the ceremonies of the sacred things that I was to have with me. On the outskirts of the village, we stood in a row, and the old man prayed for our success. Then we were ready to start.
[Pg338] “On the day I planned, at night, we left the village, taking with us the old man who had conducted the ceremonies for the sacred items I was to carry. On the edge of the village, we lined up, and the old man prayed for our success. Then we were set to go.
“Different war parties had gone out before I started, but I considered to see if there was not some way in which I could beat them. I made a plan by which I got ahead of them. We traveled fast, and went up to Grand Island to get some arrows—for my young men had but few arrows—and also to get some provisions. The next morning we again started, and went as far as we could that day. At night I performed ceremonies, as I had been directed. I filled a pipe and smoked to Ti-ra´-wa, as we have always done. That is the first thing we have to do. Then I told some of my young men to build a fire, and others to go off to a distance to watch.
“Different war parties had already set out before I left, but I thought about finding a way to outsmart them. I made a plan to get ahead of them. We traveled quickly and headed to Grand Island to gather some arrows—since my young men had very few—and also to collect some supplies. The next morning, we set off again and went as far as we could that day. At night, I carried out ceremonies as instructed. I filled a pipe and smoked to Ti-ra´-wa, as we always do. That is the first thing we need to do. Then, I told some of my young men to build a fire and others to spread out and keep watch.”
“On a war party some one was always taken along who could shoot well. This time we had no one except myself. The next day I killed an antelope, but I did not sacrifice then, because those are not animals which we sacrifice. We had been gone three [Pg 339] nights more before I killed anything more. The fourth day I killed a buck deer, and I sacrificed it. From that day on I never killed anything.
“On a war party, someone was always taken along who could shoot well. This time, it was just me. The next day, I killed an antelope, but I didn’t sacrifice it then because those aren’t the animals we sacrifice. We had been gone three [Pg339] nights before I killed anything else. On the fourth day, I killed a buck deer, and I sacrificed it. From that day on, I never killed anything.”
“After I had been out nine days I stole the horses. It was not always the same about stealing horses. It was not always done in the same way. It was daytime when my scouts discovered that there were people about; they saw signs of a village. They told me afterward that they had heard reports of guns during the day. They had not come back to tell me of this, but had gone by. I was coming on behind with the young men, when all at once I heard the report of a gun. As soon as I heard it I stopped, and sent two spies out to see what it was, and whether a camp was near. They wandered about in the timber, and came back and said that they saw nothing. I told my men that we would go off to a distance and wait there during the night. We waited there until morning, and when the sun got up we heard the report of guns in different directions, and sometimes coming toward us. We went to a cañon, and hid in the plum brush, and ate plums. Of course we were afraid, but we ate the plums. We thought that this might be the last time we would ever have any plums. They were shooting all about us, and seemed [Pg 340] to be coming closer. In the afternoon, the shots stopped, and they went on to their camp.
“After I had been out for nine days, I stole the horses. It wasn’t always the same when it came to stealing horses. It wasn’t done the same way every time. It was daytime when my scouts noticed that there were people around; they saw signs of a village. They later told me that they had heard gunfire throughout the day. They didn’t come back to inform me about it but kept moving on. I was coming up behind with the young men when suddenly I heard a gunshot. As soon as I heard it, I stopped and sent two spies out to find out what it was and if there was a nearby camp. They wandered through the woods and came back saying they didn’t see anything. I told my men that we would move off a distance and wait there overnight. We waited there until morning, and when the sun rose, we heard gunfire in different directions, sometimes coming toward us. We went to a canyon, hid in the plum brush, and ate plums. Of course, we were scared, but we ate the plums anyway. We thought this might be the last time we would ever have plums. They were shooting all around us and seemed to be getting closer. In the afternoon, the shooting stopped, and they moved on to their camp.”
“While we were hiding here, many of the party feared that we had been seen. They wanted to start back as soon as it grew dark, but I deceived them. I told them that I was very thirsty, and that we would have to go down to a certain place near the river, and get a drink of water. After night we started, and as we were going along, we heard a dog bark. We stopped and sat down, and I told my companions that two men, whom I called by name, were to go and steal horses. ‘But,’ I said, ‘I am going with them to look after them.’ I told them to pull off their leggings and moccasins, because the brush was dry and caught on them, making a noise. We went together to a certain place near the village, and then these young men told me that they had been there the day before and had been discovered. Then they turned around and went back to where the party were hiding, but I went on to the village.
“While we were hiding here, many in the group were worried that we had been spotted. They wanted to head back as soon as it got dark, but I tricked them. I told them I was really thirsty and we needed to go to a spot near the river to get some water. After nightfall, we set out, and as we were walking, we heard a dog bark. We stopped and sat down, and I told my friends that two guys, whom I named, were going to steal horses. ‘But,’ I said, ‘I’m going with them to keep an eye on things.’ I told them to take off their leggings and moccasins because the dry brush was getting caught on them and making noise. We went together to a specific spot near the village, and then these young men told me they had been there the day before and had been caught. Then they turned back to where the group was hiding, but I continued on to the village.”
“When I came close to the village everything was still; the people were asleep. Where I entered the camp, there was a little timber growing, and here I stopped. While I was considering what I should do, a girl came out of a lodge, but she went away from [Pg 341] me. If she had come toward me I should have killed her, for she would have discovered me. After the girl had entered a lodge, I went into the camp to where there were some horses. I drove them out of the camp. Six went back, and I drove nine to where I had left my party. The two that I had ordered to steal horses for me were there. When I came to the place, and found all my men there, I said to them, ‘This is very good. I have stolen some horses for you. Now I will go back and get the rest of them for you.’ One of the other men persuaded me not to go again, but to let him go. He did so, and brought the six other horses.
“When I got close to the village, everything was quiet; the people were asleep. As I entered the camp, there were some small trees growing, and I paused there. While I was thinking about what to do next, a girl came out of a lodge, but she walked away from me. If she had approached me, I would have killed her because she would have spotted me. Once the girl went into a lodge, I made my way into the camp where the horses were. I drove them out of the camp. Six returned, but I took nine to where I had left my group. The two men I had sent to steal horses for me were there. When I reached the spot and saw all my men, I said to them, ‘This is great. I’ve stolen some horses for you. Now I’ll go back and get the rest.’ One of the other men convinced me not to go again and offered to do it instead. He did, and he brought back the six other horses.”
“It was the custom, if it was very difficult or dangerous to go to a place to steal horses, for the leader himself to go and do the work.
“It was the tradition that if it was really tough or risky to go somewhere to steal horses, the leader would personally go and handle it.”
“After two nights on the return journey I divided the horses among the men. It used to be the custom after a party had been successful and brought back the horses for them to change their names. After this trip my name was changed to ‘They-know-that-Leader.’ It was the custom among the Pawnees if they brought in horses to make an offering. We felt that we owed something to Ti-ra´-wa, and we gave a horse to the priest, the old man who had performed [Pg 342] the ceremonies. I was gone but thirteen days, and returned to my tribe.”
“After two nights on the way back, I divided the horses among the men. It was a tradition that after a group was successful and returned with horses, they would change their names. After this trip, my name changed to ‘They-know-that-Leader.’ It was a Pawnee custom to make an offering when they brought in horses. We felt we owed something to Ti-ra´-wa, so we gave a horse to the priest, the old man who had performed [Pg342] the ceremonies. I was gone for just thirteen days and returned to my tribe.”
After him follows A-ka-pa-kish—Pities-the-Poor. He, too, tells his story, and explains why one of his war parties was unsuccessful:
After him comes A-ka-pa-kish—Pities-the-Poor. He also shares his story and explains why one of his war parties didn’t succeed:
“My father told me, if I should ever want to go off on a war party, to humble myself, and not to let a day pass without praying to Ti-ra´-wa by my smokes. I must always remember to pray to Ti-ra´-wa to give me a strong will, and to encourage and bless me in my worship to him. Even when I was eating I must always remember to pray to him. This I must do for some time before starting out.
“My father told me that if I ever wanted to go on a war party, I should stay humble and remember to pray to Ti-ra´-wa by my smokes every day. I should always ask Ti-ra´-wa for a strong will and for encouragement and blessings in my worship of him. Even while eating, I should keep him in my thoughts and pray to him. I need to do this for a while before setting out.”
“At one time I felt that I was poor, and I resolved to go off on the warpath. A warrior, whom I knew, went out and took a lot of horses. He had been as poor as I. I believed that this man had got his horses because he had prayed to Ti-ra´-wa, and I thought, ‘If I pray to Ti-ra´-wa, why may I not do the same.’ So I prayed. No one else knew what I intended. After I had made up my mind, I selected another man, one whom I could trust, and called him to tell him of my resolve. I made him sit by me in the lodge, and said to him, ‘I want you [Pg 343] to sit by me to-day, and smoke, and learn my intention.’ After we had smoked, I said to him, ‘My friend, I want you to know that we are on the warpath. We are going out to look for some horses.’ After he had smoked, the other man replied, saying, ‘Brother, it is well. Let us ask Ti-ra´-wa to take pity on us, to help us on our war trip, and to let us bring home many horses.’ We two were the leaders.
“At one time, I felt really poor, and I decided to go on the warpath. A warrior I knew had gone out and taken a lot of horses. He had been just as poor as I was. I believed he got his horses because he prayed to Ti-ra´-wa, and I thought, ‘If I pray to Ti-ra´-wa, why can’t I do the same?’ So I prayed. No one else knew what I was planning. Once I made my decision, I picked another man I could trust and called him over to share my plan. I made him sit next to me in the lodge and said, ‘I want you to sit with me today, smoke, and learn my intention.’ After we smoked, I told him, ‘My friend, I want you to know that we are on the warpath. We’re going out to look for some horses.’ After he smoked, the other man replied, saying, ‘Brother, that sounds good. Let’s ask Ti-ra´-wa to take pity on us, to help us on our war trip, and to let us bring home many horses.’ We were the two leaders.”
“Some time after we had talked together, and made up our minds what we would do, we selected certain young men that we could depend on, and told them that we were on the warpath. This was done in this way. We selected a pipe with which to have a sacred smoke, filled it and smoked. Then we called together into the lodge the others, who did not know our purpose. After they had assembled, I filled the pipe, and said, ‘We are going on a war party. We have filled this pipe, and must decide what is to be done.’ Then I passed the pipe to the man who sat next to me. If he wished to join us he smoked, and passed it to the next man. It was not allowed for any one to smoke unless he would go with this party. Some might refuse the pipe, saying, ‘I have decided to go with another party.’ The [Pg 344] smoking of the pipe was a promise that the leader could depend on the man who smoked.
“Some time after we had talked and made up our minds about what to do, we picked certain young men we could trust and let them know we were preparing for war. We did this by selecting a pipe for a sacred smoke, filling it, and smoking. Then we gathered the others in the lodge, who didn’t know our intentions. Once they were all there, I filled the pipe and said, ‘We’re going on a war party. We’ve filled this pipe, and we need to decide what to do.’ Then I passed the pipe to the man next to me. If he wanted to join us, he smoked and passed it to the next person. No one was allowed to smoke unless they were willing to go with this party. Some might refuse the pipe, saying, ‘I’ve decided to go with another party.’ The [Pg344] smoking of the pipe was a promise that the leader could count on the man who smoked.”
“They used to have a certain ceremony to follow before starting out on the warpath. It was something handed down, a special manner of praying to Ti-ra´-wa that he would bless them in their warfare.
“They used to have a specific ceremony to follow before heading out on the warpath. It was something passed down, a unique way of praying to Ti-ra´-wa for his blessing in their battles."
“At last everything was ready for the start. The young men had their packs made up. They carried cooked pounded corn, and pounded buffalo meat mixed with tallow; and sometimes the loads were heavy. Some would carry ten pairs of moccasins, each one stuffed full of corn, or pounded buffalo meat. They were well fed. The loads were so heavy that at first we would only make short marches. The leaders had to see that the young men were not overworked.
“At last everything was ready to go. The young men had their packs packed. They carried cooked, pounded corn and pounded buffalo meat mixed with fat; sometimes the loads were heavy. Some carried ten pairs of moccasins, each stuffed full of corn or pounded buffalo meat. They were well fed. The loads were so heavy that at first we could only take short walks. The leaders had to make sure the young men weren’t overworked.”
“When all was ready, the priest who performed the ceremonies met us. He brought with him the sacred bundle which we were to take with us. At night when it was all still, after every one was asleep, the ceremonies were performed. We smoked and worshiped to the east and west, and to the north and south, and prayed for success.
“When everything was set, the priest who conducted the ceremonies met us. He brought along the sacred bundle that we were to take with us. At night when it was quiet, after everyone had gone to sleep, the ceremonies took place. We smoked and worshiped to the east and west, as well as to the north and south, and prayed for success."
“On that night we started, and went as far as we could; and the next day, toward evening, when we [Pg 345] stopped, we dug out a fire-place, like the one in a lodge, and we two leaders sat by it, facing the east, while before us were the sacred things. The leader has to be a good orator, he has to speak to his young men, and advise them well, encouraging them to be strong-hearted. He would speak to them and say, ‘We have but a short time to live, so while we are on this trip let us determine to be single-minded. Let us all look to Ti-ra´-wa, who is the ruler over all things, and ask him to take pity on us, and bless our warpath. We must respect the animals that the ruler has made and not kill any of them; no birds, nor wolves, nor any creeping things.’ Not a night passed but that, after we were seated in a circle, I would talk to the party, and pray, and hope that Ti-ra´-wa would bless us and take pity on us, and that we might be the party that would have good success. On my war parties I had to watch at all times, even when I was resting, to see that my young men should, before they slept, pray to Ti-ra´-wa that they might dream something good, and that it might come to pass.
“On that night we set off and went as far as we could; the next day, around evening, when we paused, we built a fire pit, similar to the one in a lodge, and the two of us leaders sat by it, facing east, while the sacred items were in front of us. A leader needs to be a good speaker; he has to address his young men, give them wise advice, and inspire them to be courageous. He would tell them, ‘Our time is short, so during this journey, let’s commit to being united in purpose. Let’s all look to Ti-ra´-wa, who is in charge of everything, and ask him to have mercy on us and bless our journey. We have to respect the creatures that the ruler has created and not harm any of them; no birds, wolves, or any insects.’ Not a night went by that, after we were seated in a circle, I wouldn’t talk to the group, pray, and hope that Ti-ra´-wa would bless us and show us compassion, and that we would be the group that achieved great success. On my war parties, I had to stay alert at all times, even while resting, to ensure that my young men prayed to Ti-ra´-wa before sleeping, so they could dream something positive and see it come true.”
“The old priest who had performed the ceremonies, and had let me take the sacred things, had told me to kill a particular kind of animal, a deer, and [Pg 346] sacrifice it. I sent some spies ahead to look over the country, and a messenger came back from them, saying that they had seen some animals. He did not describe them, and I ordered the messenger to have the hunter kill them. I heard the report of a gun. The hunter with two shots killed three. They were antelope. When the hunter came to me he told me what he had done, and described the animals which he had killed. They were not the animals I had been directed to kill for the sacrifice. I hesitated, for I did not know what to do. I did not wish to eat these animals before the sacrifice had been made. To do this is bad. It troubled me. I was troubled, because if we ate them it would look as if we cared nothing for Ti-ra´-wa. Finally we ate what had been killed, and made no sacrifice. Afterward we killed two more and ate them, and still made no sacrifice.
“The old priest who had performed the rituals and allowed me to take the sacred items told me to kill a specific type of animal, a deer, and sacrifice it. I sent some scouts ahead to scout the area, and a messenger returned from them, saying they had spotted some animals. He didn’t describe them, so I ordered the messenger to have the hunter take them down. I heard a gunshot. The hunter killed three with two shots. They were antelope. When the hunter came to me, he told me what he had done and described the animals he had killed. They weren’t the animals I was supposed to kill for the sacrifice. I hesitated because I didn’t know what to do. I didn’t want to eat these animals before the sacrifice had been made. Doing that is wrong. It bothered me. I was worried because if we ate them, it would seem like we didn’t care about Ti-ra´-wa. In the end, we ate what had been killed and made no sacrifice. Later, we killed two more and ate them, and still made no sacrifice.”
“One night I dreamed that the hunter had shot a buffalo. It fell, but as we went up to it, it got up and ran off. We went on for eight days, and had made no sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa. One day my scouts saw a man sitting on a hill. Some of them wanted to shoot at him, but the others said ‘no.’ They came back to tell me about it, and when they had [Pg 347] returned to the place where they had seen him, the man was gone. The man had seen my spies. Not far off was a village, and the warriors in it came to look for us, but we ran away. They hunted for us, but we had got out of their sight. After this we came back home.”
“One night I dreamed that a hunter had shot a buffalo. It fell, but when we approached it, it got up and ran away. We traveled for eight days without making any sacrifice to Ti-ra´-wa. One day my scouts spotted a man sitting on a hill. Some of them wanted to shoot him, but others said ‘no.’ They returned to tell me about it, and when they went back to where they had seen him, the man was gone. The man had noticed my scouts. Not far away was a village, and the warriors there came looking for us, but we ran away. They searched for us, but we had disappeared from their sight. After that, we returned home.”
Curly Chief, second chief of the Kit-ke-hahk´-i band, is the last, and he tells how he sacrificed a scalp:
Curly Chief, the second chief of the Kit-ke-hahk'i band, is the last one, and he shares how he sacrificed a scalp:
“It was in the fall, before the winter buffalo hunt was made, that I thought I would go on the warpath. Every little while I would call a few men to sit down with me, and would tell them that I had it in mind to go on the warpath.
“It was in the fall, before the winter buffalo hunt, that I thought I would go fight. Every now and then, I would gather a few guys to sit with me and tell them that I was thinking about going into battle.”
“The people went out on the winter hunt and killed buffalo, and while they were on their way back to the village, I started on the warpath with a number of young men. From the camp we went south to the Arkansas River. When we reached that river, it began to snow, and the snow fell six feet deep. We stopped in one place eleven days, till the snow got less deep. From there we went on to the sandhills by the North Canadian. One day as we were going along, we saw far off three Indians on foot. They [Pg 348] were Kiowas. Probably they had been on the warpath and had lost their horses. We attacked and killed them. They did not fight. We killed them like women. Then, indeed, we divided the scalps, and made many of them. From there we started home, and found the tribe camped on the Solomon River. When we reached home there was great joy, and we danced the scalp dance.
“The people went out on the winter hunt and killed buffalo, and while they were on their way back to the village, I set out on the warpath with a group of young men. From the camp, we headed south to the Arkansas River. When we got to that river, it started to snow, and the snow piled up six feet deep. We stayed in one spot for eleven days until the snow wasn't as deep. After that, we continued on to the sandhills by the North Canadian. One day, as we were traveling, we spotted three Indians in the distance on foot. They were Kiowas. They had probably been on the warpath and lost their horses. We attacked and killed them. They didn’t fight back. We killed them easily. Then, we divided the scalps and made many of them. After that, we headed home and found the tribe camped on the Solomon River. When we got home, there was great joy, and we danced the scalp dance.”

CURLY CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I.
CURLY CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I.
“I sacrificed a scalp to Ti-ra´-wa. I felt that he [Pg 349] had given me the victory over my enemies, and for this reason I wanted to give him something, I wanted to make an acknowledgment of his goodness to me. He had taken pity on me and helped me. It was a sacrifice greater than the sacrifice of the buffalo meat. Not many men have made it, but once in a while you see some one who has been noticed by the Ruler. It is our aim, after we have been helped, to give thanks.”
“I sacrificed a scalp to Ti-ra´-wa. I felt that he [Pg349] had given me the victory over my enemies, and for this reason I wanted to offer him something, I wanted to acknowledge his kindness to me. He had shown me mercy and assisted me. It was a sacrifice greater than giving up buffalo meat. Not many men do this, but occasionally you see someone who has been acknowledged by the Ruler. It’s our goal, after receiving help, to show our gratitude.”

PAWNEE DIRT LODGE.
Pawnee Dirt Lodge.
RELIGION.
I. BELIEFS.
IT is generally believed that, among the Indians of North America, the priests and the shamans, “medicine men,” or doctors, are the same. This is not the case with the Pawnees. Among them the priestly office was entirely distinct from that of the doctor, and had nothing in common with it. The priest was in a sense the medium of communication with Ti-ra´-wa; he prayed to the deity more efficaciously than could a common person, acted, in fact, as an intercessor; he knew the secrets of the sacred bundles, and when he asked anything good for the tribe, or for an individual, it was likely to be granted. His education and the power given him from above brought him into specially close relations with Ti-ra´-wa, who seemed to watch over him and to [Pg 351] listen to him when he interceded for the tribe. He was an intermediary between Ti-ra´-wa and the people, and held a relation to the Pawnees and their deity not unlike that occupied by Moses to Jehovah and the Israelites.
IT is generally believed that, among the Indigenous peoples of North America, priests, shamans, “medicine men,” or doctors are the same. However, this is not true for the Pawnees. For them, the role of a priest was completely separate from that of a doctor and had no overlap. The priest was essentially a medium of communication with Ti-ra´-wa; he prayed to the deity more effectively than an average person could and acted as an intercessor. He knew the secrets of the sacred bundles, and when he asked for good things on behalf of the tribe or an individual, it was likely to happen. His training and the divine power granted to him established a special connection with Ti-ra´-wa, who seemed to keep an eye on him and listen to his intercessions for the tribe. He served as a link between Ti-ra´-wa and the people and had a relationship with the Pawnees and their deity similar to that of Moses with Jehovah and the Israelites.
The office of the “medicine man,” shaman or doctor, had to do only with sickness or injury. He was the healer. Disease was caused by bad spirits, and it was the doctor’s part to drive off these evil influences.
The role of the "medicine man," shaman, or doctor was solely focused on illness or injury. He was the healer. Diseases were believed to be caused by bad spirits, and it was the doctor's job to drive away these harmful influences.
In the lodge or house of every Pawnee of influence, hanging on the west side, and so opposite the door, is the sacred bundle neatly wrapped in buckskin, and black with smoke and age. What these bundles contain we do not know. Sometimes, from the ends, protrude bits of scalps, and the tips of pipe stems and slender sticks, but the whole contents of the bundle are known only to the priests and to its owner—perhaps, not always even to him. The sacred bundles are kept on the west side of the lodge, because, being thus furthest from the door, fewer people will pass by them than if they were hung in any other part of the lodge. Various superstitions attach to these bundles. In the lodges where certain of them are kept it is forbidden to put a [Pg 352] knife in the fire; in others, a knife may not be thrown; in others, it is not permitted to enter the lodge with the face painted; or again, a man cannot go in if he has feathers tied in his head.
In the lodge or house of every influential Pawnee, there's a sacred bundle wrapped in buckskin, hanging on the west side, directly opposite the door. We don’t know what these bundles hold. Sometimes, you can see bits of scalps, the ends of pipe stems, and slender sticks sticking out, but only the priests and the owner know the complete contents—maybe not even the owner always knows. The sacred bundles are placed on the west side of the lodge so that fewer people will pass by them since they are the farthest from the door. Various superstitions surround these bundles. In the lodges where certain bundles are kept, it’s forbidden to put a knife in the fire; in others, you can’t throw a knife; in some, you can’t enter the lodge with painted faces; or a man can’t go in if he has feathers tied in his hair.
On certain sacred occasions the bundles are opened, and their contents form part of the ceremonial of worship.
On specific holy occasions, the bundles are opened, and what’s inside becomes part of the worship ceremony.
No one knows whence the bundles came. Many of them are very old; too old even to have a history. Their origin is lost in the haze of the long ago. They say, “The sacred bundles were given us long ago. No one knows when they came to us.” Secret Pipe Chief, one of the very oldest men in the tribe, and its High Priest, said to me:
No one knows where the bundles came from. Many of them are really old; so old that they don't even have a history. Their origin is lost in the fog of the distant past. People say, "The sacred bundles were given to us a long time ago. No one knows when they arrived." Secret Pipe Chief, one of the oldest men in the tribe and its High Priest, said to me:
“All the sacred bundles are from the far off country in the southwest, from which we came long ago. They were handed down to the people before they started on their journey. Then they had never seen anything like iron, but they had discovered how to make the flint knives and arrow points. There was nothing that came to us through the whites. It all came to us through the power of Ti-ra´-wa. Through his power we were taught how to make bows and stone knives and arrow heads.
“All the sacred bundles are from the distant land in the southwest, where we originated long ago. They were passed down to our people before they began their journey. At that time, they had never seen anything like iron, but they knew how to create flint knives and arrow points. Everything that we received came not from the whites, but through the power of Ti-ra´-wa. Through his power, we learned how to make bows, stone knives, and arrowheads.”
“It was through the Ruler of the universe that the [Pg 353] sacred bundles were given to us. We look to them, because, through them and the buffalo and the corn, we worship Ti-ra´-wa. We all, even the chiefs, respect the sacred bundles. When a man goes on the warpath, and has led many scouts and brought the scalps, he has done it through the sacred bundles. There were many different ceremonies that they used to go through. The high priest performs these ceremonies.
“It was through the Ruler of the universe that the [Pg353] sacred bundles were given to us. We honor them, because through them, along with the buffalo and the corn, we worship Ti-ra´-wa. All of us, even the chiefs, respect the sacred bundles. When a man goes into battle, having led many scouts and brought back scalps, he has achieved this through the sacred bundles. There were many different ceremonies they performed. The high priest conducts these ceremonies.
“The high priestship was founded in this way: The black eagle spoke to a person, and said to him, ‘I am one of those nearest to Ti-ra´-wa, and you must look to me to be helped; to the birds and the animals—look to me, the black eagle, to the white-headed eagle, to the otter and the buffalo.’
“The high priesthood was established like this: The black eagle spoke to someone, saying, ‘I am one of those closest to Ti-ra´-wa, and you must turn to me for help; to the birds and the animals—look to me, the black eagle, to the white-headed eagle, to the otter and the buffalo.’”
“The black eagle sent the buzzard as a messenger to this person, and he gave him the corn. The secrets of the high priestship and the other secrets were handed down at the same time. The buzzard, because he is bald, stands for the old men who have little hair. The white-headed eagle also represents the old men, those whose hair is white. These are the messengers through whom Ti-ra´-wa sends his words to the people. The Wichitas also had these secrets, and so have the Rees.”
“The black eagle sent the buzzard as a messenger to this person, and he gave him the corn. The secrets of the high priesthood and other secrets were passed down at the same time. The buzzard, being bald, symbolizes the elderly men who have little hair. The white-headed eagle also represents the elderly, specifically those whose hair is white. These are the messengers through whom Ti-ra´-wa sends his messages to the people. The Wichitas also held these secrets, as did the Rees.”
[Pg 354] The Pawnees believe that they were created by Ti-ra´-wa, but that there had been people on the earth before them. They say, “The first men who lived on the earth were very large Indians. They were giants; very big and very strong. The animals that lived then were the same that we know now, and of the same size. These giants used to hunt the buffalo on foot. They were so swift and strong that a man could run down a buffalo, and kill it with a great stone, or a club, or even with his flint knife. Then, when he had killed it, if it was a big buffalo bull, he would tie it up, throw it over his back, and carry it into camp, just as a man to-day would carry in an antelope. When one killed a yearling, he would push its head up under his belt, and let its body swing by his side, just as we would carry a rabbit.
[Pg354] The Pawnees believe they were created by Ti-ra´-wa, but claim that there were people on Earth before them. They say, “The first men who lived on Earth were very large Indians. They were giants; really big and strong. The animals that lived then were the same as we know now, and of the same size. These giants used to hunt buffalo on foot. They were so fast and strong that a man could run down a buffalo and kill it with a big stone, a club, or even his flint knife. Then, when he killed it, if it was a big buffalo bull, he would tie it up, throw it over his back, and carry it into camp, just like a man today would carry in an antelope. When someone killed a yearling, he would push its head up under his belt and let its body swing by his side, just as we would carry a rabbit.
“These people did not believe in Ti-ra´-wa. When it would thunder and rain, they would shake their fists at the sky and call out bad words. In these days all people, wherever they live—all Indians, all white men, all Mexicans and all black men—when they smoke up, speak to A-ti´-us Ti-ra´-wa, and ask that he will give them the right kind of a mind, and that he will bless them, so that they may have plenty to eat, and may be successful in war, [Pg 355] and may be made chiefs and head men. When we smoke toward the earth we say, ‘Father of the dead, you see us.’ This means that this is Ti-ra´-wa’s ground. It belongs to him, and we ask him that he will let us walk on it, and will let us be buried in it. We believe that after we are dead we will live again with Ti-ra´-wa up in the sky. We fear nothing after death worse than we know now. All will live again with Ti-ra´-wa and be happy. A thief, one who steals from others in the camp, one who is bad, dies, and that is the end of him. He goes into the ground, and does not live again. One reason why we believe that there is a life after death is that sometimes, when asleep, we dream and see these things. We see ourselves living with Ti-ra´-wa. Then, too, we often dream of our people whom we have known, and who have died. We dream of being dead ourselves, and of meeting these people and talking with them, and going to war with them.
“These people didn’t believe in Ti-ra´-wa. When it thundered and rained, they would shake their fists at the sky and curse. Nowadays, everyone—Indians, whites, Mexicans, and black people—when they smoke, they talk to A-ti´-us Ti-ra´-wa, asking him to give them a good mind and to bless them with enough to eat and success in war, [Pg355] so they can become chiefs and leaders. When we smoke toward the ground, we say, ‘Father of the dead, you see us.’ This means that this is Ti-ra´-wa’s land. It belongs to him, and we ask him to let us walk on it and to allow us to be buried in it. We believe that after we die, we will live again with Ti-ra´-wa in the sky. We fear nothing after death worse than what we know now. Everyone will live again with Ti-ra´-wa and be happy. A thief, someone who steals from others in the camp, a bad person, dies, and that’s the end for them. They go into the ground and don’t come back to life. One reason we believe in life after death is that sometimes, when we sleep, we dream and see these things. We see ourselves living with Ti-ra´-wa. We also often dream of our loved ones who have passed away. We dream of being dead ourselves, meeting these people, talking with them, and going to war with them.”
“Now, these giants did not believe in any of these things. They did not pray to Ti-ra´-wa, and they thought that they were very strong, and that nothing could overcome them. They grew worse and worse. At last Ti-ra´-wa got angry, and he made [Pg 356] the water rise up level with the land, and all the ground became soft, and these great people sank down into the mud and were drowned. The great bones found on the prairie are the bones of these people, and we have been in deep cañons, and have seen big bones under ground, which convinces us that these people did sink into the soft ground.
“Now, these giants didn’t believe in any of this. They didn’t pray to Ti-ra´-wa and thought they were invincible, that nothing could defeat them. They only grew worse over time. Finally, Ti-ra´-wa became angry and caused the water to rise level with the land, making the ground soft. These giants sank into the mud and drowned. The large bones found on the prairie belong to these people, and we’ve explored deep canyons and seen big bones underground, convincing us that these giants did sink into the soft ground.”
“After the destruction of the race of giants, Ti-ra´-wa created a new race of men, small, like those of to-day. He made first a man and a woman. They lived on the earth and were good. To them was given the corn. From this man and this woman the Pawnees sprung, and they have always cultivated the corn from the earliest times.”
“After the giants were wiped out, Ti-ra´-wa created a new race of humans, small like people today. He first made a man and a woman. They lived on the earth and were good. They were given corn. From this man and this woman came the Pawnee, and they have always grown corn since ancient times.”
There can be no doubt as to the belief of the Pawnees in a future life. The spirits of the dead live after their bodies have become dust. The stories of the Ghost Bride and the Ghost Wife, already given, are examples of this belief. Secret Pipe Chief told me of himself:
There’s no doubt about the Pawnees’ belief in an afterlife. The spirits of the dead continue to exist after their bodies turn to dust. The stories of the Ghost Bride and the Ghost Wife, which have already been shared, illustrate this belief. Secret Pipe Chief told me about his own experiences:
“I was dead once. Just as I died, I found my way leading to an Indian village. I entered it, and went straight to the lodge of my friends and my relations. I saw them, and when I saw them I knew them again. I even knew my old relations, [Pg 357] whom I had never looked on when I was alive. I went into a lodge, but I was not offered a seat, and I thought that I was not welcome. I came out of the lodge, and went out of the village toward the west. Then I came back to life again. In the morning I had died, and I came to life in the afternoon. That must be the reason that I still live, and am getting old. I was not welcome yet. They did not receive me. From this I am convinced that there is a life after we are dead.”
“I was dead once. Just as I died, I found my way to an Indian village. I walked in and headed straight to the lodge of my friends and family. I saw them, and when I did, I recognized them again. I even knew my old relatives, [Pg357] whom I had never seen when I was alive. I entered a lodge, but I wasn’t offered a seat, and I felt unwelcome. I left the lodge and walked out of the village toward the west. Then I came back to life. In the morning, I had died, and I came back in the afternoon. That must be why I’m still alive and getting older. I wasn’t welcome yet. They didn’t accept me. From this, I’m convinced that there is life after death.”
Sometimes ghosts appear to them, but more often they merely speak to them; only a voice is heard. They believe that the little whirlwinds often seen in summer are ghosts. The reason for this is that once a person shot at a whirlwind with his arrow. The arrow passed through it, and it all disappeared and came to nothing. Then the man was convinced that it was a ghost, and that he had killed it.
Sometimes ghosts show up, but more often they just talk; you only hear a voice. They think that the little whirlwinds you often see in summer are ghosts. This belief comes from an incident when someone shot an arrow at a whirlwind. The arrow went right through it, and it vanished completely. After that, the man was sure that it was a ghost and that he had killed it.
The different bands of the Pawnees had not all the same beliefs. Thus the Skidi band offered up the human sacrifice—a captive taken in war—to the morning star. This is thought to have been a propitiatory offering to avert the evil influences exerted by that planet. At the present day the Indians speak of the sacrifice as having been made to [Pg 358] Ti-ra´-wa. None of the other tribes had this form of worship, and in this fact we have another indication that the separation of the Skidi from the Pawnees had been a long one. The Ka-wa-ra-kish band of the Pita-hau-erat, are said to have been “the only ones of the Pawnees who did not worship Ti-ra´-wa. They worshiped toward the west.”
The different bands of the Pawnees didn't all have the same beliefs. For example, the Skidi band performed human sacrifices—specifically a captive taken in war—to the morning star. This is believed to have been a way to please that planet and prevent its negative influences. Today, the Indians refer to the sacrifice as having been made to [Pg358] Ti-ra´-wa. No other tribes practiced this form of worship, which further suggests that the Skidi have been separate from the Pawnees for a long time. The Ka-wa-ra-kish band of the Pita-hau-erat are said to be “the only ones of the Pawnees who did not worship Ti-ra´-wa. They worshiped toward the west.”
Mention has been made of the Nahu´rac, or animals, which possess miraculous attributes given them by Ti-ra´-wa. The Pawnees know of five places where these animals meet to hold council—five of these Nahu´rac lodges. One of these is at Pa-hŭk´, on the south side of the Platte River, opposite the town of Fremont, in Nebraska. The word Pa-hŭk´ means “hill island.” Another animal home is under an island in the Platte River, near the town of Central City. It is called by the Pawnees La-la-wa-koh-ti-to, meaning “dark island.” The third of these sacred places is on the Loup Fork, opposite the mouth of the Cedar River, and under a high, white cut bank. It is called Ah-ka-wit-akol, “white bank.” Another is on the Solomon River, Kitz-a-witz-ŭk, “water on a bank;” it is called Pa´howa sometimes. This is a mound, shaped like a dirt lodge. At the top of the mound, in the [Pg 359] middle, is a round hole, in which, down below, can be seen water. At certain times, the people gather there, and throw into this hole their offerings to Ti-ra´-wa, blankets and robes, blue beads, tobacco, eagle feathers and moccasins. Sometimes, when they are gathered there, the water rises to the top of the hole, and flows out, running down the side of the mound into the river. Then the mothers take their little children and sprinkle the water over them, and pray to Ti-ra´-wa to bless them. The water running out of the hole often carries with it the offerings, and the ground is covered with the old rotten things that have been thrown in. The fifth place is a hard, smooth, flinty rock, sticking up out of the ground. They call it Pa-hūr´, “hill that points the way.” In the side of the hill there is a great hole, where the Nahu´rac hold councils. This hill is in Kansas, and can be seen from the Burlington & Missouri River Railroad. It is known to the whites as Guide Rock.
Mention has been made of the Nahu´rac, or animals, that have miraculous qualities given to them by Ti-ra´-wa. The Pawnees are aware of five locations where these animals gather to hold council—five of these Nahu´rac lodges. One of these is at Pa-hŭk´, on the south side of the Platte River, opposite Fremont, Nebraska. The name Pa-hŭk´ means “hill island.” Another animal home is located under an island in the Platte River, near Central City. The Pawnees call it La-la-wa-koh-ti-to, meaning “dark island.” The third sacred place is on the Loup Fork, across from the mouth of the Cedar River, underneath a high, white cut bank. This site is named Ah-ka-wit-akol, which translates to “white bank.” Another site is on the Solomon River, Kitz-a-witz-ŭk, meaning “water on a bank;” it is sometimes referred to as Pa´howa. This is a mound shaped like a dirt lodge, featuring a round hole at the top, through which water can be seen below. Occasionally, people assemble there and toss their offerings to Ti-ra´-wa into this hole—things like blankets, robes, blue beads, tobacco, eagle feathers, and moccasins. Sometimes, while they are gathered, the water rises to the top of the hole and spills out, flowing down the side of the mound into the river. Mothers then take their little children and sprinkle the water over them, praying to Ti-ra´-wa for blessings. The water that flows out often carries away the offerings, leaving the ground littered with the old, rotten items that have been tossed in. The fifth place is a hard, smooth, flinty rock that juts up from the ground. They call it Pa-hūr´, meaning “hill that points the way.” There is a large hole in the side of this hill where the Nahu´rac hold councils. This hill is located in Kansas and is visible from the Burlington & Missouri River Railroad. It is known to white settlers as Guide Rock.
II. CEREMONIES.
To describe satisfactorily any considerable proportion of the religious ceremonials of the Pawnees, would require a more extended space than is here at my command. Several of the special ceremonies, however, may be mentioned in general terms.
To adequately describe a significant portion of the religious ceremonies of the Pawnees would take more space than I have here. However, I can mention some of the specific ceremonies in general terms.
Like some other tribes of the plains Indians, the Pawnees had a certain special worship at the time of the first thunder in the spring. This first thunder warned them that winter was at an end and that the time of the planting was drawing near.
Like some other tribes of the Plains Indians, the Pawnees had a special ceremony when the first thunder arrived in the spring. This first thunder signaled that winter was over and that the planting season was approaching.
Of this worship a Chau-i said to me: “We all believe in Ti-ra´-wa. We know that there is a power above that moves the universe, and that he controls all things. In the old days when they had buffalo meat, they used to make a sacrifice at the time of the first thunder in the spring. The next day after it had thundered, all the people would go into the sacred lodge, where the sacred bundles were kept at that time. When they had all come together, the priest would open the bundles and take out the sacred things, among which were Indian tobacco and some little pieces of scalp tied to a stick. Through these sacred things we worshiped, and the sacrifices [Pg 361] were made to the Ruler above. This seemed to be a help to us, and we used to live, increase and grow strong. Up north, when we worshiped at the time of the first thunder, we never had cyclones. Down here, now that this worship has been given up, we have them.”
Of this worship, a Chau-i said to me: “We all believe in Ti-ra´-wa. We know there’s a power above that drives the universe, and that it controls everything. In the past, when they had buffalo meat, they would make a sacrifice at the first thunder of spring. The day after it thundered, everyone would gather in the sacred lodge where the sacred bundles were kept. Once everyone was together, the priest would open the bundles and take out the sacred items, which included Indian tobacco and small pieces of scalp tied to a stick. Through these sacred items, we worshiped, and sacrifices were made to the Ruler above. This seemed to help us, and we thrived, grew, and became strong. Up north, when we worshiped at the first thunder, we never had cyclones. Now that this worship has been abandoned down here, we have them.”
There is no doubt that the most important of the religious ceremonials of the Pawnees were the burnt offering of the animal and of the scalp. These two, though different, had yet the same meaning. In each the sacrifice was an offering to Ti-ra´-wa. Perhaps next in importance to these were the buffalo dance and the corn dance, which were special ceremonies to implore a blessing on the hunt and on the harvest.
There’s no doubt that the most significant religious rituals of the Pawnees were the burnt offerings of animals and scalps. Although these two were different, they held the same meaning. In each case, the sacrifice was presented as an offering to Ti-ra´-wa. Possibly next in importance were the buffalo dance and the corn dance, which were unique ceremonies aimed at asking for blessings on the hunt and the harvest.
The first animal killed on the hunt was sacrificed. It was necessary that this animal should be either a deer or a buffalo; the first one killed on the hunt of these two kinds. They were not permitted to kill any other sort of an animal, save only these two, until after the sacrifice had been made.
The first animal killed during the hunt was sacrificed. It had to be either a deer or a buffalo; the first one killed among these two types. They were not allowed to kill any other kind of animal except these two until after the sacrifice had been performed.
When this first animal had been killed, it was brought into the camp, and taken to the sacred lodge, and there the priests themselves went through the secret ceremonies. Then they divided the meat, [Pg 362] and took a part of it to the southeast end of the village. There they built a fire of sticks, and placed the meat on it. As the fire burned the flesh, the whole tribe marched slowly and reverently by the fire, and grasped handfuls of the smoke, and rubbed it over their bodies and arms, and prayed, saying, “Now, you, Ti-ra´-wa, the Ruler, look at your children, and bless them; keep them and have mercy upon them, and care for them.” If any could not understand, such as little children, their elders, who did understand—their relations—prayed for them. The sick were carried out to the place, and prayed, and the smoke was rubbed over them. The young men would run races, starting from a certain place, and going around the village until they came to the place where the smoke of the sacrifice rose.
When the first animal was killed, it was brought into the camp and taken to the sacred lodge, where the priests performed the secret ceremonies. Then they divided the meat, [Pg362] and took some of it to the southeast end of the village. There, they built a fire from sticks and placed the meat on it. As the fire cooked the flesh, the whole tribe walked slowly and respectfully by the fire, grasping handfuls of the smoke and rubbing it over their bodies and arms while praying, saying, “Now, you, Ti-ra´-wa, the Ruler, look at your children and bless them; protect them, have mercy on them, and take care of them.” If anyone didn’t understand, like little children, their elders—who did understand—prayed for them. The sick were carried to the site, prayed for, and the smoke was rubbed over them. The young men would run races, starting from a specific spot and going around the village until they reached the place where the smoke from the sacrifice rose.
The sacrifice, by burning of the scalp, was a very elaborate performance, and occupied a whole day. The high priest faced the east and prayed, and sang twelve times. Descriptions of it given me in general terms indicate that this ceremony was extremely interesting. It was rather unusual, but was performed once in 1877.
The sacrifice, involving the burning of the scalp, was a very elaborate event that took an entire day. The high priest faced east, prayed, and sang twelve times. Descriptions shared with me in general terms suggest that this ceremony was incredibly fascinating. It was somewhat unusual, but it took place once in 1877.
The sacrifice of the captive has not been practiced by the Skidi for a long time, perhaps forty or fifty [Pg 363] years. Bear Chief told me that he had witnessed it six times; Eagle Chief, who is, perhaps, between fifty and sixty years old, says he has seen it once. The old Skidi described the ceremony as follows:
The sacrifice of the captive hasn’t been done by the Skidi for a long time, maybe forty or fifty years. Bear Chief told me that he has seen it six times; Eagle Chief, who is probably between fifty and sixty years old, claims he has seen it once. The old Skidi described the ceremony like this:
“The Skidi alone of the Pawnees sacrificed human beings to Ti-ra´-wa. When they had returned home from war successful, bringing captives with them, they selected one of these for the sacrifice. The others were adopted into the tribe, but this one, who must be young and stout, one who would fatten easily, was kept apart, eating by himself, fed on the best of food and treated with the greatest kindness. No hint of the fate in store for him was given until the day of the sacrifice. For four nights before that day the people danced; and for four days they feasted. Each day after they had got through feasting, the dishes were taken to their especial place. Each woman, after she got through eating, rose, and said to the prisoner, ‘I have finished eating, and I hope that I may be blessed from Ti-ra´-wa; that he may take pity on me; that when I put my seed in the ground they may grow, and that I may have plenty of everything.’
“The Skidi, the only group among the Pawnees, sacrificed human beings to Ti-ra´-wa. After returning home victorious from battle with captives, they would choose one of them for the sacrifice. The others would be adopted into the tribe, but this one, who had to be young and strong, someone who would gain weight easily, was kept separate, eating alone, given the best food, and treated with the utmost kindness. No hints about his fate were shared until the day of the sacrifice. For four nights before that day, the people danced; and for four days, they feasted. After each day's feast, the leftover dishes were taken to their special place. Each woman, after finishing her meal, would rise and say to the captive, ‘I have finished eating, and I hope to be blessed by Ti-ra´-wa; that he may take pity on me; that when I sow my seeds, they may grow, and that I may have plenty of everything.’”
“At the end of the four days two old men went, one to each end of the village, and called aloud, [Pg 364] directing every male person in the village to make a bow and an arrow, and to be ready for the sacrifice. For every male child that had been born a bow and an arrow was made; for the little boys small bows that they could bend and small arrows. The arrows must be feathered with the feathers of the eagle, or of some bird of prey, a hawk, an owl or an eagle. They must not cut the feathers nor burn them to make them low.
“At the end of four days, two old men went, one to each end of the village, and called out, [Pg364] directing every male in the village to make a bow and an arrow, and to be prepared for the sacrifice. For every male child that had been born, a bow and an arrow were made; for the little boys, small bows they could bend and small arrows. The arrows had to be feathered with the feathers of an eagle or some bird of prey, like a hawk, an owl, or an eagle. They must not cut the feathers or burn them to make them shorter.”
“The next day, before daybreak, every one was ready. All of the warriors, who had led parties on the warpath, took from their sacred bundles their collars, made from the feathers of the bird they wore,[12] and put them on their backs and tied them about their necks. They held their pipes in their left hands, to signify that they were warriors. Every male carried his bow and arrow. Every woman had a lance or a stick. Just before daylight they all went out to the west end of the village, and stood there looking for the prisoner to be brought. Here two stout posts had been set up, one of ash and the other of hackberry, and between these had been tied four cross-poles, the three lower ones to aid in climbing up to the highest of the four.
“The next day, before dawn, everyone was ready. All the warriors who had led groups into battle took their feathered collars from their sacred bundles and put them on their backs, tying them around their necks. They held their pipes in their left hands to show that they were warriors. Every man carried his bow and arrow, and every woman had a lance or a stick. Just before daylight, they all went to the west end of the village and stood there waiting for the prisoner to be brought. Two sturdy posts had been set up, one made of ash and the other of hackberry, and four cross-poles were tied between them, with the three lower ones helping to climb up to the highest one.”
[12] The Purple Martin, Progne subis.
The Purple Martin, Progne subis.
[Pg 365] “As day broke, the people, looking back toward the village, could see the captive being led toward them, bound hand and foot. Behind him, as he was led along, followed a warrior carrying the heart and tongue of a buffalo; after him came another, carrying a blazing stick, then one with a bow and arrow, and last a warrior with the stuffed skin of an owl.
[Pg365] "As dawn broke, the people, looking back at the village, could see the captive being brought towards them, tied up hand and foot. Behind him, as he was led along, followed a warrior holding a buffalo's heart and tongue; after him came another, carrying a flaming torch, then one with a bow and arrow, and finally, a warrior with a stuffed owl skin."
“They led the naked captive to the posts, and lifting him up, tied first the left hand and then the right to the top cross-pole, and afterward tied the feet below. Every one stood there silent, looking, waiting; the men holding their weapons and the women their sticks and lances. On the ground under the sacrifice was laid the wood for a great fire, which was now lighted. Then the man with the blazing stick stepped forward, but before he reached the captive, the warrior with the bow and arrow, he who had taken the captive, ran up close to the victim and shot him through from side to side, beneath the arms, with the sacred arrow, whose point was of flint, such as they used in the olden time. After the blood had run down upon the fire below, the warrior who carried the buffalo tongue and the heart, placed them on the fire beneath the [Pg 366] body. When this had been done the man who carried the owl ran up, and seized the burning stick and burned the body, once under each arm, and once in each groin, in all four times. Then, at a given signal, the males all ran up, and shot their arrows into the body. If any male children were not large enough to shoot, some one shot for them. There were so many arrows that the body was stuck full of them; it bristled with them.
They brought the naked captive to the posts, lifted him up, and tied his left hand to the top cross-pole first, then his right. After that, they tied his feet below. Everyone stood there in silence, watching and waiting; the men held their weapons, and the women held their sticks and lances. On the ground beneath the sacrifice was placed wood for a large fire, which was now lit. Then the man with the burning stick stepped forward, but before he could reach the captive, the warrior with the bow and arrow—who had taken the captive—ran up close and shot him through from side to side beneath the arms with the sacred arrow, its point made of flint, like those used in ancient times. After the blood dripped onto the fire below, the warrior carrying the buffalo tongue and heart placed them on the fire under the [Pg366] body. Once this was done, the man who had the owl ran up, grabbed the burning stick, and burned the body once under each arm and once in each groin, a total of four times. Then, at a given signal, all the males rushed up and shot their arrows into the body. If any young boys were too small to shoot, someone shot for them. There were so many arrows that the body was filled with them; it was bristling with them.
“A man chosen for this purpose now climbed up, and pulled out all the arrows from the body, except the one which was first shot through the side of the sacrifice, and placed them together in a pile on the ground, where they were left. After pulling out the arrows, this man took his knife and cut open the breast of the captive, and putting his hand in the opening, took out a handful of blood, and smeared it over his face, and then jumped to the ground, and ran away as fast as he could. Each of the four men, after he had done his part, ran away very fast, and went down to the river and washed himself. When this had been done the women came with their sticks and spears and struck the body and counted coup on it. Even the little children struck it. After they had done this, they put their sticks together on the [Pg 367] ground in a pile, and left them there. By this time the fire was burning up high and scorching the body, and it was kept up until the whole body was consumed. And while the smoke of the blood and the buffalo meat, and of the burning body, ascended to the sky, all the people prayed to Ti-ra´-wa, and walked by the fire and grasped handfuls of the smoke, and passed it over their bodies and over those of their children, and prayed Ti-ra´-wa to take pity on them, and to give them health, and success in war, and plenteous crops. The man who had killed the captive fasted and mourned for four days, and asked Ti-ra´-wa to take pity on him, for he knew that he had taken the life of a human being.
A man chosen for this purpose climbed up now and pulled out all the arrows from the body, except for the one that was first shot through the side of the sacrifice, and he placed them in a pile on the ground, where they were left. After pulling out the arrows, he took his knife and cut open the captive's chest, reached inside, took out a handful of blood, smeared it on his face, then jumped down and ran away as fast as he could. Each of the four men, after doing their part, ran away quickly and went down to the river to wash themselves. Once this was done, the women came with their sticks and spears, struck the body, and counted coup on it. Even the little children struck it. Afterward, they put their sticks together in a pile on the [Pg367] ground and left them there. By this time, the fire was burning high and scorching the body, and it was kept going until the whole body was consumed. As the smoke from the blood, buffalo meat, and burning body rose to the sky, all the people prayed to Ti-ra´-wa, walked by the fire, grasped handfuls of smoke, and passed it over their bodies and their children's bodies, praying to Ti-ra´-wa to have mercy on them and to grant them health, success in war, and plentiful crops. The man who had killed the captive fasted and mourned for four days, asking Ti-ra´-wa for mercy, knowing that he had taken a human life.
“This sacrifice always seemed acceptable to Ti-ra´-wa, and when the Skidi made it they always seemed to have good fortune in war, and good crops, and they were always well.
“This sacrifice always seemed acceptable to Ti-ra´-wa, and whenever the Skidi performed it, they consistently enjoyed good luck in battle, had bountiful harvests, and were always thriving.”
“After the sacrifice was over, then came the old women to rejoice over what had been done. They would act as the warriors used to do, when coming back from a war party. They carried the mother corn. They went to the body and counted coup on it, and then went back to the village. Some of them would take the large hollow stalks of the sunflower, [Pg 368] and put dust in them, and then blow it out, pretending to shoot, the puff of dust standing for the smoke of a shot. They would go up to the secret lodge, and standing outside of it, would tell the story of how they came to go on their pretended war party, and what they did while they were gone, and what enemies they struck—the whole long story. The people meanwhile would stand about and laugh at them as they did these things. Imitating the warriors, the old women changed their names also. One of the leading old women once took the name ‘Mud on the Meat,’ another, ‘Skunk Skin Tobacco Pouch,’ another ‘Sitting Fish Old Man,’ another ‘Old Man Stepping on the Heart.’ The old men standing about would joke with the old women, and these would joke and make fun of each other.”
“After the sacrifice was complete, the old women came to celebrate what had happened. They acted like warriors returning from a battle. They carried the mother corn. They approached the body and counted coup on it before heading back to the village. Some of them would take the large hollow stalks of the sunflower, [Page368] fill them with dust, and blow it out, pretending to shoot, with the puff of dust representing the smoke of a shot. They would stand outside the secret lodge and tell the story of how they went on their pretend war party, what they did while they were away, and which enemies they struck—the whole long story. Meanwhile, the people would gather around and laugh at them as they performed these acts. Imitating the warriors, the old women changed their names too. One of the prominent old women took the name ‘Mud on the Meat,’ another ‘Skunk Skin Tobacco Pouch,’ another ‘Sitting Fish Old Man,’ and another ‘Old Man Stepping on the Heart.’ The old men standing around would joke with the old women, and they would tease and make fun of each other.”
The different acts of this sacrifice appear to have been typical of the deeds and necessities of warfare. Thus the feathers of the eagle used on the arrows shot into the captive represented success in war. Their use was a prayer to Ti-ra´-wa that, as these birds were fierce and successful when making an attack, so those who shot might be fierce in war and always conquerors. The burning of the body of the captive with the blazing stick, perhaps, typified [Pg 369] the lighting of the sacred pipe, which could only be done by one who had sacrificed a scalp. The shooting arrows into the body by the males and the striking it by the women typified the killing of and counting coup on the enemy. The cutting open the belly was the first act in the sacrifice of the animal, the burnt offering.
The various parts of this sacrifice seem to symbolize the actions and needs of warfare. For example, the eagle feathers used on the arrows aimed at the captive represented success in battle. Their use served as a prayer to Ti-ra´-wa, asking that, just as these birds are fierce and successful in attack, those who shot the arrows might be fierce in war and always victors. The burning of the captive’s body with the fiery stick likely symbolized [Pg369] the lighting of the sacred pipe, which could only be performed by someone who had sacrificed a scalp. The act of shooting arrows into the body by the men and striking it by the women represented killing and counting coup on the enemy. The incision made in the belly was the first step in the sacrifice of the animal, the burnt offering.
It will be noted that this account differs in many particulars from that given by Mr. Dunbar in his papers on this people, but I think it worth recording, as being an independent relation by a very old man, who, I have no doubt, has been an eye-witness of more than one of these remarkable sacrifices.
It’s important to note that this account differs in several ways from what Mr. Dunbar presented in his writings about this group, but I believe it’s worth documenting as an independent account from an elderly man who, without a doubt, has witnessed more than one of these extraordinary sacrifices.
I know of no satisfactory and detailed account of any of the sacred dances of the Pawnees. There were many of these, among them the corn dance, the buffalo dance, the wild horse dance, the deer, bear, dog dances and so on. I give below an account of the corn dance, as detailed to me by Curly Chief, who said:
I don't know of any satisfactory or detailed description of any of the sacred dances of the Pawnees. There were many of these, including the corn dance, the buffalo dance, the wild horse dance, the deer dance, the bear dance, the dog dances, and so on. Below, I provide an account of the corn dance, as described to me by Curly Chief, who said:
“The windy month [March] was the one in which Ti-ra´-wa gave us the seed to cultivate. The first moon of April is the one during which they had a special worship about the corn. Until these ceremonies had been performed no one would clear out [Pg 370] the patch where they intended to plant the crop. Everybody waited for this time.
“The windy month of March was when Ti-ra´-wa gave us the seeds to grow. The first moon of April is when they held special ceremonies for the corn. No one would clear out [Pg370] the area where they planned to plant the crop until these ceremonies were completed. Everyone waited for this time.”
“The Kit-ke-hahk´-i was the only tribe in which this special ceremony was handed down. The Chau-i and Pita-hau-erat worshiped with them. The preparations for this dance are always made by a woman. She has to think about it a long time before she can make up her mind to undertake it. In making ready for the dance, she must furnish the dried meat made from the whole of a buffalo, fat and lean, every part of it. The sack which holds the heart she dries, and fills it with all the kinds of corn—the five colors, the blue corn, which represents the blue sky, the red corn, which stands for the evening sunset, the yellow corn, which typifies the morning sunrise, the white corn, which stands for a white cloud, and the spotted corn, which represents the sky dotted with clouds. All these she puts in the bag, placing in the sack three grains of each at a time. On the special day which has been fixed for the dance, she must offer these things to Ti-ra´-wa. The people are all gathered together, the women standing on the outside of the circle behind, and the men on the inner side of the circle in front. This is a woman’s dance, and yet the men are there in front of the women. [Pg 371] These men are the leading warriors of the tribe. They have been off on the warpath, and in time of corn have gone to the enemy. They have been successful in war, and therefore they are with the women. They stand about the circle holding their pipes in their left hands, showing that they are leaders of war parties, and each with the skin of a particular bird[13] tied on top of the head, showing that they are warriors.
The Kit-ke-hahk´-i was the only tribe where this special ceremony was passed down. The Chau-i and Pita-hau-erat worshiped alongside them. A woman always makes the preparations for this dance. She has to think about it for a long time before she decides to take it on. When getting ready for the dance, she needs to provide dried meat from a whole buffalo, both fat and lean, every part of it. She dries the sack that holds the heart and fills it with all kinds of corn—the five colors: blue corn, which represents the blue sky; red corn, symbolizing the evening sunset; yellow corn, which stands for the morning sunrise; white corn, representing a white cloud; and spotted corn, depicting the sky dotted with clouds. She places three grains of each type into the bag at a time. On the special day designated for the dance, she offers these items to Ti-ra´-wa. Everyone gathers together, with the women standing outside the circle behind and the men inside the circle at the front. This is a women’s dance, but the men are in front of the women. [Pg371] These men are the leading warriors of the tribe. They have been out on the warpath and have faced the enemy during the corn season. They have been successful in war, which is why they stand with the women. They circle around holding their pipes in their left hands, indicating that they are leaders of war parties, each wearing the skin of a specific bird[13] tied on top of their head to show they are warriors.
[13] A Martin, Progne.
A Martin, Progne.
“The floor of the lodge must be hard, and swept as clean as it can be. On the left hand side as you look toward the door is a buffalo skull.
“The floor of the lodge should be hard and as clean as possible. On the left side, as you face the door, there's a buffalo skull.”
“When the day has come all the people are gathered together and are standing about the lodge. The high priest stands at the back of the lodge with the sacred bundles of the three bands before him. Then this leading woman comes forward, and presents to the high priest the dried meat and the sack of corn, and two ancient, sacred hoes, made from the shoulder-blade of a buffalo, bound to a handle by the neck ligament. She places them on the ground before the sacred bundles, the corn in the middle, and the two hoes on either side. With these things she also presents a sacred pipe, filled and ready for lighting, [Pg 372] taken from a sacred bundle. Then she steps back.
“When the day arrives, everyone gathers around the lodge. The high priest stands at the back with the sacred bundles of the three bands in front of him. Then, this leading woman steps forward and presents the high priest with dried meat, a sack of corn, and two ancient sacred hoes made from buffalo shoulder blades, tied to a handle with the neck ligament. She places them on the ground in front of the sacred bundles, with the corn in the center and the two hoes on either side. Along with these items, she also presents a sacred pipe, filled and ready to light, taken from a sacred bundle. Then, she steps back.”
“The old high priest must well know the ceremonies to be performed. He prays to Ti-ra´-wa and lights the sacred pipe, blowing smoke to heaven, to the earth, and to the four points of the compass. While the ceremonies are going on, the buffalo skull is taken to the sacred place in this lodge, and put in a particular position. Then the leading woman steps forward again, followed by two others. She takes the bag of corn, and the other two women take the hoes, and they stand in front of the high priest. He sings and prays. The leading woman stands in a particular position, as directed by the high priest, holding the bag of corn up to the sky in both her hands; and as he sings, she raises and lowers it in time to the music of the song.
“The old high priest definitely knows the ceremonies that need to be performed. He prays to Ti-ra´-wa and lights the sacred pipe, blowing smoke toward heaven, the earth, and the four cardinal directions. While the ceremonies take place, the buffalo skull is brought to a sacred spot in the lodge and placed in a specific position. Then, the leading woman steps forward again, followed by two others. She takes the bag of corn, while the other two women hold the hoes, and they stand in front of the high priest. He sings and prays. The leading woman stands in a specific position, as instructed by the high priest, holding the bag of corn up to the sky with both hands; and as he sings, she raises and lowers it in rhythm with the music of the song.”
“After these ceremonies the women come forward, holding their hoes in their hands, and dance about the lodge one after another in single file, following the leading woman. Four times they dance about the lodge. She cannot pass the priest the fifth time. These ceremonies and the songs and prayers were to ask for a blessing on the hunt and on the corn, and to learn whether they would be blessed in both. [Pg 373] After the women had danced and gone back to their places, everybody looked on the floor of the lodge to see whether there were any buffalo hairs there. If they saw them, they all said, ‘Now we are going to be successful in our hunt and in our corn.’ Everybody said, ‘We are blessed.’
“After these ceremonies, the women step forward, holding their hoes, and dance around the lodge one by one in a single line, following the lead woman. They circle the lodge four times. She can't pass the priest on the fifth round. These ceremonies, songs, and prayers were meant to ask for a blessing on the hunt and the corn, and to find out if they would be successful in both. [Pg373] Once the women finished dancing and returned to their spots, everyone looked at the lodge floor to see if there were any buffalo hairs. If they found them, they all exclaimed, ‘Now we’re going to succeed in our hunt and with our corn.’ Everyone said, ‘We are blessed.’”
“Then when they would go out on the hunt they would find plenty of buffalo, and the messenger sent back to the village from the hunt would return to the camp and say, ‘We have plenty of corn.’ If they saw a great many buffalo hairs they would get many buffalo; if but few they would get some buffalo.
“Then when they went out on the hunt, they would find lots of buffalo, and the messenger sent back to the village from the hunt would return to the camp and say, ‘We have plenty of corn.’ If they saw a lot of buffalo hairs, they would get many buffalo; if there were only a few, they would get some buffalo."
“The next day after these ceremonies every one would begin to clear up their patches and get ready to plant corn. The leading woman who prepared the dance is respected and highly thought of. After that she is like a chief.
“The next day after these ceremonies, everyone would start to clear their areas and get ready to plant corn. The main woman who organized the dance is respected and held in high regard. After that, she is treated like a chief."
“This ceremony is the next principal thing we have after the burnt offering of the animal and of the scalp. We did not invent this. It came to us from the Ruler, and we worship him through it. He gave us the corn and blessed us through it. By it we are made strong.
“This ceremony is the next main thing we have after the burnt offering of the animal and the scalp. We didn’t make this up. It was given to us by the Ruler, and we honor him through it. He provided us with the corn and blessed us through it. Through it, we gain strength.”
“We are like seed and we worship through the corn.”
“We are like seeds, and we worship through the corn.”
III. MEDICINE AND MYSTERY.
It has been said that the “medicine men” or doctors among the Pawnees occupied a position by themselves. Their guild was entirely distinct from that of the priests. A priest might be a doctor as well, but not because he was a priest.
It’s been said that the “medicine men” or doctors among the Pawnees held a unique position. Their group was completely separate from that of the priests. A priest could also be a doctor, but not just because he was a priest.
The doctors were primarily healers. Their function was to fight disease. Like many other savage nations, the Pawnees believed that sickness was caused by evil spirits, which had entered into the patient and must be driven out if he was to recover. In their treatment of injuries the doctors were often singularly successful. Major North has cited for me a number of instances, in which men, whose hurts had refused to yield to the treatment of the United States Army surgeons, had been cured by Pawnee doctors. Some of these have been detailed elsewhere. As might be imagined, however, the Pawnee treatment of disease was less efficacious. Simple ailments were often treated with success by means of the familiar sudatory, or “sweat house;” but in the case of more serious complaints, the dancing and rattling, which constitute so large a part of the doctor’s treatment, tend to aggravate rather than to [Pg 375] check the disease. I have not space to discuss the very interesting subject of the system of therapeutics practiced by the Pawnee doctors. Mr. Dunbar has gone into this matter quite fully, and the reader is referred to his papers for an account of their practice.
The doctors were mainly healers. Their job was to fight disease. Like many other tribal nations, the Pawnees thought that illnesses were caused by evil spirits that had entered the patient and needed to be expelled for recovery. In treating injuries, the doctors often had remarkable success. Major North provided me with several examples where men, whose injuries failed to respond to treatment from U.S. Army surgeons, were healed by Pawnee doctors. Some of these cases have been mentioned elsewhere. However, as you might expect, the Pawnee approach to disease was less effective. Simple ailments were often successfully treated with the familiar sweat lodge, but in more serious cases, the dancing and rattling that are a significant part of the doctor’s treatment tended to worsen rather than alleviate the condition. I don’t have enough space to explore the intriguing methods used by Pawnee doctors. Mr. Dunbar has thoroughly covered this topic, and readers are encouraged to refer to his papers for a detailed account of their practices.
As the doctors had to fight evil spirits, it is not surprising that they should have summoned magic to their aid; but this magic probably served its more important purpose in impressing the other Indians with a belief in the doctors’ powers. Some of the performances which took place at the doctors’ dances were very marvellous, and most of them were quite inexplicable to those who saw what was done. That they should have imposed on the Indian spectator is perhaps not surprising; but it is further to be noted that clear-headed, intelligent white men, whose powers of observation have been highly trained, have confessed themselves wholly unable to explain these startling performances, or to hazard a guess as to the means by which they were accomplished. That these things happened as detailed is well authenticated by the testimony of many perfectly credible witnesses.
As the doctors had to battle evil spirits, it’s not surprising that they called on magic for help; this magic likely played a more crucial role in convincing other Indians of the doctors’ powers. Some of the performances at the doctors’ dances were truly incredible, and most were completely baffling to those who witnessed them. It’s perhaps not surprising that they could deceive the Indian onlooker; however, it’s also notable that clear-thinking, intelligent white men, who have honed their observational skills, admitted they were entirely unable to explain these astonishing performances or even guess how they were achieved. That these events occurred as described is well supported by the accounts of many highly credible witnesses.
Other masters of mystery are provided with mechanical aids of one kind or another—some apparatus [Pg 376] which assists them in imposing on their audiences, by concealing certain objects, or certain acts, by means of which they cause things to appear different from what they really are. The Pawnee doctors had nothing of this. Their dances were conducted by naked men in a ring surrounded by spectators. The floor of bare earth, packed hard and worn smooth by the tread of many feet, afforded no apparent opportunity for concealment or trickery. Under such conditions were performed their mysteries, a few of which I will mention as they appeared to watchful spectators, distant not more than twenty-five or thirty feet, and often much nearer.
Other mystery masters use various mechanical aids—some devices [Pg376] that help them trick their audiences by hiding certain objects or actions, making things seem different from how they actually are. The Pawnee doctors had none of this. Their rituals involved naked men dancing in a circle surrounded by onlookers. The hard-packed earth floor, worn smooth from many feet, offered no real chance for hiding or deception. It was under these conditions that their mysteries unfolded, a few of which I'll describe as they appeared to attentive spectators, no more than twenty-five or thirty feet away, and often much closer.
The simplest performances were the swallowing of spears and arrows. These feats were merely mechanical, and were no doubt really as they appeared, the arrows and the spears being driven down the gullet to the distance of a foot or eighteen inches. Instances occurred where men who had swallowed arrows died from the injuries received in the operation. Bear Chief, himself a doctor, and tattooed with a bear on the right side, told me that it was much harder and more painful to swallow an arrow than a spear.
The simplest acts involved swallowing spears and arrows. These tricks were purely mechanical and were exactly what they seemed, with the arrows and spears pushed down the throat to a depth of a foot or eighteen inches. There were cases where men who swallowed arrows died from the injuries caused by the procedure. Bear Chief, who was a doctor himself and had a bear tattooed on his right side, told me that it was much harder and more painful to swallow an arrow than a spear.
Among the more remarkable performances [Pg 377] witnessed and vouched for by my friend, Captain L. H. North, are the following:
Among the more impressive performances [Pg377] that my friend, Captain L. H. North, has seen and can confirm, are the following:
Several men, representing elk, came into the ring, and trotted about, so as to be seen by every one, imitating the movements of those animals. To their heads were tied branches to represent horns, and each wore an elk skin thrown over his back. A doctor came into the ring, and handed to the spectators his arrows, which they examined, and found to be ordinary arrows with the usual sheet-iron points. On receiving back the arrows from those who had examined them, the doctor pretended to hunt the elk, and at length shot at them, striking them in the sides or on the legs. The arrows, instead of penetrating the flesh, bounded back, some of them flying fifteen or twenty feet in the air. They appeared to be shot with the full force of the bow, and when picked up and handed to the onlookers, the sheet-iron points were found to be doubled back as if they had been shot against a plate of iron, and the shafts of some of them were split. The elk trotted away and out of the ring without injury.
Several men, dressed as elk, came into the ring and trotted around so everyone could see them, mimicking the movements of those animals. They had branches tied to their heads to look like horns, and each wore an elk skin draped over their back. A doctor entered the ring and showed the spectators his arrows, which they examined and found to be regular arrows with standard sheet-iron tips. After getting the arrows back from those who looked at them, the doctor acted like he was hunting elk and eventually shot at them, hitting them in the sides or legs. Instead of piercing the flesh, the arrows bounced back, some flying fifteen or twenty feet into the air. They seemed to have been shot with full force from the bow, and when picked up and handed to the viewers, the sheet-iron points were bent back as if they had hit a plate of iron, and the shafts of some were split. The elk trotted away and exited the ring unharmed.
A man, representing an enemy, came into the ring on foot. A doctor followed, armed with a hatchet, which he passed to the spectators for examination. [Pg 378] It was an ordinary hatchet of the tomahawk form. On receiving back the hatchet, the doctor started in pursuit of the enemy, who fled. The doctor overtook him, and with a vigorous blow, sunk the hatchet up to the handle in the enemy’s skull, leaving it there. The wounded man staggered on, passing within five or six feet of the ring of spectators, who plainly saw the blood from the wound running down the man’s face, and dripping from his hair behind. They saw also the gray brain-matter oozing from the wound. The wounded man was taken from the ring into the doctor’s lodge. A few days later he was seen about, and in his usual health.
A man, posing as an enemy, entered the ring on foot. A doctor followed him, carrying a hatchet, which he passed around for the audience to inspect. [Pg378] It was just a regular hatchet shaped like a tomahawk. After getting the hatchet back, the doctor chased after the enemy, who ran away. The doctor caught up to him and, with a strong swing, drove the hatchet deep into the enemy’s skull, leaving it there. The injured man staggered on, coming within five or six feet of the circle of spectators, who clearly saw the blood from the wound running down his face and dripping from his hair at the back. They also noticed bits of gray brain matter oozing from the injury. The wounded man was taken from the ring to the doctor's lodge. A few days later, he was spotted again and appeared to be in his usual health.
A small boy, six or eight years of age, was led into the ring quite naked. He was placed upon the ground, and two men sat upon him, one on his chest, the other on his legs. With a knife an incision was made in his belly; one of the doctors inserted his fingers; and, after feeling about, pulled out of the cut what looked like a portion of the child’s liver. This he cut off and gave to the other man, who ate it. The remainder of the liver was crowded back into the hole, and the boy was carried off. Subsequently he was seen about, apparently in good health.
A small boy, around six or eight years old, was brought into the ring completely naked. He was placed on the ground, and two men sat on him—one on his chest and the other on his legs. Using a knife, an incision was made in his belly; one of the doctors inserted his fingers and, after checking, pulled out what looked like a part of the boy’s liver. He cut off a piece and handed it to the other man, who ate it. The rest of the liver was pushed back into the opening, and the boy was taken away. Later, he was seen around, seemingly in good health.
A man representing a bear came into the ring and [Pg 379] was pursued by a number of Indians, who shot arrows at him for some time, without appearing to injure him. At length, however, an arrow pierced him through the bowels, and the wound was plainly seen on each side. The man fell, and appeared to be dying. He was removed to the lodge, and in a short time was entirely recovered.
A man dressed as a bear entered the ring and [Pg379] was chased by several Indians, who shot arrows at him for a while, but seemed not to hurt him. Eventually, though, one arrow struck him in the abdomen, and the injury was clearly visible on both sides. The man collapsed and looked like he was dying. He was taken to the lodge, and shortly after, he completely recovered.
Major North saw one of these bear performances, in which, the pretended bear having attacked one of his pursuers, the latter slashed him across the abdomen with a large knife, inflicting a cut from which the bowels hung down so that they dragged on the ground. The bear was carried off, and in a short time was healed, and went about as usual.
Major North saw one of these bear shows, where the fake bear pretended to attack one of its pursuers. The pursuer then slashed it across the stomach with a large knife, making a cut that left the bear’s intestines hanging down and dragging on the ground. The bear was taken away, and shortly after, it was healed and went about its business as usual.
Major North told me that he saw with his own eyes the doctors make the corn grow. This was in the medicine lodge. In the middle of the lodge, the doctor dug up a piece of the hard trodden floor of the lodge, about as large as a dinner plate, and broke up between his fingers the hard pieces of soil, until the dirt was soft and friable. The ground having thus been prepared, and having been moistened with water, a few kernels of corn were buried in the loose earth. Then the doctor retired a little from the spot and sang, and as the place where the [Pg 380] corn was buried was watched, the soil was seen to move, and a tiny green blade came slowly into view. This continued to increase in height and size, until in the course of twenty minutes or half an hour from the time of planting, the stalk of corn was a foot or fifteen inches in height. At this point Major North was obliged to leave the lodge, to take out a white woman who was fainting from the heat, and so did not see the maturing of the corn. All the Indians and white men who remained assured him that the stalks continued to grow until they were of full height, and that they then tasseled out and put forth one or more ears of corn, which grew to full size, and that then the doctor approached the plant, plucked an ear, and passed it to the spectators.
Major North told me that he saw the doctors make the corn grow with his own eyes. This happened in the medicine lodge. In the middle of the lodge, the doctor dug up a piece of the hard-packed floor, about the size of a dinner plate, and broke up the hard pieces of soil with his fingers until the dirt was soft and crumbly. After preparing the ground and moistening it with water, a few kernels of corn were buried in the loose earth. Then the doctor stepped back a bit and sang, and while watching the spot where the corn was buried, they saw the soil move, and a tiny green blade slowly emerged. This continued to grow taller and bigger until, after about twenty minutes or half an hour from the time of planting, the corn stalk was a foot or fifteen inches high. At this point, Major North had to leave the lodge to help a white woman who was fainting from the heat, so he didn’t see the corn mature. All the Indians and remaining white men assured him that the stalks kept growing until they reached full height, then tasseled out and produced one or more ears of corn, which grew to full size, and then the doctor approached the plant, picked an ear, and handed it to the spectators.
Similar to this was a feat performed with a cedar berry. The berry was passed around among the spectators for examination, and was then planted as the corn had been. Then after a few moments the doctor approached the spot, put his thumb and forefinger down into the soft dirt, and seemed to lay hold of something. Very slowly he raised his hand and was seen to hold on the tips of his fingers the end of a cedar twig. Slowly his hand was moved from the ground, the twig growing longer and [Pg 381] longer. When nine or ten inches high it began to have side branches. The doctor still holding the topmost twig of what was by this time a cedar bush, continued to lift his hand very slowly, until it was about three feet from the ground, and then let go of the bush. Then presently he took hold of the stem close to the ground, and, seeming to exert a good deal of force, pulled up the bush by the roots; and all the people saw the bush and its bunch of fresh and growing roots.
Similar to this was a trick done with a cedar berry. The berry was passed around for the audience to examine, and then it was planted just like the corn had been. After a few moments, the doctor approached the spot, pressed his thumb and forefinger into the soft soil, and seemed to grab hold of something. Very slowly, he raised his hand, revealing the end of a cedar twig on the tips of his fingers. Gradually, his hand moved away from the ground, with the twig growing longer and longer. When it reached about nine or ten inches high, it started to develop side branches. The doctor, still holding the topmost twig of what had now become a cedar bush, continued to lift his hand very slowly until it was about three feet off the ground, then let go of the bush. Shortly after, he grasped the stem close to the ground and, appearing to use a lot of force, pulled the bush up by the roots; and everyone saw the bush with its cluster of fresh, growing roots.
Enough has been said of these mystery ceremonies to indicate that they were very remarkable. The circumstances under which they were performed would seem to remove them from the more commonplace tricks of professional jugglers. And I have never found any one who could even suggest an explanation of them.
Enough has been said about these mystery ceremonies to show that they were truly extraordinary. The conditions in which they took place make them stand apart from the usual tricks of professional jugglers. And I’ve never met anyone who could even propose an explanation for them.
As might be inferred, these mysterious doings greatly impressed the Pawnees; and the older men among them have a vast store of reminiscences of past dances, which they delight in repeating. In the course of a long talk with Bear Chief one evening, he recounted a number of instances which he had seen. He said:
As you might guess, these mysterious events really impressed the Pawnees, and the older men among them have a wealth of memories of past dances that they love to share. During a lengthy conversation with Bear Chief one evening, he shared several examples he had witnessed. He said:
“A man in our tribe was blind; he could not see. [Pg 382] He could travel in the night as well as we can in the day, but when daylight came he could see nothing. At one time he called together his relations, and told them that, though blind, he wished to lead out a war party. He said, ‘I know that I, with my party, will kill an enemy.’ They started out, a young man leading him by the hand all day long. After they had been out several days, he told the young men to be ready, that the next morning he was going to kill an enemy. The next morning, while they were traveling along, they saw an enemy, and surrounded and killed him. They took the scalp and brought it home, and he had great credit, because, being blind, he had killed an enemy. They were all surprised that a blind man should have killed an enemy. He sacrificed the scalp to Ti-ra´-wa, and was made a warrior, and went to the sacred lodge and told the story of his campaign, and was made a warrior—a blind warrior.
A man in our tribe was blind; he couldn’t see. [Pg382] He could travel at night just as well as we could during the day, but when daylight came, he saw nothing. One time, he gathered his relatives and told them that, despite being blind, he wanted to lead a war party. He stated, “I know that I, along with my party, will take down an enemy.” They set out, with a young man guiding him by the hand all day long. After they had been out for several days, he told the young men to be ready because the next morning, he was going to defeat an enemy. The next morning, while they were on the move, they spotted an enemy and surrounded and killed him. They took the scalp and brought it home, and he received a lot of respect because, even though he was blind, he had successfully killed an enemy. Everyone was amazed that a blind man could have accomplished this. He offered the scalp to Ti-ra´-wa, was recognized as a warrior, went to the sacred lodge, shared the story of his campaign, and became a warrior—a blind warrior.
“It was a wonderful thing for a blind person to be able to travel in the night. This must have come from Ti-ra´-wa.
“It was an amazing thing for a blind person to be able to travel at night. This must have come from Ti-ra´-wa.
“One of the wonderful things done by this man was at a medicine dance. Everybody was there. He stood up with his bearskin over him, and was [Pg 383] led out before the people. A cedar branch was given him, and he sharpened the end where it had been cut off, and stuck it in the ground. Everybody was now asked to pull up this branch, and many tried to do so, but the strongest men in the tribe could not move it. He could pull it up, as if it were stuck in the mud. He thrust the pointed end in the ground again, and asked the doctors to pull up the cedar branch. They tried to do so, but could not stir it. The chiefs also were asked to try to do this. They tried, but could not move it. Something seemed to hold it in the ground. After everybody had tried to pull it up, and failed, this blind man went to it, and taking hold of it, pulled with all his strength, and pulled up with it about six feet of roots. There lay the tree with all it roots fresh and growing.
“One of the amazing things this man did was at a medicine dance. Everyone was there. He stood up with a bearskin draped over him and was [Pg383] led out in front of the crowd. A cedar branch was given to him, and he sharpened the cut end and stuck it in the ground. People were then asked to pull up the branch, and many tried, but even the strongest men in the tribe couldn’t move it. He easily pulled it up, as if it were stuck in mud. He pushed the pointed end back into the ground and asked the healers to pull up the cedar branch. They tried, but couldn’t budge it. The chiefs were also asked to give it a shot. They tried and couldn’t move it either. It felt like something was holding it in place. After everyone had tried and failed, this blind man approached it, grabbed hold, and pulled with all his might, and pulled up about six feet of roots. There lay the tree, roots fresh and thriving.”
“There was, in my young days, a certain brave man in the tribe. His name was Elk Left Behind. He was so brave that, when the Sioux surrounded him, he would kill so many that he would scare the rest away. In one of the doctors’ dances he had the skin of a fawn in his hands. He called out to the people, ‘Now, you people, watch me; look close and see what I shall do, and you will find out what my [Pg 384] bravery is, and that it all comes from this that you see.’ In our presence he shook this fawn skin, and the fawn slipped out of his hands and then stood before him, a living fawn looking at him. ‘That is what I mean,’ said he. ‘If the enemies surround me, that is the way I come out of it. The fawn can run so fast that it can never be caught, nor can it ever be shot.’
“There was, in my younger days, a brave man in the tribe named Elk Left Behind. He was so fearless that when the Sioux surrounded him, he would take down so many that he would scare the rest away. During one of the doctors’ dances, he held a fawn skin in his hands. He called out to the people, ‘Now, everyone, watch me; look closely and see what I’m about to do, and you’ll understand what my [Pg384] bravery is, and that it all comes from this that you see.’ In front of us, he shook the fawn skin, and suddenly a living fawn slipped out of his hands and stood before him, looking at him. ‘That’s what I mean,’ he said. ‘If my enemies surround me, that’s how I escape. The fawn can run so fast that it can never be caught, nor can it ever be shot.’”
“This man was wonderful. He used to imitate the deer and the elk. He could never be driven into timber or brush, or where there were thickets. He said, ‘If I am ever wounded, it will be when I go into timber or brush.’ He always wanted to be in the open plain where he could be surrounded. He never ran to the timber for shelter.
“This man was amazing. He used to imitate deer and elk. He could never be driven into the woods or brush, or where there were thickets. He said, ‘If I ever get hurt, it will be when I go into the woods or brush.’ He always wanted to be in the open plain where he could be surrounded. He never ran to the woods for shelter.”
“If they suspected that the Sioux were coming to attack the village, he would load a gun and shoot it off. If the ball came back to him, there were no Sioux coming. If it did not, then they would be coming. When I was present it always came back to him. There were no Sioux coming.
“If they thought the Sioux were about to attack the village, he would load a gun and shoot it off. If the bullet came back to him, that meant there were no Sioux coming. If it didn’t come back, then they were on their way. Whenever I was there, it always came back to him. There were no Sioux coming."
“At one time in the doctors’ dance I saw him driving ten young men, who pretended that they were deer. He had a gun and loaded it, and shot the ten men, one after another, through the side. They fell [Pg 385] down wounded, and then got up and limped off half dying. He drove them around the ring so that the people might see their wounds. After they had looked at them, he went up to the first and slapped him on the back, and the ball dropped out of him on to the ground, and the man straightened up, healed. So he did to all, up to the tenth man, and they were all healed. This was wonderful.
“At one point during the doctors’ dance, I saw him leading ten young men who were pretending to be deer. He had a gun, loaded it, and shot each one of them in the side, one after the other. They fell down, wounded, then got back up and limped away, half dead. He made them parade around the ring so the audience could see their injuries. After everyone had looked, he approached the first man and gave him a slap on the back, causing the bullet to drop out onto the ground, and the man stood up, fully healed. He did the same for all of them, up to the tenth man, and they were all healed. It was amazing.

SUN CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I.
SUN CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK'I.
[Pg 386] “At one time he wanted to show the people that he could stand anything. He and two others were attacked by Sioux. He said, ‘I want to be wounded; let us go to the thickets.’ They did so, and a Sioux shot him through the back, and the other two were wounded, but he healed them all after they had got away from the Sioux.
[Page386] “At one point, he wanted to prove to everyone that he could handle anything. He and two others were ambushed by the Sioux. He said, ‘I want to get hurt; let’s head to the bushes.’ They did, and a Sioux shot him in the back, while the other two were injured as well, but he treated all their wounds after they managed to escape from the Sioux.”
“Another man in the doctors’ dance had four young men pretend that they were horses. All had manes and tails, and were painted to imitate horses. He had a gun, to which was tied a scalp. He loaded the gun, and while he was doing this the horses ran off, and stood looking back at the man. He cocked the gun and laid it on the ground pointing toward the horses, and placed the scalp near the trigger, and walked some steps away. Then he motioned to the scalp and the gun went off, and one of the horses went down wounded. It seems that the ghost of the scalp obeyed his motion, and shot off the gun. He loaded the gun again, and placed it on the ground as before. The second time he went way off, and as soon as he waved his hand and said, ‘wooh,’ the gun went off and another horse went down. This was repeated until all the horses were down. The people examined them and saw [Pg 387] that they were really wounded in the breast. The man went up to them and they seemed to be dying and vomited blood, and the young man slapped them, and the balls came out of their mouths, and as soon as the balls came away from them they were healed.
“Another man in the doctors’ dance had four young men pretend to be horses. They all had manes and tails and were painted to look like horses. He had a gun, to which a scalp was attached. He loaded the gun, and while he was doing this, the horses ran off, standing and looking back at him. He cocked the gun and laid it on the ground pointing toward the horses, placing the scalp near the trigger, and walked a few steps away. Then he signaled to the scalp, and the gun went off, hitting one of the horses. It seemed that the spirit of the scalp followed his signal and fired the gun. He loaded the gun again and set it down as before. The second time, he moved far away, and as soon as he waved his hand and said, ‘wooh,’ the gun went off again and another horse fell. This continued until all the horses were down. The people checked them and saw [Pg387] that they were actually wounded in the chest. The man approached them, and they appeared to be dying and coughed up blood. The young man slapped them, and the bullets came out of their mouths, and as soon as the bullets were removed, they were healed.”
“There were two people, a brother and sister, children of a man who had been helped by a bear. One time when we were having a doctors’ dance, the sister and brother came forward, each carrying five cedar branches about three feet long. They rolled a big rock into the middle of the lodge, so that all might see what they were going to do. Then they called ten private men who were not doctors, and told them to thrust the ends of the branches into the stone as if they had grown there, and they sang:
“There were two people, a brother and sister, children of a man who had been helped by a bear. One time during a doctors’ dance, the sister and brother stepped forward, each holding five cedar branches about three feet long. They rolled a big rock into the center of the lodge so everyone could see what they were going to do. Then they called over ten private men who weren’t doctors and told them to stick the ends of the branches into the stone as if they had grown there, and they sang:”
The cedar tree grows in the rock.
“These cedar branches were cut square off at the butt, and were set on the stone. They were not big enough to be even and balance, but still they stood upright, as if grown from the rock. The doctors tried to blow them down with their fans made of eagle feathers, but they could not do it. You could not blow them off nor pull them off. At length the [Pg 388] men who put them there were told to take them off. They had hard work to do it, but at last they succeeded.
“These cedar branches were cut straight across at the base and placed on the stone. They were too small to be even and balanced, yet they stood tall, as if they were growing from the rock. The doctors tried to blow them down with their fans made of eagle feathers, but they couldn't do it. You couldn't blow them away or pull them off. Eventually, the [Pg388] men who put them there were instructed to remove them. They had a tough time doing it, but in the end, they succeeded.”
“The sister (I saw her do it) put her hands up to the sun, and then putting them on the ground and scratching and throwing up dust, she would take up her hands, and have hands like a bear, with hair and long claws.
“The sister (I saw her do it) raised her hands to the sun, then put them on the ground, scratching and throwing up dust. When she lifted her hands again, they looked like a bear's, covered in hair and with long claws."
“She used to understand how to make plums and other fruits grow on trees. She supplied the doctors with choke cherries and plums. The doctors had trees brought in that had no fruit on them. She would make the plums grow, and shaking the tree, they would fall down, and everybody would have a taste of them. This was at a doctors’ dance.”
“She knew how to make plums and other fruits grow on trees. She provided the doctors with chokecherries and plums. The doctors brought in trees that had no fruit on them. She would make the plums grow, and by shaking the tree, they would drop down, and everyone would get a taste of them. This was at a doctors’ dance.”

A PARFLECHE.
A parfleche.
LATER HISTORY.
I. REMOVAL TO THE INDIAN TERRITORY.
THE project of removing the Pawnees from their reservation on the Loup River in Nebraska appears to have been first heard of in the year 1872. The Pawnee reservation was close to civilization, and the settlers moving west into Nebraska coveted the Indians’ lands. It was the old story, the same one that has been heard ever since the rapacious whites first set foot on the shores of this continent.
THE plan to relocate the Pawnees from their reservation on the Loup River in Nebraska seems to have first come to the public's attention in 1872. The Pawnee reservation was near populated areas, and settlers heading west into Nebraska wanted the Indians’ land. It was the same old story, the one that's been told ever since greedy white settlers first arrived on this continent.
The Pawnees were strongly attached to their home in Nebraska. They had always lived there, and were used to it. Their forefathers were buried there. Up to the winter of 1873-74 they had no idea of moving. But they were constantly being subjected to annoyances.
The Pawnees were deeply connected to their home in Nebraska. They had always lived there and were accustomed to it. Their ancestors were buried there. Until the winter of 1873-74, they had no intention of moving. However, they faced ongoing disturbances.
Settlers crowded in close to the Pawnee agency, [Pg 390] and even located on it on the south and east, and in the most matter of fact way drove their teams into the Pawnee timber, and cut and carried off the Pawnee wood, on which the tribe depended for fuel and for building materials. This open robbery gave rise to constant disputes and bickerings between the Indians and the whites, in which the former were invariably worsted. On the south and east side of the reservation the crowding and the depredations were continuous. On the north and west the reservation was exposed to frequent incursions from the different bands of Sioux. War parties came down from their reservations, stole the Pawnees’ horses, killed their women while at work in the fields, and sometimes even attacked the village. These attacks, though always successfully repelled by the Pawnees, were a continual source of annoyance and irritation to them, while their consistent desire to obey the rules laid down for their guidance by the Government prevented them from retaliating in kind upon their enemies.
Settlers crowded close to the Pawnee agency, [Pg390] and even settled on it to the south and east. In a very straightforward manner, they drove their teams into the Pawnee timber and cut down and took away the wood that the tribe relied on for fuel and building materials. This blatant theft led to constant arguments and disputes between the Indians and the white settlers, with the former always coming out on the losing end. On the south and east sides of the reservation, the encroachment and thefts were ongoing. On the north and west, the reservation faced frequent attacks from different bands of Sioux. War parties would come down from their reservations, steal the Pawnee's horses, kill their women while they were working in the fields, and sometimes even attack the village. Although the Pawnees always managed to fend off these attacks, they became a constant source of frustration and annoyance for them, while their persistent desire to follow the guidelines set by the Government kept them from retaliating against their enemies.
The first proposition to remove the Pawnees to the Indian Territory originated with the whites, but there is some reason to think that an independent movement with the same object in view was made by [Pg 391] members of the Pawnee tribe. As nearly as I can learn from conversation with Indians who took a leading part in the movement, this project for a removal of a part of the tribe to the south originated with Lone Chief, the Kit-ke-hahk´-i; and was taken up and supported by Left Hand, known also as Spotted Horse, a turbulent spirit, who was killed a few years ago by an United States marshal; and by Frank White, an intelligent soldier of the Chau-i band.
The initial idea to relocate the Pawnees to Indian Territory came from the white population, but there’s some reason to believe that there was an independent effort for the same purpose made by [Pg391] members of the Pawnee tribe. As far as I can gather from conversations with Indians who played key roles in the movement, this plan to move part of the tribe south started with Lone Chief, the Kit-ke-hahk´-i; and was supported by Left Hand, also known as Spotted Horse, a rebellious figure who was killed a few years ago by a United States marshal; and by Frank White, a knowledgeable soldier from the Chau-i band.
In the summer of 1870, Lone Chief led a visiting party, which is said to have numbered three hundred men, south to the Wichitas. When this party turned back to go north in the fall, many of them were sick with chills and fever—a disease unknown to them until that time—and some died on the way. At this time the notion of the removal had not been suggested, but it is probable that even then Lone Chief was considering the advisability of moving south with his own immediate family, and taking up his residence with the Wichitas. He had not yet spoken of this project, however, but in the winter of 1871-72 he announced his intention of doing this, and even started on his journey, but for some reason turned back.
In the summer of 1870, Lone Chief led a group of about three hundred men south to the Wichitas. When this group headed back north in the fall, many of them were suffering from chills and fever—a disease they had never encountered before—and some died along the way. At this point, the idea of relocation hadn’t been brought up, but it’s likely that even then, Lone Chief was thinking about the possibility of moving south with his immediate family to live with the Wichitas. He hadn’t mentioned this plan yet, but in the winter of 1871-72, he announced his intention to do so and even began his journey, but for some reason, he turned back.
The next winter—1872-73—while the tribe was [Pg 392] absent on the buffalo hunt, the northern Sioux came down and stole from the Pawnees a number of horses. This made the Pawnees uneasy, and some war parties started out. It was at this time that Lone Chief conceived the idea of increasing the company which should proceed south with him. After some consideration and consultation, Lone Chief, Spotted Horse and Frank White planned that a small party should go south, and visit the different tribes in the Indian Territory, for the purpose of learning how these tribes would regard a general movement of the Pawnees down into their country. The plan was not fully developed until this small party, of which Spotted Horse and Frank White were the leaders, was on its way.
The next winter—1872-73—while the tribe was [Pg392] away on the buffalo hunt, the northern Sioux came down and stole several horses from the Pawnees. This made the Pawnees anxious, and some war parties set out. It was during this time that Lone Chief came up with the idea of enlarging the group that would accompany him south. After some thought and discussions, Lone Chief, Spotted Horse, and Frank White agreed that a small party should head south and visit the different tribes in the Indian Territory to find out how these tribes would feel about a general movement of the Pawnees into their area. The plan wasn't finalized until this small group, led by Spotted Horse and Frank White, was already on its way.
The party visited first the Otoes and Kaws, and then going south came to the Wichitas, Comanches, Kiowas and Apaches, and were everywhere hospitably entertained, and given presents of horses. They asked the chiefs and headmen of the various tribes which they visited to come together at a certain specified time at the Wichita camp, telling them that they had something that they wished to say to them there. The Pawnees then returned to the Wichita village, and awaited the appointed time.
The party first visited the Otoes and Kaws, then headed south to the Wichitas, Comanches, Kiowas, and Apaches, where they were warmly welcomed and given gifts of horses. They asked the chiefs and leaders of the tribes they visited to gather at a specific time in the Wichita camp, explaining that they had something important to discuss with them there. The Pawnees then returned to the Wichita village and waited for the designated time.
[Pg 393] Soon the representatives of the different tribes began to arrive. Day after day they kept coming in, until all were present. When they had assembled in council, Spotted Horse rose to speak. He said, “My brothers, I want you to know one thing—We, the Pawnees, want to be brothers, and to be at peace. I have made up my mind to come down here with my party of Pawnees to live with you.”
[Pg393] Soon, representatives from the different tribes started arriving. Day after day, they kept coming until everyone was there. Once they gathered in council, Spotted Horse stood up to speak. He said, “My brothers, I want you to understand one thing—we, the Pawnees, want to be brothers and live in peace. I have decided to come down here with my group of Pawnees to live with you.”
The chiefs representing the different tribes all expressed their satisfaction at this announcement, and urged him to come as he had intended. They said, “We have good land here, and lots of buffalo. We shall be glad if you decide to come.” After all had spoken, Spotted Horse again stood up and said, “Brothers, there is here with me one leading man among the Pawnees. He, also, will tell you what he thinks about this.” Frank White then spoke and said that he intended to accompany Spotted Horse when he should move south. The chiefs of the different tribes again expressed the hope that they would carry out their intentions, and arrangements were made with the tribes that they should come down and live with them.
The chiefs from the different tribes all showed their approval of this announcement and encouraged him to come as he had planned. They said, “We have great land here and plenty of buffalo. We’ll be happy if you choose to come.” After everyone had spoken, Spotted Horse stood up again and said, “Brothers, there is a prominent leader from the Pawnees with me. He will also share his thoughts on this.” Frank White then spoke up and said that he planned to join Spotted Horse when he moved south. The chiefs from the various tribes expressed hope that they would follow through with their plans, and they made arrangements for the tribes to come down and live with them.
It is stated that just before this visiting party started north toward their home, news came from the [Pg 394] Pawnee agency that the tribe had been attacked and massacred on the Republican River by Sioux, and as they journeyed north they learned the details of the occurrence. On reaching the village, Spotted Horse and Frank White reported to Lone Chief and to their families what they had done, and their action was confirmed. The chiefs of the tribe and the agent were then notified. Soon afterward a general council was held, at which public announcement of their intention was made by these three men. To most of those present the project was wholly new, and there was a good deal of confusion in the council, the people exclaiming at the news and discussing it.
It was reported that just before this visiting group headed north towards home, they received news from the [Pg394] Pawnee agency that the tribe had been attacked and killed on the Republican River by the Sioux. As they traveled north, they learned more about what happened. Upon reaching the village, Spotted Horse and Frank White informed Lone Chief and their families about their actions, which were confirmed. The tribe's chiefs and the agent were then notified. Shortly after, a general council was held, where these three men made a public announcement of their plans. For most attendees, this project was completely new, leading to a lot of confusion in the council, with people gasping at the news and discussing it.
Efforts were made by the chiefs of the bands to dissuade those who proposed to move. The Head Chief, Pi´ta Le-shar, tried to persuade Frank White not to leave the tribe, but he said that he had promised, and he should go.
Efforts were made by the leaders of the groups to convince those who wanted to leave. The Head Chief, Pi´ta Le-shar, tried to talk Frank White out of leaving the tribe, but he said he had made a promise, and he had to go.
In the autumn of 1873, Lone Chief, Spotted Horse and Frank White, accompanied by their personal following, started south. With them went about two-thirds of the tribe. The three leaders had a pass from the Superintendent of Indian Affairs at the Pawnee agency. The chiefs of the tribe were still [Pg 395] bitterly opposed to the notion of the removal, and Pi´ta Le-shar, the Head Chief, exerted all his influence to prevent the movement. After the migrating party had gone about fifty miles, messengers from the chiefs overtook them, directing them to return to the village. The march was stopped, and the three leaders, as delegates, returned to the agency to learn the cause of the order. They reached there in the evening, and spent the whole night conferring with the agent (Burgess), to whom they gave presents to persuade him to accede to their request to continue their journey. Lone Chief was the most determined, and insisted that they should be permitted to go on without interference.
In the fall of 1873, Lone Chief, Spotted Horse, and Frank White, along with their supporters, headed south. About two-thirds of the tribe went with them. The three leaders had permission from the Superintendent of Indian Affairs at the Pawnee agency. However, the tribe's chiefs were still strongly against the idea of removal, and Pi'ta Le-shar, the Head Chief, used all his influence to stop the movement. After the migrating group had traveled about fifty miles, messengers from the chiefs caught up with them, ordering them to return to the village. The march was halted, and the three leaders went back to the agency as representatives to find out why they received the order. They arrived in the evening and spent the entire night discussing the situation with the agent (Burgess), giving him gifts to persuade him to allow them to continue their journey. Lone Chief was the most resolute, insisting that they should be allowed to proceed without any interference.
At length the authorities yielded, and a new pass having been given them, they returned to the camp. The responsibility of taking away so large a part of the tribe was weighing heavily on these three men, however, and they determined to send back all except their own families. On reaching the camp, therefore, they told the Indians that they all were to go back, but hid their own horses, pretending that they had strayed off, so that the main body would start back without them. After the others had moved out of camp on their return march to the agency, the lost [Pg 396] horses were at once found, and the three men with their families went on south.
At last, the authorities agreed, and after receiving a new pass, they returned to the camp. The burden of taking away such a large part of the tribe was weighing heavily on these three men, so they decided to send back everyone except their own families. When they reached the camp, they informed the Indians that everyone had to go back but hid their own horses, pretending they had wandered off, so the main group would leave without them. After the others had departed on their way back to the agency, the lost [Pg396] horses were quickly found, and the three men with their families headed south.
The following year all the tribe followed, except the Skidi, Lone Chief, and a few personal friends, who still refused to leave the old reservation. This small company remained in their old home one year longer, and then they, too, went south to their present reservation.
The next year, everyone in the tribe left except for the Skidi, Lone Chief, and a few close friends who still didn't want to leave the old reservation. This small group stayed in their home for another year, and then they also headed south to their current reservation.
Shortly before the removal of the tribe to the Indian Territory in 1874, Pi´ta Le-shar, the Head Chief, was shot, and died from his wound. It has been stated, and generally believed, that his death resulted from the accidental discharge of his own pistol, but there are well-informed persons who believe that he was murdered. There is reason to believe that the shot did not come from his own weapon, but that he was shot by a white man in order to get rid of his influence, which was consistently exerted to keep the Pawnees in their northern home. The Chief’s wound was not a serious one, and he was doing well under the charge of a white surgeon, when he was induced to put himself in the care of a Pawnee doctor, under whose treatment he died.
Shortly before the tribe was relocated to the Indian Territory in 1874, Pi´ta Le-shar, the Head Chief, was shot and died from his injury. It's been said, and generally accepted, that his death was due to the accidental discharge of his own pistol, but some knowledgeable individuals believe he was murdered. There are reasons to think that the shot didn’t come from his own weapon, but rather that he was shot by a white man to eliminate his influence, which was continuously directed at keeping the Pawnees in their northern home. The Chief's injury was not serious, and he was recovering well under the care of a white surgeon when he agreed to be treated by a Pawnee doctor, under whose care he died.
Ti-ra´-wa Le-shar, another bitter opponent of removal, had been killed in 1873; and the death of [Pg 397] Pi´ta Le-shar left Lone Chief, Skidi, the only man of strong character to oppose the movement.
Ti-ra´-wa Le-shar, another strong opponent of removal, had been killed in 1873; and the death of [Pg397] Pi´ta Le-shar left Lone Chief, Skidi, as the only person of strong character to resist the movement.
The full history of the plot to eject the Pawnees from their northern home may never be recorded, for there are few men alive who know the facts. If it should be written there would be disclosed a carefully planned and successfully carried out conspiracy to rob this people of their lands. This outrage has cost hundreds of lives, and an inconceivable amount of suffering, and is another damning and ineffaceable blot on the record of the American people, and one which ought surely to have had a place in Mrs. Jackson’s “Century of Dishonor.”
The complete history of the scheme to force the Pawnees out of their northern homeland may never be documented, as there are few who are still alive with knowledge of the facts. If it were to be written, it would reveal a well-planned and effectively executed conspiracy to steal this community's land. This injustice has resulted in hundreds of deaths and unimaginable suffering, and it stands as another shameful and indelible stain on the history of the American people, which definitely should have been included in Mrs. Jackson’s “Century of Dishonor.”
II. PRESENT CONDITION AND PROGRESS.
During the first four years of their sojourn in the Indian Territory the condition of the Pawnees was most miserable.
During the first four years of their time in the Indian Territory, the Pawnees were in very poor condition.
They had left the high, dry, sandy country of the Loup, and come south into the more fertile, but also more humid country of the Indian Territory, where they found a region entirely different from that to which they had been accustomed. Soon after their settlement on their new reservation, they were [Pg 398] attacked by fever and ague, a disease which had been unknown to them in their northern home, and many of them died, while all were so weakened by disease and so discouraged by homesickness that their nature seemed wholly changed. They lost their old spirit and their energy, and were possessed only by a desire to return to their northern home. This was, of course, impossible, since their old reservation had been thrown open to settlement, and in part occupied by the whites. During the first ten years of their sojourn in the Territory more than one of the agents appointed to look after the Pawnees were either incompetent or dishonest, so that the people suffered from lack of food, and some of them even starved to death. They were miserably poor, for they did not know how to work, and no one tried to encourage or help them to do so. The few horses which they had were stolen from them by white horse thieves, and they were now in a country and under conditions where they could not practice their old war methods. The tribes against which their expeditions had once been made were now their neighbors and their friends.
They had left the dry, sandy plains of the Loup and moved south into the more fertile but also more humid Indian Territory, where they encountered an area completely different from what they were used to. Shortly after settling on their new reservation, they were struck by fever and ague, a disease that was unknown in their northern homeland. Many died, and those who survived were so weakened by illness and so disheartened by homesickness that they seemed to have completely changed. They lost their former spirit and energy, consumed only by a longing to return north. This was, of course, impossible since their old reservation had been opened up for settlement and partially taken over by white settlers. During the first ten years in the Territory, several of the agents assigned to help the Pawnees were either incompetent or corrupt, causing the people to suffer from food shortages, with some even starving to death. They were desperately poor because they didn't know how to work, and nobody made an effort to encourage or assist them. The few horses they had were stolen by white horse thieves, and they found themselves in a place where they couldn’t apply their previous methods of warfare. The tribes they had once fought against were now their neighbors and friends.
When Major North and his brother Luther visited the agency in 1876, to enlist scouts for General [Pg 399] Crook’s northern campaign, they found the Pawnees in a pitiable condition. They were without food, without clothing, without arms and without horses. Their sole covering consisted of cotton sheets, which afforded no protection against cold and wet. It is not strange that under such circumstances the people died off fast. At this time Major North had orders to enlist only one hundred scouts, but he was greatly perplexed in selecting his men, for four hundred wanted to go with him. Every able-bodied man in the tribe, and many who were not able-bodied, tried to get their names on the muster roll. Each man, at any cost, sought to get away from the suffering of his present life; from the fever that made him quake, the chill that caused him to shiver, and above all from the deadly monotony of the reservation life. After Major North had enlisted his quota of men and started with them on his way north, more than a hundred others followed him on foot to Arkansas City, in the hope that he could be persuaded to increase his force, or else that some of those enlisted would drop out through sickness, and there might be room for others.
When Major North and his brother Luther visited the agency in 1876 to recruit scouts for General [Pg399] Crook’s northern campaign, they found the Pawnees in a terrible state. They lacked food, clothing, weapons, and horses. Their only covering was cotton sheets, which offered no protection from the cold and wet. It’s no surprise that under such conditions, many people were dying quickly. At that time, Major North was ordered to recruit just one hundred scouts, but he faced a major challenge in choosing his men, as four hundred wanted to join him. Every able-bodied man in the tribe, and many who weren’t, tried to get their names on the list. Each man desperately sought to escape the suffering of his current life; from the fever that made him shake, the chill that caused him to tremble, and especially from the monotonous drudgery of life on the reservation. After Major North enlisted his quota of men and set off northward with them, over a hundred others followed him on foot to Arkansas City, hoping he could be persuaded to increase his team, or that some of the enlisted men would drop out due to illness, leaving room for others.
The wretched condition of the Pawnees continued up to about 1884 or 1885. Before this time the people [Pg 400] had become in a measure acclimated in their new home, and had come to realize that it was absolutely necessary for them to go to work if the tribe was to continue to exist. They began to work; at first only a few, but gradually many, of the Skidi, and then the Chau-i and the Kit-ke-hahk´-i. Presently a point was reached where it was no longer necessary to issue them Government rations. They raised enough on their farms to support themselves. Each year of late they have done better and better. A drought one season, and a cyclone another, destroyed their crops, but, undiscouraged and undaunted, they push ahead, striving earnestly to become like white men. The Pita-hau-erats are the least progressive of the four bands, and many of them still live in dirt lodges, and cultivate patches of corn scarcely larger than those tilled in their old villages; but as the other bands advance, and as the results of manual labor are seen and understood by those who are more idle, they, too, will catch the spirit of progress, and will lay hold of the plow.
The poor condition of the Pawnees lasted until around 1884 or 1885. Before that time, the people [Pg400] had started to adapt to their new home and realized that they needed to work if the tribe was going to survive. They began to work; at first only a few, but gradually many of the Skidi, then the Chau-i and the Kit-ke-hahk´-i. Eventually, they reached a point where it was no longer necessary to give them Government rations. They grew enough on their farms to support themselves. Each year lately, they have been improving more and more. There was a drought one season and a cyclone another that damaged their crops, but, undeterred and unshaken, they keep pushing forward, working hard to become like white people. The Pita-hau-erats are the least progressive of the four bands, and many of them still live in dirty lodges and farm small patches of corn no larger than those in their old villages; but as the other bands move forward and see the results of hard work being recognized by those who are less active, they too will embrace the spirit of progress and take up the plow.
Last March, as I drove along toward the agency, and as we came in sight of Black Bear Creek, I was surprised to see what looked like good farm houses dotting the distant bottom. A nearer view [Pg 401] and a closer investigation showed me that the most well-to-do of the Pawnees live in houses as good as those of many a New England land owner, and very much better than those inhabited by new settlers in the farther West. Many of them have considerable farms under fence, a barn, a garden in which vegetables are raised, and a peach orchard. They realize that as yet they are only beginning, but to me, who knew them in their old barbaric condition, their progress seems a marvel. Nowadays by far the greater number of the Pawnees wear civilized clothing, ride in wagons, and send their children to the agency school. They are making rapid strides toward civilization, just such progress as might be expected from the intelligent and courageous people that they are and always have been.
Last March, as I drove toward the agency and spotted Black Bear Creek, I was surprised to see what looked like nice farmhouses scattered across the distant valley. A closer look and investigation revealed that the most well-off Pawnees live in homes just as nice as those of many New England landowners, and much better than those of new settlers further west. Many have sizeable fenced farms, barns, vegetable gardens, and peach orchards. They understand that they are just starting out, but for me, who knew them in their previous, more primitive state, their progress is astonishing. Nowadays, a large majority of the Pawnees wear modern clothing, travel in wagons, and send their kids to the agency school. They are quickly advancing toward a more civilized way of life, just the kind of progress you would expect from the intelligent and brave people they have always been.
The Pawnees receive from the Government a perpetual annuity of thirty thousand dollars, of which one-half is paid in money, and one-half in goods. Besides this they have a credit with the Government of about two hundred and eighty thousand dollars (the proceeds of the sale of their old reservation in Nebraska), on which they receive interest; and for some years past they have leased to cattlemen about one hundred and twenty-five thousand acres of their [Pg 402] reservation, for which they receive about three thousand eight hundred dollars per annum. It will thus be seen that in addition to the crops which they raise, the tribe is fairly well provided with money. While a considerable part of this is, of course, wasted, being spent for trifles and for luxuries, it is nevertheless the fact that a certain proportion of it is invested by the Indians in tools, farming implements, and in furniture. Three years ago the Indians merely dropped their corn into the furrow, while some planted with a hoe. There was then only one corn-planter on the reservation. Now there are thirteen of these implements of improved pattern, bought by the Indians, and paid for with their own money. Reapers and mowers belong to the Indian Department, and are loaned, not issued, and these pass round from one family to another. Within the last four years one hundred breaking and stirring plows have been issued, and one hundred and five double shovel cultivators. Eighty wagons and one hundred and fifty sets of harness have been issued in the same length of time. Besides these, eight two-horse cultivators are loaned them by the Government.
The Pawnees receive a permanent annual payment of thirty thousand dollars from the Government, with half in cash and half in goods. Additionally, they have a credit with the Government of about two hundred eighty thousand dollars (from the sale of their old reservation in Nebraska), which earns interest. For the past several years, they have leased about one hundred twenty-five thousand acres of their [Pg402] reservation to cattlemen for around three thousand eight hundred dollars a year. This shows that, along with the crops they grow, the tribe has a decent amount of money. While a good portion of this is wasted on trivial items and luxuries, some of it is invested by the Indians in tools, farming equipment, and furniture. Three years ago, they just dropped their corn seeds into the ground, and some used a hoe for planting. There was only one corn planter on the reservation at that time. Now, there are thirteen improved corn planters that the Indians purchased with their own money. The Indian Department owns the reapers and mowers, which are loaned out to families instead of being issued directly. Over the last four years, one hundred breaking and stirring plows and one hundred five double shovel cultivators have been provided. In the same timeframe, eighty wagons and one hundred fifty sets of harness have also been issued. Additionally, eight two-horse cultivators are loaned to them by the Government.
The Pawnees seem to be saving up their money to put into farming implements, and they are looking [Pg 403] ahead. Two-thirds of the houses built in the last three years have been built by the Chau-i, who are pushing the Skidi hard in their advance toward civilization.
The Pawnees appear to be saving their money to invest in farming tools, and they are planning for the future. [Pg403] Two-thirds of the houses constructed in the past three years have been built by the Chau-i, who are challenging the Skidi in their progress towards a more modern way of life.
The following table, taken from the official papers of the Indian Bureau, gives some statistics as to the progress made by the Pawnees during the last three years:
The following table, taken from the official documents of the Indian Bureau, provides some statistics on the progress made by the Pawnees over the last three years:
1885. | 1886. | 1887. | 1888. | |
Number of Indians | 1,045 | 998 | 918 | 869 |
Number of male Indians | .... | 483 | 414 | .... |
Number of female Indians | .... | 515 | 504 | .... |
Number speaking English | .... | 289 | .... | 225 |
Number can read (youths) | .... | 100 | 90 | 100 |
Number can read (adults) | .... | 58 | 60 | 75 |
Number wearing citizen’s dress wholly | .... | 300 | 350 | 200 |
Number wearing citizen’s dress in part | .... | 400 | 450 | 600 |
Number doing some farming | .... | 324 | 400 | *125 |
Number having other civilized work | .... | 5 | 6 | *7 |
Number of births | .... | 28 | 45 | 54 |
Number of deaths | .... | 77 | 125 | 106 |
Houses occupied by Indians | .... | 61 | 82 | 98 |
Proportion of Indians self-supporting | .... | ⅔ | ½ | ⅔ |
Farming operations— | ||||
Number of acres cultivated by Indians | 971 | 1,360 | 2,094 | 2,560 |
Number of acres broken by Indians | .... | 67 | 310 | 340 |
[Pg404]Number of acres under fence | 400 | 1,597 | 2,597 | 5,200 |
Number of rods fencing put up during year | 200 | 4,435 | 2,181 | 2,975 |
Produce raised by Indians— | ||||
Number bushels of wheat | 1,177 | 1,273 | 5,000 | 2,500 |
Number bushels of corn, estimated | 35,000 | 26,120 | 30,000 | 60,000 |
Number bushels of oats | 969 | .... | 640 | 2,300 |
Number bushels of potatoes | 100 | 100 | Est. 2,500 | .... |
Number bushels of onions | 10 | 50 | 100 | 150 |
Number bushels of beans | 300 | .... | 500 | 750 |
Number of melons | 5,225 | 50,000 | 50,000 | .... |
Number of pumpkins | 3,000 | 5,000 | .... | .... |
Number tons of hay | 500 | .... | 600 | 800 |
Live stock owned by Indians— | ||||
Horses, estimated | .... | 1,200 | 1,400 | 1,500 |
Mules, estimated | 15 | 20 | 20 | 25 |
Cattle, estimated | 300 | 380 | 575 | 500 |
Hogs, estimated | 100 | .... | 200 | .... |
Fowls, estimated | 200 | 2,500 | 2,500 | 3,000 |
* Families. |
Twelve allotments of land made 1888. Whole number allotments to date (1888), 175. In 1885 Indians sawed 50,050 feet of lumber, and cut 126 cords of wood.
Twelve parcels of land were allocated in 1888. The total number of allotments as of 1888 is 175. In 1885, the Indians sawed 50,050 feet of lumber and cut 126 cords of wood.
In 1886 the Indians hauled 83,814 pounds of freight, for which they were paid $541.54.
In 1886, the Native Americans transported 83,814 pounds of freight, for which they received $541.54.
During the year 1888 three Indian apprentices learned a trade.
During the year 1888, three Indian apprentices learned a trade.
Besides the crops raised, the Indians during 1888 sawed 50,000 feet of lumber, and cut 300 cords of wood.
Besides the crops they grew, the Indians in 1888 sawed 50,000 feet of lumber and cut 300 cords of wood.
In 1886 a severe cyclone and hail storm destroyed the growing crops, and in 1887 a prolonged drought again ruined them. During these two years it was necessary to issue to the Indians half rations and one-third rations respectively. This year (1888-89) no rations have been issued.
In 1886, a powerful cyclone and hailstorm wiped out the crops, and in 1887, a long drought ruined them again. During these two years, it was necessary to provide the Indians with half rations and one-third rations, respectively. This year (1888-89), no rations have been issued.
[Pg 405] As will be seen by these figures, corn is the principal crop raised by the Pawnees, and a large part of the surplus beyond their own wants is sold at from twenty-five to fifty cents a bushel to the dealers in Arkansas City, or to the cattlemen in the neighborhood. The Pawnees have as yet few cattle, their old meat-eating habits have not yet been overcome, and there is a tendency among them to eat any cattle they may obtain rather than to use them for breeding purposes. They ought to be encouraged to keep cattle, to which they could feed their corn, and in this way obtain a better return for their labor than is yielded by the direct sale of the grain. They are fairly well provided with horses, but most of these are small, and of the old-fashioned Indian pony type. They should be encouraged to raise a better class of horses, and at least two well bred heavy stallions should be kept by the Government at Pawnee for Indian use. There is one now at Ponca, thirty-five miles away, but the Pawnees will not take their mares so far.
[Pg405] These figures show that corn is the main crop grown by the Pawnees, and a significant portion of their surplus, beyond what they need, is sold for twenty-five to fifty cents a bushel to dealers in Arkansas City or local cattlemen. The Pawnees currently have few cattle; their traditional meat-eating habits haven’t changed much, leading them to prefer eating any cattle they acquire instead of using them for breeding. They should be encouraged to keep cattle, feeding them their corn to earn better returns on their efforts compared to simply selling the grain. They have a decent number of horses, but most are small and of the old-fashioned Indian pony type. They should be motivated to breed better-quality horses, and the government should keep at least two well-bred heavy stallions at Pawnee for Indian use. There’s one available now in Ponca, thirty-five miles away, but the Pawnees won’t take their mares that far.
Much of the improvement in the condition of the Pawnees has taken place within the last three years, and much of it has been due, as I believe, to the wisdom and judgment of Major Osborne, their agent, [Pg 406] and to the Messrs. McKenzie, who have for three years or more been the clerks directly in charge of these people. These gentlemen appear to have been honest and firm, and yet helpful in their treatment of the people under their charge, and the results of their administration show for themselves, and are something in which these officials may feel a just pride.
Much of the improvement in the Pawnees’ situation has happened in the last three years, largely thanks to the wisdom and judgment of Major Osborne, their agent, [Pg406] and the McKenzie brothers, who have been the clerks responsible for these people for over three years. These gentlemen seem to have been honest, firm, and supportive in their dealings with the community they oversee. The results of their efforts speak for themselves and are a source of rightful pride for these officials.
Few and rapidly diminishing in numbers as are the Pawnee people, I have yet confidence that by the innate strength of their character their decline may be checked, and their race may rise again. It can never do so in its old purity. It must take to itself fresh blood from other stocks, and thus renew its vitality. What I hope for the Pawnee, to-day and in the future, is that the native vigor of the race, the strong heart and singleness of purpose, which in ancient times led the wild brave to success on his warpath, and gave his tribe so high a place among the savage warriors of the plains, may now be exercised in the pursuits of peace; and that the same qualities may give to these earnest toilers, as they tread new paths, strength, courage and endurance to hold a front rank among those Indians, who, to-day so far behind, are nevertheless resolutely setting their steps toward a place with civilized people.
Few and quickly decreasing in number as the Pawnee people are, I still believe that their innate strength can help them stop their decline and rise again. However, they can never return to their old purity. They must incorporate fresh blood from other groups to revive their vitality. What I hope for the Pawnee today and in the future is that the natural vigor of their race—the strong heart and determination that once led their brave warriors to success in battle and secured their tribe's high status among the fierce warriors of the plains—can now be channeled into peaceful pursuits. I wish that these same qualities can give these hardworking individuals the strength, courage, and endurance to rank among those Indians who, though lagging behind today, are resolutely moving toward a place alongside civilized people.
[Pg 407] But whatever the fate of the Pawnee people—whether, like so many other native stocks, it shall dwindle away and disappear, leaving behind it no reminder of its existence, or whether its native force shall enable it under its new conditions to survive and make some mark—we may remember it always as a race of strong, brave people, whose good qualities are deserving of more than a passing tribute.
[Pg407] But no matter what happens to the Pawnee people—whether, like so many other native groups, they fade away and vanish without a trace, or whether their inherent strength allows them to thrive under new circumstances and leave a legacy—we should always remember them as a strong, brave community, whose admirable qualities deserve more than just a fleeting acknowledgment.
* * *
* * *
It was the last day of my stay at the Pawnee agency. I had seen many an old friend; had laughed and joked with some over incidents of former years, and with others had mourned over brave warriors or wise old men who were no longer with us. My visit had been full of pleasure, and yet full of pain. When I had first known the tribe it numbered more than three thousand people, now there are only a little more than eight hundred of them. The evidences of their progress toward civilization are cheering. They are now self-supporting. They no longer die of hunger. But the character of the people has changed. In the old barbaric days they [Pg 408] were light-hearted, merry, makers of jokes, keenly alive to the humorous side of life. Now they are serious, grave, little disposed to laugh. Then they were like children without a care. Now they are like men, on whom the anxieties of life weigh heavily. Civilization, bringing with it some measure of material prosperity, has also brought to these people care, responsibility, repression. No doubt it is best, and it is inevitable, but it is sad, too.
It was the last day of my stay at the Pawnee agency. I had seen many old friends; I had laughed and joked with some over past events, and with others, I had mourned the brave warriors and wise old men who were no longer with us. My visit had been full of joy, yet also filled with sorrow. When I first got to know the tribe, their number was more than three thousand; now there are just a little over eight hundred of them. The signs of their progress toward a civilized way of life are encouraging. They are now self-supporting. They no longer suffer from hunger. But the character of the people has changed. In the old days, they were light-hearted, cheerful, makers of jokes, and were keenly aware of the humorous side of life. Now they are serious, solemn, and not inclined to laugh. Back then, they were like carefree children. Now they are like men burdened by the worries of life. Civilization, while providing some level of material prosperity, has also brought them worry, responsibility, and repression. No doubt it is for the best, and it is inevitable, but it is also sad.
It was my last day, and I was again sitting with Eagle Chief, telling him that the time had come for me to go. He said, “Ah, my son, I like to see you here. I like to sit with you, and to talk over the old times. My heart is sick when I think that you are going away, and that we may never see each other any more. But,” he added, solemnly, “it may be that Ti-ra´-wa will be good to us, and will let us live a long time until we are very old, and then some day we may meet again.”
It was my last day, and I was once again sitting with Eagle Chief, letting him know that it was time for me to leave. He said, “Ah, my son, I enjoy having you here. I like sitting with you and reminiscing about the old days. My heart feels heavy when I think about you leaving, and that we might never see each other again. But,” he added seriously, “maybe Ti-ra´-wa will be kind to us and allow us to live a long time until we are very old, and then one day we might meet again.”
INDEX.
Farming in the past, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
now, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Animals and their sacred nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
see also __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Antelope and deer, story of, 204.
Antelope and deer: the story of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Apaches, 392.
Apaches, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Arkansas, Pawnees in, 229.
Arkansas, Pawnees there, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Arms, 263.
Arms, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Arrows, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
A-ti´-us, 198 et seq.
A-ti´-us, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ et seq.
Auger, General, 325.
Auger, General, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Ax, 66.
Ax, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Baby on board, 141.
Baby on board, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Battles, mode of fighting, 312.
Battles, fighting style, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Bear Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__.
Bear dance, origin of, 128.
Bear dance, origin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Bear Man, story of, 121.
Bear Man, the story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Bear’s-eyes, 241.
Bear's eyes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Big Knife, 141.
Big Knife, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Big Shields, 235.
Big Shields, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Bows, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Boy who saw A-ti´-us, 195.
Boy who saw A-ti´-us, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Boy who was Sacrificed, 161.
Sacrificed Boy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Buffalo hunting, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ and following., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
summer hunt, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Bundles, sacred, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Burnt offerings, 361;
see sacrifices.
Burnt offerings, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
see __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Caddos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Captive, sacrifice of, 362.
Captive, sacrifice of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Carr, General, 325.
Carr, General, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Cedar tree, 126.
Cedar tree, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Hunting rituals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
spiritual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Chau-i, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ et seq., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
Cheyenne Blanket, A, 76.
Cheyenne Blanket, A, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Cheyennes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__ and following.
Chief, office of, 260.
Chief, office of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Comanche Chief, 25.
Comanche Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Comanches, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__.
Cooper’s Indian characters, 13.
Cooper's Native American characters, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Corn, origin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
sacred nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Corn dance, 369.
Corn dance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Counting coup, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__.
Crier, 163.
Crier, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Crooked Hand, 317.
Crooked Hand, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Crows, 307.
Crows, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Curly Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
Customs, 249.
Customs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Dances, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Dancing, 192.
Dancing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Deer dance, origin of, 190.
Deer dance, origin, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Dishes, 256.
Dishes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Dog as beast of burden, 265.
Working dogs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Doctors, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Dress, 262.
Dress, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Dull Knife, 74.
Dull Knife, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Dun Horse, The, 87.
Dun Horse, The, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Dunbar, John B., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Eagle Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Elk, chase of, 251.
Elk chase, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Elk Left Behind, 383.
Elk Left Behind, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Emory, General, 325.
Emory, General, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Enemies, 303.
Enemies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Faith, Story of, 98.
Faith, Story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Farms and Farming, 401.
Farms and Farming, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Firesticks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Fleshers, 170.
Fleshers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Flint stones, 252.
Flint stones, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Flood, tradition of, 356.
Flood tradition, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Fremont, General John C., 329.
Fremont, General John C., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Future life, belief in, 356.
Future life, belief in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Ghost Bride, The, 191.
Ghost Bride, The, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Ghost Wife, The, 129.
Ghost Wife, The, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Giants, tradition of, 354.
Giants, tradition of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Government, form of, 260.
Government, type of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Guide Rock, 359.
Guide Rock, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Hair, styling techniques, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Head chief, office of, 260.
Chief Executive, Office of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
High priestship, 353.
High priesthood, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Hoes of bone, 255.
Bone hoes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Horses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
stealing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Houses, ancient, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
modern, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Hunting methods, early, 269;
see buffalo hunting.
Hunting methods, ancient, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
see __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Indian character, 11-15.
Indian character, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Indian Territory, removal to, 389.
Indian Territory, relocation to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Jackson, Mrs., her “Ramona,” 12;
“Century of Dishonor,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Kansas, 307.
Kansas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Keechies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Kiowas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ et seq., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__.
Kiri-kur´-uks, 241.
Kiri-kur'uks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Kit-ke-hahk´-i, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Kitz-a-witz-ŭk Nahu´rac lodge, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Knives, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
made of flint, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
sheath, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
Kut-a´wi-kutz, story of, 25.
Kut-a´wi-kutz, story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Lariats, 257.
Roping tools, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Leader of Soldiers, 74.
Leader of Soldiers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Left Hand, 391.
Left Hand, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Lipans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ et seq., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Little Warrior, 70.
Little Warrior, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Little Warrior’s Counsel, 79.
Little Warrior's Advice, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Lodges, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Lone Chief, the Kit-ke-hahk´-i, story of, 45;
moving to Indian Territory, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ et seq.
Lone Chief, the Skidi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Lone Tree Nahu´rac lodge, 112.
Lone Tree Nahu'rać lodge, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Louisiana, Pawnees in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Loup River Nahu´rac lodge, 112.
Loup River Nahu´rac lodge, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Mackenzie, General, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
McKenzie, Messrs., 406.
McKenzie, gentlemen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
McKinney, Lieutenant, 74.
McKinney, Lt., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Magic, 375.
Magic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Man who Called the Buffalo, 132.
Man Who Called the Buffalo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Mats, 257.
Mats, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Medicine, 374.
Medicine, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Mexico, Pawnees in, 224.
Mexico, Pawnees inside, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Mystery, 375.
Mystery, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Names of the tribe, 239;
of the Skidi bands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
personal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
changing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Nebraska, home to the Pawnees, 229;
removal from __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
North, Captain Luther H., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
North, Major Frank, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__.
Notes on the Pawnees, 211.
Notes on the Pawnees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Omahas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
O´re-ka-rahr, 182.
O're-ka-rahr, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Osages, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Osborne, Major, 405.
Osborne, Major, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Otoes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Pa-da´-ni, 240.
Pa-da´-ni, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pa´howa Nahu´rac lodge, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Pa-hŭk Nahu´rac lodge, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Pa-hūr´ Nahu´rac lodge, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Pa-hu-ka´-tawa, story of, 142.
Pa-hu-ka´-tawa, story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Paint, 263.
Paint, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pa-na´-na, 240.
Pa-na´-na, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pa´-ni, a form of Pawnee, 21.
Pa´-ni, a type of Pawnee, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pa´-ni Le-shar, 323.
Pa´-ni Le-shar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Parfleche, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Pawnee Loups, 216.
Pawnee Loups, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pawnee Picts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Pawnee sign, 243.
Pawnee sign, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pawnees, The, past and present condition, 9, 10;
character, 10;
religion, 17;
language, 21, 212;
relationships, 215;
the four bands, 215;
origin and migrations, 223;
the Skidi band, 231;
name and emblem, 239;
early customs, 249;
endurance, 251;
every-day life, 259;
as horsemen, 265;
kind disposition, 269;
on the hunt, 270;
enemies and methods of warfare, 303;
relations toward the whites, 310;
battles with the Sioux, 313;
the Pawnee Scouts, 323;
war parties, 335;
religious beliefs, 350;
religious ceremonies, 360;
medicine and mystery among, 374;
later history, removal to the Indian Territory, 389;
present condition and progress, 397.
Pawnees, The, past and present condition, 9, 10;
character, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
religion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
language, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
relationships, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
the four bands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
origins and migrations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
the Skidi tribe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
name and logo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
early traditions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
endurance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
daily life, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
as riders, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
kind nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
on the hunt, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
enemies and warfare methods, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
relations with white people, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
battles with the Sioux, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
the Pawnee Scouts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
war groups, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
faith, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
religious ceremonies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
medicine and mystery among, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Later history, relocation to the Indian Territory, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
current status and progress, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pawnee Scouts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__ and following, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
Peace-Maker, story of, 25.
Peace-Maker, the story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pemmican, 139.
Pemmican, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Pipe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
passing the, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__.
Pi-ta´-da, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Pita-hau-erats, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Pi'ta Le-shar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__.
Pities-the-Poor, Chief, 342.
Pities-the-Poor, Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Prayer, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__ et seq., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__.
Priests, 350.
Priests, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Prisoners of Court House Rock, 67.
Prisoners of Court House Rock, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
“Ramona,” 12.
“Ramona,” __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Rattle, 128.
Rattle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Rawhide, story of the, 311.
Rawhide, the story of the __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Rees, see Arickaras.
Rees, check __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Ropes, 257.
Ropes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Royal, General, 325.
Royal, General, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Runners, 251.
Runners, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Running Chief, 47.
Running Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Sacrifices, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__.
Scabbard, 75.
Scabbard, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Scalp dance, 329.
Scalp dance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Scalp lock, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Scalp sacrifice, 362.
Scalp sacrifice, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Secret Pipe Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Servants, 261.
Helpers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Shamans, 350.
Shamans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Shield, 78.
Shield, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Signs, 243.
Signs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Sinew, 254.
Sinew, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Sioux, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ and following, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__ and following, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__ and following, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__.
Ska-di´ks, 317.
Ska-diks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Skidi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__;
bands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__.
Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar, story of, 45.
Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar, story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Smoking, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
to Ti-ra´-wa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__.
Snake Brother, The, 171.
The Snake Brother, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Song of triumph, 305;
songs from different tribes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Spoons, 256.
Spoons, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Spotted Horse, 391 et seq.
Spotted Horse, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ et seq.
Spotted Robe, 89.
Spotted Robe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Stick Game, 337.
Stick Game, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Summer hunt, 270.
Summer hunt, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Sun Chief, 385.
Sun Chief, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Tall Bull, 329.
Tall Bull, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Texas, Pawnees in, 227.
Texas, Pawnees present, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
They-know-that-Leader, 336.
They know that Leader, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Thornburgh, Major, 79.
Thornburgh, Major, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Thunder, 360.
Thunder, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Ti-ke-wa-kush, 132.
Ti-ke-wa-kush, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Ti-ra´-wa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__.
Ti-ra´-wa Le-shar, 396.
Ti-ra´-wa Le-shar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Tonkaways, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ et seq., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Tribal mark, 243.
Tribal mark, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Turkey Leg, 331.
Turkey Leg, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Union Pacific Railway, 324.
Union Pacific Railroad, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Utes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Wacos, 217.
Wacos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Warfare, 303.
Warfare, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
War groups, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ and following, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Whirlwinds, ghosts, 357.
Whirlwinds, ghosts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
White Eagle, see Eagle Chief.
White Eagle, check __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
White, Frank, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ and following.
Whites, Pawnees’ relations with, 310;
first meeting with, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
actions against, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Wichitas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ et seq., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__.
Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Wolf, the name for Pawnee, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
sign, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
Wolf Pawnees, 216.
Wolf Pawnees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Wolves in the Night, 70.
Wolves in the Night, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Yellow Fox, story of, 206.
Yellow Fox, story of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Transcriber's Note
Transcriber's Note
Archaic and variable spelling, grammar and punctuation usage is preserved as printed.
Archaic and variable spelling, grammar, and punctuation usage is preserved as printed.
With some few exceptions listed below (where there was a clear typographic error, a single inconsistency against a number of uses of another form or a discrepancy between the contents listing or index compared to the main text) variations in Pawnee words are preserved as printed. For example, A-ti-us and A-ti´-us; Pa-huk´ and Pa-hŭk´; Chau-i and Chaui; Ka-wa-ra´-kish and Ka-wa-ra-kish; tŭt-tu-ta-rik and tŭt-tū-ta-rik; U´-ra-rīsh and U-ra-rish; we´-tŭs and we-tŭs; Cha´-ra-rat and Chah´-ra-rat; Ski´-di and Skidi; Tapaje and Tapage.
With a few exceptions listed below (where there was a clear typographical error, a single inconsistency against multiple uses of another form, or a discrepancy between the contents listing or index compared to the main text), variations in Pawnee words are preserved as printed. For example, A-ti-us and A-ti´-us; Pa-huk´ and Pa-hŭk´; Chau-i and Chaui; Ka-wa-ra´-kish and Ka-wa-ra-kish; tŭt-tu-ta-rik and tŭt-tū-ta-rik; U´-ra-rīsh and U-ra-rish; we´-tŭs and we-tŭs; Cha´-ra-rat and Chah´-ra-rat; Ski´-di and Skidi; Tapaje and Tapage.
The following amendments have been made:
The following changes have been made:
Page vii—Le´-shar amended to Le-shar—"Lone Chief, Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar, ..."
Page vii—Le´-shar changed to Le-shar—"Lone Chief, Skŭr-ar-a Le-shar, ..."
Page xxi—Kit-ke-hahk-is amended to Kit-ke-hahk´-is—"... by Good Chief and Curly Chief, Kit-ke-hahk´-is; ..."
Page xxi—Kit-ke-hahk-is changed to Kit-ke-hahk´-is—"... by Good Chief and Curly Chief, Kit-ke-hahk´-is; ..."
Page 45—Le´-shar amended to Le-shar—"Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar."
Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__—Le´-shar changed to Le-shar—"Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar."
Page 47—le-shar-uspi amended to le-shar´-uspi—"At this time the boy’s name was Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, Running Chief."
Page 47—le-shar-uspi changed to le-shar´-uspi—"At this point, the boy’s name was Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi, Running Chief."
Page 65—Skŭ´r-ar-a amended to Skŭr´-ar-a—"... was changed from Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi to Skŭr´-ar-a le-shar ..."
Page 65—Skŭ´r-ar-a changed to Skŭr´-ar-a—"... was updated from Wi-ti-ti le-shar´-uspi to Skŭr´-ar-a le-shar ..."
Page 105—comma moved from following 'said' to following 'this'—"As soon as he had said this, he vanished like a wind; ..."
Page 105—comma moved from following 'said' to following 'this'—"As soon as he said this, he disappeared like the wind; ..."
Page 155—omitted comma added following 'man'—"Whenever any human being on this earth, man, woman or child, ..."
Page 155—omitted comma added following 'man'—"Whenever any person on this earth, man, woman, or child, ..."
Page 220—omitted period added—"... additional and more satisfactory evidence of such a connection."
Page 220—omitted period added—"... additional and more convincing evidence of such a connection."
Page 240—themselve amended to themselves—"... the name by which the Pawnees call themselves, Pa´-ni."
Page 240—themselves amended to themselves—"... the name the Pawnees use for themselves, Pa´-ni."
Page 241—forgotton amended to forgotten—"... but these divisions have almost been forgotten."
Page 241—forgotton amended to forgotten—"... but these divisions have almost been overlooked."
Page 296—Ti-ra´wa amended to Ti-ra´-wa—"... about to slay the wild cattle that Ti-ra´-wa had given them for food."
Page 296—Ti-ra´wa changed to Ti-ra´-wa—"... about to kill the wild cattle that Ti-ra´-wa had provided for them to eat."
Page 301—ka´-wis amended to ka´wis—"... fat ribs were roasted, ka´wis boiled, and boudins eaten raw."
Page 301—ka´-wis changed to ka´wis—"... fatty ribs were roasted, ka´wis boiled, and boudins eaten raw."
Page 363—Ti ra´-wa amended to Ti-ra´-wa—"The Skidi alone of the Pawnees sacrificed human beings to Ti-ra´-wa."
Page 363—Ti ra´-wa changed to Ti-ra´-wa—"The Skidi alone of the Pawnees sacrificed humans to Ti-ra´-wa."
Page 363—Ti ra´-wa amended to Ti-ra´-wa—"... and I hope that I may be blessed from Ti-ra´-wa; ..."
Page 363—Ti ra´-wa changed to Ti-ra´-wa—"... and I hope that I may be blessed by Ti-ra´-wa; ..."
Page 376—operaation amended to operation—"... where men who had swallowed arrows died from the injuries received in the operation."
Page 376—operation amended to operation—"... where men who had swallowed arrows died from the injuries sustained during the operation."
Page 385—KIT-KE-KAHK´-I amended to KIT-KE-HAHK´-I—"SUN CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I."
Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__—KIT-KE-KAHK´-I changed to KIT-KE-HAHK´-I—"SUN CHIEF—KIT-KE-HAHK´-I."
Page 408—It amended to it—"“... But,” he added, solemnly, “it may be that Ti-ra´-wa will be good to us, ...”"
Page 408—It amended to it—"“... But,” he added, seriously, “it could be that Ti-ra´-wa will be good to us, ...”"
Page 413—O´-re-ka-rahr amended to O´re-ka-rahr—"O´re-ka-rahr, 182."
Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__—O're-ka-rahr updated to O're-ka-rahr—"O're-ka-rahr, 182."
Page 415—omitted comma added following 229—"Skidi, 216, 229, 231, 248, 400; ..."
Page 415—omitted comma added following 229—"Skidi, 216, 229, 231, 248, 400; ..."
Page 415—Skur´-ar-a amended to Skŭr´-ar-a—"Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar, story of, 45."
Page 415—Skur´-ar-a changed to Skŭr´-ar-a—"Skŭr´-ar-a Le-shar, story of, 45."
Page 416—Ti´-ke-wa´-kush amended to Ti-ke-wa-kush—"Ti-ke-wa-kush, 132."
Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__—Ti´-ke-wa´-kush changed to Ti-ke-wa-kush—"Ti-ke-wa-kush, 132."
Some errors in page references were found in the index. These have been amended as follows:
Some mistakes in page references were found in the index. These have been corrected as follows:
Page 409—252 amended to 253—"Agriculture in the old times, 253; ..."
Page 409—252 changed to 253—"Farming in the past, 253; ..."
Page 410—356 amended to 366—"Counting coup, 47, 93, 179, 188, 366, 367."
Page 410—356 changed to 366—"Counting coup, 47, 93, 179, 188, 366, 367."
Page 411—7 amended to 5—"Eagle Chief, 5, 20, 363, 408."
Page 411—7 updated to 5—"Eagle Chief, 5, 20, 363, 408."
Page 415—120 amended to 128—"Rattle, 128."
Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__—120 updated to 128—"Rattle, 128."
Page 415—310 amended to 311—"Rawhide, story of the, 311."
Page 415—310 changed to 311—"Rawhide, story of the, 311."
Page 416—219 amended to 220—"... songs of different tribes, 220."
Page 416—219 changed to 220—"... songs of various tribes, 220."
The frontispiece illustration has been moved to follow the title page. Other illustrations have been moved where necessary so that they were not in the middle of a paragraph.
The frontispiece illustration has been placed after the title page. Other illustrations have been relocated as needed to ensure they are not in the middle of a paragraph.
Alphabetic links have been added to the beginning of the index for the convenience of the reader.
Alphabetic links have been added to the start of the index for the reader's convenience.
Omitted page numbers were blank pages or the location of half titles or illustrations in the original book.
Omitted page numbers were blank pages or the spots for half titles or illustrations in the original book.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!